This is a modern-English version of Esoteric Christianity, or The Lesser Mysteries, originally written by Besant, Annie. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.


Transcriber's Note: The many inconsistently spelt words in this book (e.g. Samskrit/Sanskrit) have been retained as in the original.

ESOTERIC CHRISTIANITY

OR

THE LESSER MYSTERIES.

BY

ANNIE BESANT.

[SECOND EDITION]

The Theosophical Publishing Society.

London and Benares.
1905.

In proceeding to the contemplation of the mysteries of knowledge, we shall adhere to the celebrated and venerable rule of tradition, commencing from the origin of the universe, setting forth those points of physical contemplation which are necessary to be premised, and removing whatever can be an obstacle on the way; so that the ear may be prepared for the reception of the tradition of the Gnosis, the ground being cleared of weeds and fitted for the planting of the vineyard; for there is a conflict before the conflict, and mysteries before the mysteries.—S. Clement of Alexandria.

As we begin to explore the mysteries of knowledge, we will follow the well-known and respected traditional approach, starting from the origin of the universe. We will outline the essential points of physical contemplation that need to be addressed and eliminate any obstacles in our path. This way, our minds will be ready to receive the teachings of Gnosis, with the ground cleared of distractions and prepared for planting a vineyard; for there is a struggle before the actual struggle, and mysteries that come before other mysteries.—S. Clement of Alexandria.

Let the specimen suffice to those who have ears. For it is not required to unfold the mystery, but only to indicate what is sufficient.—Ibid.

Let the example be enough for those who are willing to listen. It's not necessary to reveal the entire mystery, just to point out what's adequate.—Ibid.

He that hath ears to hear, let him hear.—S. Matthew.

He who has ears to hear, let him hear.—S. Matthew.


FOREWORD.

The object of this book is to suggest certain lines of thought as to the deep truths underlying Christianity, truths generally overlooked, and only too often denied. The generous wish to share with all what is precious, to spread broadcast priceless truths, to shut out none from the illumination of true knowledge, has resulted in a zeal without discretion that has vulgarised Christianity, and has presented its teachings in a form that often repels the heart and alienates the intellect. The command to "preach the Gospel to every creature"[1]—though admittedly of doubtful authenticity—has been interpreted as forbidding the teaching of the Gnosis to a few, and has apparently erased the less popular saying of the same Great Teacher: "Give not that which is holy unto the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine."[2][Pg viii]

The goal of this book is to propose some ideas about the deep truths behind Christianity, truths that are often overlooked and frequently denied. The sincere desire to share valuable insights, to spread these priceless truths far and wide, and to include everyone in the light of true knowledge has led to a passionate effort that has oversimplified Christianity and presented its teachings in a way that often turns people away and makes them feel disconnected. The command to "preach the Gospel to every creature"[1]—though its authenticity is debated—has been taken to mean that we shouldn’t share deeper knowledge with a select few, seemingly ignoring the less popular saying from the same Great Teacher: "Give not that which is holy unto the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine."[2][Pg viii]

This spurious sentimentality—which refuses to recognise the obvious inequalities of intelligence and morality, and thereby reduces the teaching of the highly developed to the level attainable by the least evolved, sacrificing the higher to the lower in a way that injures both—had no place in the virile common sense of the early Christians. S. Clement of Alexandria says quite bluntly, after alluding to the Mysteries: "Even now I fear, as it is said, 'to cast the pearls before swine, lest they tread them underfoot, and turn and rend us.' For it is difficult to exhibit the really pure and transparent words respecting the true Light to swinish and untrained hearers."[3]

This false sentimentality—which refuses to acknowledge the clear inequalities of intelligence and morality, and in doing so, brings the teaching of the highly developed down to the level of the least evolved, sacrificing the higher for the lower in a way that harms both—had no place in the strong common sense of the early Christians. S. Clement of Alexandria states quite plainly, after referencing the Mysteries: "Even now I fear, as it is said, 'to cast the pearls before swine, lest they trample them underfoot, and turn and tear us apart.' For it is hard to present the truly pure and transparent words about the true Light to swinish and untrained listeners."[3]

If true knowledge, the Gnosis, is again to form a part of Christian teachings, it can only be under the old restrictions, and the idea of levelling down to the capacities of the least developed must be definitely surrendered. Only by teaching above the grasp of the little evolved can the way be opened up for a restoration of arcane[Pg ix] knowledge, and the study of the Lesser Mysteries must precede that of the Greater. The Greater will never be published through the printing-press; they can only be given by Teacher to pupil, "from mouth to ear." But the Lesser Mysteries, the partial unveiling of deep truths, can even now be restored, and such a volume as the present is intended to outline these, and to show the nature of the teachings which have to be mastered. Where only hints are given, quiet meditation on the truths hinted at will cause their outlines to become visible, and the clearer light obtained by continued meditation will gradually show them more fully. For meditation quiets the lower mind, ever engaged in thinking about external objects, and when the lower mind is tranquil then only can it be illuminated by the Spirit. Knowledge of spiritual truths must be thus obtained, from within and not from without, from the divine Spirit whose temple we are[4] and not from an external Teacher. These things are "spiritually discerned" by that divine indwelling Spirit,[Pg x] that "mind of Christ," whereof speaks the Great Apostle,[5] and that inner light is shed upon the lower mind.

If true knowledge, the Gnosis, is to be part of Christian teachings again, it can only happen under the old limitations, and the idea of lowering the standards to fit the least developed must be completely abandoned. Only by teaching beyond the understanding of those who are less evolved can we pave the way for the restoration of hidden knowledge, and the study of the Lesser Mysteries must come before that of the Greater. The Greater will never be published through the printing press; they can only be passed from Teacher to student, "from mouth to ear." But the Lesser Mysteries, which partially reveal deep truths, can be restored even now, and this volume aims to outline these mysteries and to illustrate the nature of the teachings that must be mastered. Where only hints are provided, quiet meditation on the hinted truths will make their outlines visible, and the clearer light gained through continued meditation will gradually reveal them more completely. For meditation calms the lower mind, which is always focused on external things, and only when the lower mind is at peace can it be enlightened by the Spirit. Knowledge of spiritual truths must be attained from within, not from outside sources, from the divine Spirit whose temple we are, and not from an external Teacher. These things are "spiritually discerned" by that divine indwelling Spirit, that "mind of Christ," referred to by the Great Apostle, and that inner light illuminates the lower mind.

This is the way of the Divine Wisdom, the true Theosophy. It is not, as some think, a diluted version of Hinduism, or Buddhism, or Taoism, or of any special religion. It is Esoteric Christianity as truly as it is Esoteric Buddhism, and belongs equally to all religions, exclusively to none. This is the source of the suggestions made in this little volume, for the helping of those who seek the Light—that "true Light which lighteth every man that cometh into the world,"[6] though most have not yet opened their eyes to it. It does not bring the Light. It only says: "Behold the Light!" For thus have we heard. It appeals only to the few who hunger for more than the exoteric teachings give them. For those who are fully satisfied with the exoteric teachings, it is not intended; for why should bread be forced on those who are not hungry? For those who hunger, may it prove bread, and not a stone.

This is the path of Divine Wisdom, true Spiritual philosophy. It's not, as some believe, a watered-down version of Hinduism, Buddhism, Taoism, or any single religion. It is Esoteric Christianity just as much as it is Esoteric Buddhism, and it belongs to all religions equally, but doesn’t belong exclusively to any of them. This is the foundation for the ideas shared in this little book, aimed at helping those who seek the Light—that "true Light which lighteth every man that cometh into the world,"[6] although most have not yet opened their eyes to it. It doesn’t bring the Light. It simply says: “Look at the Light!” For this is what we have heard. It speaks only to the few who crave more than what the exoteric teachings offer. For those who are completely satisfied with the exoteric teachings, it is not meant; after all, why should we force-feed bread to those who aren’t hungry? For those who are hungry, may it be bread, not a stone.


CONTENTS.

Foreword,vii
Chapter I.
The Hidden Side of Religions.1
Chapter II.
The Hidden Side of Christianity.36
Chapter III.
The Hidden Side of Christianity. (concluded)69
Chapter IV.
The Historical Jesus.120
Chapter V.
The Mythic Christ.145
Chapter VI.
The Mystic Christ.170
Chapter VII.
The Atonement.193
Chapter VIII.
Resurrection and Ascension.231
Chapter IX.
The Trinity.253
Chapter X.
Prayer.276
Chapter XI.
The Forgiveness of Sins.301
Chapter XII.
Sacraments.324
Chapter XIII.
Sacraments.346
Chapter XIV.
Revelation.369
Afterword.386
Index.388
Footnotes.405

ESOTERIC CHRISTIANITY.

Chapter I.

THE HIDDEN SIDE OF RELIGIONS.

Many, perhaps most, who see the title of this book will at once traverse it, and will deny that there is anything valuable which can be rightly described as "Esoteric Christianity." There is a wide-spread, and withal a popular, idea that there is no such thing as an occult teaching in connection with Christianity, and that "The Mysteries," whether Lesser or Greater, were a purely Pagan institution. The very name of "The Mysteries of Jesus," so familiar in the ears of the Christians of the first centuries, would come with a shock of surprise on those of their modern successors, and, if spoken as[Pg 2] denoting a special and definite institution in the Early Church, would cause a smile of incredulity. It has actually been made a matter of boast that Christianity has no secrets, that whatever it has to say it says to all, and whatever it has to teach it teaches to all. Its truths are supposed to be so simple, that "a way-faring man, though a fool, may not err therein," and the "simple Gospel" has become a stock phrase.

Many people, perhaps most, who see the title of this book will quickly dismiss it and claim that there's nothing valuable about "Esoteric Christianity." There’s a widespread belief that there’s no hidden teaching related to Christianity, and that "The Mysteries," whether Lesser or Greater, were just a pagan thing. The phrase "The Mysteries of Jesus," which was well-known to Christians in the early centuries, would shock modern Christians, and if mentioned as a specific institution in the Early Church, it would just be met with disbelief. It's actually been bragged about that Christianity has no secrets, that whatever it has to offer is available to everyone, and that its teachings are for all. Its truths are said to be so straightforward that "a wayfaring man, though a fool, may not err therein," and the "simple Gospel" has become a common expression.

It is necessary, therefore, to prove clearly that in the Early Church, at least, Christianity was no whit behind other great religions in possessing a hidden side, and that it guarded, as a priceless treasure, the secrets revealed only to a select few in its Mysteries. But ere doing this it will be well to consider the whole question of this hidden side of religions, and to see why such a side must exist if a religion is to be strong and stable; for thus its existence in Christianity will appear as a foregone conclusion, and the references to it in the writings of the Christian Fathers will appear simple and natural instead of surprising and unintelligible. As a historical[Pg 3] fact, the existence of this esotericism is demonstrable; but it may also be shown that intellectually it is a necessity.

It’s important to clearly show that in the Early Church, Christianity was not at all lacking compared to other major religions in having a hidden aspect, and that it treasured the secrets revealed only to a select few through its Mysteries. Before doing this, it’s useful to consider the entire concept of the hidden aspect of religions, and to understand why such an aspect must exist for a religion to be strong and stable. This way, its presence in Christianity will seem like an obvious conclusion, and the mentions of it in the writings of the Christian Fathers will come across as straightforward and logical rather than surprising and confusing. As a historical fact, the existence of this esotericism can be proven; additionally, it can be shown that, intellectually, it’s a necessity.

The first question we have to answer is: What is the object of religions? They are given to the world by men wiser than the masses of the people on whom they are bestowed, and are intended to quicken human evolution. In order to do this effectively they must reach individuals and influence them. Now all men are not at the same level of evolution, but evolution might be figured as a rising gradient, with men stationed on it at every point. The most highly evolved are far above the least evolved, both in intelligence and character; the capacity alike to understand and to act varies at every stage. It is, therefore, useless to give to all the same religious teaching; that which would help the intellectual man would be entirely unintelligible to the stupid, while that which would throw the saint into ecstasy would leave the criminal untouched. If, on the other hand, the teaching be suitable to help the unintelligent, it is intolerably crude and jejune to the philosopher, while[Pg 4] that which redeems the criminal is utterly useless to the saint. Yet all the types need religion, so that each may reach upward to a life higher than that which he is leading, and no type or grade should be sacrificed to any other. Religion must be as graduated as evolution, else it fails in its object.

The first question we need to answer is: What is the purpose of religions? They are given to the world by people who are wiser than the majority of those they are meant for and are intended to stimulate human development. To do this effectively, they need to reach individuals and influence them. Not everyone is at the same level of development, but we can think of evolution as a rising gradient, with people positioned at every point on it. Those who are most developed are far ahead of those who are least developed, both in intelligence and character; the ability to understand and act varies at every stage. Therefore, it's pointless to provide everyone with the same religious teachings; what helps an intellectual person could be completely incomprehensible to someone less able, while what elevates a saint could leave a criminal indifferent. On the other hand, if the teachings are geared to assist those with less intelligence, they can be annoyingly simple and dull for a philosopher, while what might help a criminal is completely useless to a saint. However, all types of people need religion so that each can strive towards a life that is better than their current one, and no type or level should be prioritized over another. Religion must be as varied as evolution; otherwise, it fails in its purpose.

Next comes the question: In what way do religions seek to quicken human evolution? Religions seek to evolve the moral and intellectual natures, and to aid the spiritual nature to unfold itself. Regarding man as a complex being, they seek to meet him at every point of his constitution, and therefore to bring messages suitable for each, teachings adequate to the most diverse human needs. Teachings must therefore be adapted to each mind and heart to which they are addressed. If a religion does not reach and master the intelligence, if it does not purify and inspire the emotions, it has failed in its object, so far as the person addressed is concerned.

Next comes the question: How do religions aim to accelerate human evolution? Religions strive to enhance our moral and intellectual qualities, and to support the spiritual side of our nature in developing. Understanding humans as complex beings, they aim to connect with every aspect of our being, offering messages that suit each part, and teachings that cater to the wide variety of human needs. Teachings must be tailored to fit each mind and heart they reach. If a religion does not engage and enlighten the intellect, or fail to uplift and inspire the emotions, it has not succeeded in its purpose for that individual.

Not only does it thus direct itself to the intelligence and the emotions, but it seeks,[Pg 5] as said, to stimulate the unfoldment of the spiritual nature. It answers to that inner impulse which exists in humanity, and which is ever pushing the race onwards. For deeply within the heart of all—often overlaid by transitory conditions, often submerged under pressing interests and anxieties—there exists a continual seeking after God. "As the hart panteth after the water-brooks, so panteth"[7] humanity after God. The search is sometimes checked for a space, and the yearning seems to disappear. Phases recur in civilisation and in thought, wherein this cry of the human Spirit for the divine—seeking its source as water seeks its level, to borrow a simile from Giordano Bruno—this yearning of the human Spirit for that which is akin to it in the universe, of the part for the whole, seems to be stilled, to have vanished; none the less does that yearning reappear, and once more the same cry rings out from the Spirit. Trampled on for a time, apparently destroyed, though the tendency may be, it rises again and again with inextinguishable persistence, it[Pg 6] repeats itself again and again, no matter how often it is silenced; and it thus proves itself to be an inherent tendency in human nature, an ineradicable constituent thereof. Those who declare triumphantly, "Lo! it is dead!" find it facing them again with undiminished vitality. Those who build without allowing for it find their well-constructed edifices riven as by an earthquake. Those who hold it to be outgrown find the wildest superstitions succeed its denial. So much is it an integral part of humanity, that man will have some answer to his questionings; rather an answer that is false, than none. If he cannot find religious truth, he will take religious error rather than no religion, and will accept the crudest and most incongruous ideals rather than admit that the ideal is non-existent.

Not only does it engage the mind and emotions, but it also aims to inspire the development of our spiritual nature. It responds to that inner drive within humanity that constantly pushes us forward. Deep down in everyone's heart—often buried beneath temporary conditions and overlaid by urgent interests and worries—there's a never-ending quest for God. "As the deer longs for streams of water, so humanity longs for God." Sometimes this search is paused, and the longing seems to fade away. Different phases occur in civilization and thought where the human spirit's cry for the divine—seeking its source just as water seeks its level, to borrow a comparison from Giordano Bruno—appears to be silenced; however, that longing emerges again, and once more, the same cry resonates from the spirit. Even when trampled for a time and seemingly destroyed, this tendency rises repeatedly with an undeniable persistence, echoing time after time, no matter how often it is suppressed; thus, it proves to be an essential aspect of human nature, an indelible part of it. Those who boldly claim, "Look! It’s dead!" find it confronting them again with unchanged energy. Those who build without accounting for it see their well-crafted structures torn apart as if by an earthquake. Those who believe it has been outgrown find that the wildest superstitions emerge in the wake of its denial. It is so integral to humanity that people will seek some answer to their inquiries; they would rather accept a false answer than none at all. If they can't find religious truth, they will settle for religious error instead of living without religion, and they will embrace the most absurd and mismatched ideals rather than acknowledge that the ideal doesn't exist.

Religion, then, meets this craving, and taking hold of the constituent in human nature that gives rise to it, trains it, strengthens it, purifies it and guides it towards its proper ending—the union of the human Spirit with the divine, so "that God may be all in all."[8][Pg 7]

Religion fulfills this desire, and by connecting with the part of human nature that creates it, it nurtures, strengthens, purifies, and directs it towards its ultimate goal—the union of the human spirit with the divine, so that "God may be all in all."[8][Pg 7]

The next question which meets us in our enquiry is: What is the source of religions? To this question two answers have been given in modern times—that of the Comparative Mythologists and that of the Comparative Religionists. Both base their answers on a common basis of admitted facts. Research has indisputably proved that the religions of the world are markedly similar in their main teachings, in their possession of Founders who display superhuman powers and extraordinary moral elevation, in their ethical precepts, in their use of means to come into touch with invisible worlds, and in the symbols by which they express their leading beliefs. This similarity, amounting in many cases to identity, proves—according to both the above schools—a common origin.

The next question that arises in our inquiry is: What is the source of religions? In modern times, two answers have been proposed: that of the Comparative Mythologists and that of the Comparative Religionists. Both answers are based on a shared foundation of accepted facts. Research has clearly shown that the religions of the world are notably similar in their core teachings, in their Founders who exhibit superhuman abilities and remarkable moral integrity, in their ethical guidelines, in their methods for connecting with unseen realms, and in the symbols they use to convey their key beliefs. This similarity, which often reaches the level of identity, suggests—according to both of these schools—a common origin.

But on the nature of this common origin the two schools are at issue. The Comparative Mythologists contend that the common origin is the common ignorance, and that the loftiest religious doctrines are simply refined expressions of the crude and barbarous guesses of savages, of[Pg 8] primitive men, regarding themselves and their surroundings. Animism, fetishism, nature-worship, sun-worship—these are the constituents of the primeval mud out of which has grown the splendid lily of religion. A Kṛiṣhṇa, a Buddha, a Lao-tze, a Jesus, are the highly civilised but lineal descendants of the whirling medicine-man of the savage. God is a composite photograph of the innumerable Gods who are the personifications of the forces of nature. And so forth. It is all summed up in the phrase: Religions are branches from a common trunk—human ignorance.

But on the nature of this common origin, the two schools disagree. The Comparative Mythologists argue that this common origin is simply shared ignorance, and that the highest religious beliefs are just refined versions of the crude and barbaric ideas of primitive people about themselves and their surroundings. Animism, fetishism, nature-worship, sun-worship—these are the basic elements of the primordial muck from which the beautiful flower of religion has emerged. Figures like Kṛiṣhṇa, Buddha, Lao-tze, and Jesus are highly developed but direct descendants of the chaotic medicine man of the primitive era. God is a composite image made up of countless Gods who represent the forces of nature. And so on. It all boils down to the idea that religions are branches stemming from a common trunk—human ignorance.

The Comparative Religionists consider, on the other hand, that all religions originate from the teachings of Divine Men, who give out to the different nations of the world, from time to time, such parts of the fundamental verities of religion as the people are capable of receiving, teaching ever the same morality, inculcating the use of similar means, employing the same significant symbols. The savage religions—animism and the rest—are degenerations, the results of decadence, distorted and dwarfed descendants of true[Pg 9] religious beliefs. Sun-worship and pure forms of nature-worship were, in their day, noble religions, highly allegorical but full of profound truth and knowledge. The great Teachers—it is alleged by Hindus, Buddhists, and by some Comparative Religionists, such as Theosophists—form an enduring Brotherhood of men who have risen beyond humanity, who appear at certain periods to enlighten the world, and who are the spiritual guardians of the human race. This view may be summed up in the phrase: "Religions are branches from a common trunk—Divine Wisdom."

The Comparative Religionists believe that all religions come from the teachings of Divine Men, who share essential truths of religion with different nations at various times, depending on what the people are ready to understand. They teach the same moral principles, promote similar practices, and use the same important symbols. The primitive religions—like animism and others—are seen as degenerate forms, the results of decline, and distorted versions of true religious beliefs. Sun-worship and pure nature-worship were, in their time, noble religions, rich in allegory but also full of deep truths and knowledge. The great Teachers—according to Hindus, Buddhists, and some Comparative Religionists like Theosophists—are part of an eternal Brotherhood of individuals who have transcended humanity. They appear at certain times to enlighten the world and act as spiritual guardians of the human race. This perspective can be summarized with the phrase: "Religions are branches from a common trunk—Divine Wisdom."

This Divine Wisdom is spoken of as the Wisdom, the Gnosis, the Theosophia, and some, in different ages of the world, have so desired to emphasise their belief in this unity of religions, that they have preferred the eclectic name of Theosophist to any narrower designation.

This Divine Wisdom is referred to as Wisdom, Gnosis, Theosophia, and some people, throughout different periods in history, have wanted to highlight their belief in the unity of religions so much that they chose the broader term Theosophist over any more limited label.

The relative value of the contentions of these two opposed schools must be judged by the cogency of the evidence put forth by each. The appearance of a degenerate form of a noble idea may closely resemble[Pg 10] that of a refined product of a coarse idea, and the only method of deciding between degeneration and evolution would be the examination, if possible, of intermediate and remote ancestors. The evidence brought forward by believers in the Wisdom is of this kind. They allege: that the Founders of religions, judged by the records of their teachings, were far above the level of average humanity; that the Scriptures of religions contain moral precepts, sublime ideals, poetical aspirations, profound philosophical statements, which are not even approached in beauty and elevation by later writings in the same religions—that is, that the old is higher than the new, instead of the new being higher than the old; that no case can be shown of the refining and improving process alleged to be the source of current religions, whereas many cases of degeneracy from pure teachings can be adduced; that even among savages, if their religions be carefully studied, many traces of lofty ideas can be found, ideas which are obviously above the productive capacity of the savages themselves.[Pg 11]

The relative value of the arguments from these two opposing schools should be evaluated based on the strength of the evidence each provides. A degraded version of a noble idea may closely resemble a refined version of a crude idea, and the only way to determine whether it's degeneration or evolution would be to examine, if possible, the intermediate and distant ancestors. The evidence put forth by supporters of the Wisdom aligns with this. They claim that the founders of religions, based on the records of their teachings, were far superior to the average person; that the scriptures of religions contain moral guidelines, lofty ideals, poetic aspirations, and profound philosophical thoughts that are unmatched in beauty and depth by more recent writings within the same religions—that is, that the old is superior to the new, rather than the new surpassing the old; that there are no examples of the refining and improving process claimed to be the origin of contemporary religions, while there are many instances of deterioration from pure teachings; and that even among primitive peoples, if their religions are studied closely, many traces of elevated ideas can be found—ideas that clearly exceed the creative capacity of those same primitive peoples.

This last idea has been worked out by Mr. Andrew Lang, who—judging by his book on The Making of Religion—should be classed as a Comparative Religionist rather than as a Comparative Mythologist. He points to the existence of a common tradition, which, he alleges, cannot have been evolved by the savages for themselves, being men whose ordinary beliefs are of the crudest kind and whose minds are little developed. He shows, under crude beliefs and degraded views, lofty traditions of a sublime character, touching the nature of the Divine Being and His relations with men. The deities who are worshipped are, for the most part, the veriest devils, but behind, beyond all these, there is a dim but glorious over-arching Presence, seldom or never named, but whispered of as source of all, as power and love and goodness, too tender to awaken terror, too good to require supplication. Such ideas manifestly cannot have been conceived by the savages among whom they are found, and they remain as eloquent witnesses of the revelations made by some great Teacher—dim tradition of[Pg 12] whom is generally also discoverable—who was a Son of the Wisdom, and imparted some of its teachings in a long bye-gone age.

This last idea has been developed by Mr. Andrew Lang, who—based on his book on The Making of Religion—should be considered a Comparative Religionist rather than a Comparative Mythologist. He points to a shared tradition that, he argues, could not have been created by primitive people, whose typical beliefs are quite basic and whose minds are not very advanced. He demonstrates that beneath these simple beliefs and distorted views, there are noble traditions of a grand nature concerning the Divine and its relationship with humanity. The gods that are worshiped are mostly the most wicked beings, but behind and beyond all of them, there is a faint yet magnificent overarching Presence, rarely named, but referred to as the source of all, embodying power, love, and goodness, too gentle to instill fear and too kind to demand worship. Such concepts clearly could not have been originated by the primitive people among whom they are found, and they stand as powerful testimonies to the revelations of a great Teacher—whose faint legacy is generally also traceable—who was a Son of Wisdom and shared some of its teachings in a long-ago era.

The reason, and, indeed, the justification, of the view taken by the Comparative Mythologists is patent. They found in every direction low forms of religious belief, existing among savage tribes. These were seen to accompany general lack of civilisation. Regarding civilised men as evolving from uncivilised, what more natural than to regard civilised religion as evolving from uncivilised? It is the first obvious idea. Only later and deeper study can show that the savages of to-day are not our ancestral types, but are the degenerated offsprings of great civilised stocks of the past, and that man in his infancy was not left to grow up untrained, but was nursed and educated by his elders, from whom he received his first guidance alike in religion and civilisation. This view is being substantiated by such facts as those dwelt on by Lang, and will presently raise the question, "Who were these elders, of whom traditions are everywhere found?"[Pg 13]

The reason, and really the justification, for the perspective taken by the Comparative Mythologists is clear. They discovered various primitive forms of religious belief present among tribal societies. These were seen to exist alongside a general lack of civilization. Considering civilized people as evolved from uncivilized ones, it seems natural to think that civilized religion evolved from uncivilized beliefs. It’s the most straightforward idea. Only later and more in-depth studies can show that today's tribes are not our direct ancestors but are actually the weakened descendants of great civilizations from the past, and that humans in their early stages were not left to grow up without guidance, but were nurtured and educated by their elders, from whom they gained their initial lessons in both religion and civilization. This perspective is being supported by facts noted by Lang, and it will soon raise the question, "Who were these elders, whose traditions are found everywhere?"[Pg 13]

Still pursuing our enquiry, we come next to the question: To what people were religions given? And here we come at once to the difficulty with which every Founder of a religion must deal, that already spoken of as bearing on the primary object of religion itself, the quickening of human evolution, with its corollary that all grades of evolving humanity must be considered by Him. Men are at every stage of evolution, from the most barbarous to the most developed; men are found of lofty intelligence, but also of the most unevolved mentality; in one place there is a highly developed and complex civilisation, in another a crude and simple polity. Even within any given civilisation we find the most varied types—the most ignorant and the most educated, the most thoughtful and the most careless, the most spiritual and the most brutal; yet each one of these types must be reached, and each must be helped in the place where he is. If evolution be true, this difficulty is inevitable, and must be faced and overcome by the divine Teacher, else will His work be a failure. If man is[Pg 14] evolving as all around him is evolving, these differences of development, these varied grades of intelligence, must be a characteristic of humanity everywhere, and must be provided for in each of the religions of the world.

Still pursuing our inquiry, we turn next to the question: To whom were religions given? Here we immediately encounter the challenge that every Founder of a religion must confront, which relates to the primary purpose of religion itself—enhancing human evolution—and its corollary that all levels of evolving humanity must be considered by Him. People are at every stage of evolution, from the most primitive to the most advanced; we find individuals with high intelligence alongside those with the least developed minds; in one location, there is a highly advanced and complex civilization, while in another, a basic and simple government exists. Even within any single civilization, we see the most diverse types—the most uneducated and the most learned, the most reflective and the most indifferent, the most spiritual and the most savage; yet each one of these types must be reached, and each must be supported where they are. If evolution is indeed true, this challenge is unavoidable and must be addressed and overcome by the divine Teacher, or His mission will be a failure. If humanity is evolving as everything around them is evolving, then these differences in development, these varied levels of intelligence, must be a characteristic of humanity everywhere and must be accounted for in each of the religions of the world.

We are thus brought face to face with the position that we cannot have one and the same religious teaching even for a single nation, still less for a single civilisation, or for the whole world. If there be but one teaching, a large number of those to whom it is addressed will entirely escape its influence. If it be made suitable for those whose intelligence is limited, whose morality is elementary, whose perceptions are obtuse, so that it may help and train them, and thus enable them to evolve, it will be a religion utterly unsuitable for those men, living in the same nation, forming part of the same civilisation, who have keen and delicate moral perceptions, bright and subtle intelligence, and evolving spirituality. But if, on the other hand, this latter class is to be helped, if intelligence is to be given a philosophy that it can regard as admirable, if delicate moral[Pg 15] perceptions are to be still further refined, if the dawning spiritual nature is to be enabled to develope into the perfect day, then the religion will be so spiritual, so intellectual, and so moral, that when it is preached to the former class it will not touch their minds or their hearts, it will be to them a string of meaningless phrases, incapable of arousing their latent intelligence, or of giving them any motive for conduct which will help them to grow into a purer morality.

We are confronted with the reality that we can’t have the same religious teaching for even one nation, let alone for a single civilization or for the entire world. If there’s only one teaching, many people it targets will miss its impact entirely. If it’s tailored for those with limited understanding, basic morals, and dull perceptions to assist and train them, allowing them to evolve, it will be completely unsuitable for those within the same nation and civilization who have sharp moral insights, bright and subtle intelligence, and developing spirituality. However, if this latter group needs support, if intelligence is to be provided a philosophy it finds admirable, if delicate moral perceptions are to be refined further, and if the emerging spiritual nature is to be allowed to blossom fully, then the religion will be so spiritual, intellectual, and moral that when it’s shared with the former group, it won't resonate with their minds or hearts; it will be nothing more than a collection of meaningless phrases, unable to awaken their hidden intelligence or inspire them to conduct that promotes their growth into a higher morality.

Looking, then, at these facts concerning religion, considering its object, its means, its origin, the nature and varying needs of the people to whom it is addressed, recognising the evolution of spiritual, intellectual, and moral faculties in man, and the need of each man for such training as is suitable for the stage of evolution at which he has arrived, we are led to the absolute necessity of a varied and graduated religious teaching, such as will meet these different needs and help each man in his own place.

Looking at these facts about religion, considering its purpose, methods, origins, the nature and diverse needs of the people it serves, acknowledging the development of spiritual, intellectual, and moral capacities in humans, and recognizing each person's need for training appropriate to their level of growth, we find it essential to have a diverse and tiered approach to religious education that addresses these different needs and supports each individual in their unique circumstances.

There is yet another reason why esoteric teaching is desirable with respect to a[Pg 16] certain class of truths. It is eminently the fact in regard to this class that "knowledge is power." The public promulgation of a philosophy profoundly intellectual, sufficient to train an already highly developed intellect, and to draw the allegiance of a lofty mind, cannot injure any. It can be preached without hesitation, for it does not attract the ignorant, who turn away from it as dry, stiff, and uninteresting. But there are teachings which deal with the constitution of nature, explain recondite laws, and throw light on hidden processes, the knowledge of which gives control over natural energies, and enables its possessor to direct these energies to certain ends, as a chemist deals with the production of chemical compounds. Such knowledge may be very useful to highly developed men, and may much increase their power of serving the race. But if this knowledge were published to the world, it might and would be misused, just as the knowledge of subtle poisons was misused in the Middle Ages by the Borgias and by others. It would pass into the hands of people of strong[Pg 17] intellect, but of unregulated desires, men moved by separative instincts, seeking the gain of their separate selves and careless of the common good. They would be attracted by the idea of gaining powers which would raise them above the general level, and place ordinary humanity at their mercy, and would rush to acquire the knowledge which exalts its possessors to a superhuman rank. They would, by its possession, become yet more selfish and confirmed in their separateness, their pride would be nourished and their sense of aloofness intensified, and thus they would inevitably be driven along the road which leads to diabolism, the Left Hand Path, whose goal is isolation and not union. And they would not only themselves suffer in their inner nature, but they would also become a menace to Society, already suffering sufficiently at the hands of men whose intellect is more evolved than their conscience. Hence arises the necessity of withholding certain teachings from those who, morally, are as yet unfitted to receive them; and this necessity presses on every Teacher who is able to impart such knowledge.[Pg 18] He desires to give it to those who will use the powers it confers for the general good, for quickening human evolution; but he equally desires to be no party to giving it to those who would use it for their own aggrandisement at the cost of others.

There’s another reason why esoteric teaching is important when it comes to a certain set of truths. The saying "knowledge is power" definitely applies here. Sharing a deeply intellectual philosophy that can train already advanced minds and win the devotion of enlightened thinkers won’t harm anyone. It can be promoted confidently because it doesn’t appeal to the ignorant, who find it dry and boring. However, there are teachings that explain the nature of reality, clarify complex laws, and reveal hidden processes. Knowing this information allows one to control natural forces, directing them to specific outcomes, much like how a chemist creates chemical compounds. This knowledge can be highly beneficial to enlightened individuals and greatly enhance their ability to serve humanity. But if this information were made public, it could easily be abused, just as the knowledge of poisons was misused in the Middle Ages by figures like the Borgias. It might fall into the hands of intelligent people with unchecked desires—those driven by selfish instincts—who prioritize their own interests over the common good. They would be drawn to the idea of gaining powers that elevate them above others, making ordinary people vulnerable to them, and would seek out knowledge that elevates its holders to a superhuman status. This would only make them more selfish and entrenched in their separateness, boosting their pride and intensifying their detachment, ultimately guiding them down a dark path, the Left Hand Path, leading to isolation rather than unity. Not only would they suffer internally, but they would also pose a threat to society, which is already overwhelmed by those whose intellect surpasses their moral compass. Therefore, there’s a clear need to withhold certain teachings from those who aren’t yet morally ready to handle them; this obligation weighs heavily on every teacher capable of sharing such knowledge. They want to pass this on to those who will use its power for the greater good and to speed up human evolution but equally wish to avoid giving it to those who would exploit it for personal gain at the expense of others.

Nor is this a matter of theory only, according to the Occult Records, which give the details of the events alluded to in Genesis vi. et seq. This knowledge was, in those ancient times and on the continent of Atlantis, given without any rigid conditions as to the moral elevation, purity, and unselfishness of the candidates. Those who were intellectually qualified were taught, just as men are taught ordinary science in modern days. The publicity now so imperiously demanded was then given, with the result that men became giants in knowledge but also giants in evil, till the earth groaned under her oppressors and the cry of a trampled humanity rang through the worlds. Then came the destruction of Atlantis, the whelming of that vast continent beneath the waters of the ocean, some particulars of which are given[Pg 19] in the Hebrew Scriptures in the story of the Noachian deluge, and in the Hindu Scriptures of the further East in the story of Vaivasvata Manu.

Nor is this just a theoretical matter, according to the Occult Records, which provide details of the events mentioned in Genesis vi. et seq. This knowledge, in those ancient times on the continent of Atlantis, was given without strict conditions regarding the moral standards, purity, and selflessness required of the candidates. Those who were intellectually capable were taught, just like people learn regular science today. The publicity that is now so urgently demanded was then provided, resulting in individuals becoming giants in knowledge but also giants in wrongdoing, until the earth suffered under its oppressors and the cries of oppressed humanity echoed throughout the worlds. Then came the destruction of Atlantis, the submergence of that vast continent beneath the ocean, details of which are given[Pg 19] in the Hebrew Scriptures in the story of the Noachian flood, and in the Hindu Scriptures further to the East in the tale of Vaivasvata Manu.

Since that experience of the danger of allowing unpurified hands to grasp the knowledge which is power, the great Teachers have imposed rigid conditions as regards purity, unselfishness, and self-control on all candidates for such instruction. They distinctly refuse to impart knowledge of this kind to any who will not consent to a rigid discipline, intended to eliminate separateness of feeling and interest. They measure the moral strength of the candidate even more than his intellectual development, for the teaching itself will develope the intellect while it puts a strain on the moral nature. Far better that the Great Ones should be assailed by the ignorant for Their supposed selfishness in withholding knowledge, than that They should precipitate the world into another Atlantean catastrophe.

Since that experience with the risks of letting unclean hands handle knowledge, which is power, the great Teachers have set strict requirements regarding purity, selflessness, and self-control for all candidates seeking such teachings. They clearly refuse to share this kind of knowledge with anyone who isn't willing to follow a strict discipline designed to eliminate feelings of separation and conflicting interests. They assess the moral strength of the candidate even more than their intellectual growth, since the teachings themselves will develop the intellect while challenging the moral character. It’s far better for the Great Ones to be criticized by the ignorant for supposedly hoarding knowledge than to risk causing another disaster like the one that befell Atlantis.

So much of theory we lay down as bearing on the necessity of a hidden side in all religions. When from theory we[Pg 20] turn to facts, we naturally ask: Has this hidden side existed in the past, forming a part of the religions of the world? The answer must be an immediate and unhesitating affirmative; every great religion has claimed to possess a hidden teaching, and has declared that it is the repository of theoretical mystic, and further of practical mystic, or occult, knowledge. The mystic explanation of popular teaching was public, and expounded the latter as an allegory, giving to crude and irrational statements and stories a meaning which the intellect could accept. Behind this theoretical mysticism, as it was behind the popular, there existed further the practical mysticism, a hidden spiritual teaching, which was only imparted under definite conditions, conditions known and published, that must be fulfilled by every candidate. S. Clement of Alexandria mentions this division of the Mysteries. After purification, he says, "are the Minor Mysteries, which have some foundation of instruction and of preliminary preparation for what is to come after; and the Great Mysteries, in which nothing remains to be learned of[Pg 21] the universe, but only to contemplate and comprehend nature and things."[9]

So much of the theory we establish relates to the necessity of a hidden aspect in all religions. When we move from theory to facts, we naturally ask: Has this hidden aspect existed in the past, forming a part of the world’s religions? The answer must be a clear and confident yes; every major religion has claimed to have a hidden teaching and has stated that it holds both theoretical mystical and practical mystical, or occult, knowledge. The mystical interpretation of popular teachings was public and explained them as allegory, giving meaning to crude and irrational statements and stories that the intellect could accept. Behind this theoretical mysticism, just as it existed behind the popular teachings, was practical mysticism, a hidden spiritual teaching that was only shared under specific conditions—conditions that were known and made public, which every candidate had to fulfill. S. Clement of Alexandria refers to this division of the Mysteries. After purification, he says, "are the Minor Mysteries, which have some foundation of instruction and of preliminary preparation for what is to come after; and the Great Mysteries, in which nothing remains to be learned of the universe, but only to contemplate and understand nature and things."

This position cannot be controverted as regards the ancient religions. The Mysteries of Egypt were the glory of that ancient land, and the noblest sons of Greece, such as Plato, went to Saïs and to Thebes to be initiated by Egyptian Teachers of Wisdom. The Mithraic Mysteries of the Persians, the Orphic and Bacchic Mysteries and the later Eleusinian semi-Mysteries of the Greeks, the Mysteries of Samothrace, Scythia, Chaldea, are familiar in name, at least, as household words. Even in the extremely diluted form of the Eleusinian Mysteries, their value is most highly praised by the most eminent men of Greece, as Pindar, Sophocles, Isocrates, Plutarch, and Plato. Especially were they regarded as useful with regard to post-mortem existence, as the Initiated learned that which ensured his future happiness. Sopater further alleged that Initiation established a kinship of the soul with the divine Nature, and in[Pg 22] the exoteric Hymn to Demeter covert references are made to the holy child, Iacchus, and to his death and resurrection, as dealt with in the Mysteries.[10]

This viewpoint about ancient religions is undisputed. The Mysteries of Egypt were the pride of that ancient civilization, and the greatest minds of Greece, like Plato, traveled to Saïs and Thebes to be initiated by Egyptian Wise Teachers. The Mithraic Mysteries of the Persians, the Orphic and Bacchic Mysteries, and the later Eleusinian semi-Mysteries of the Greeks, along with the Mysteries of Samothrace, Scythia, and Chaldea, are at least known by name to many. Even in their greatly watered-down form, the Eleusinian Mysteries were highly praised by prominent figures of Greece, including Pindar, Sophocles, Isocrates, Plutarch, and Plato. They were particularly seen as beneficial in terms of post-mortem existence, as the Initiated learned what would guarantee their future happiness. Sopater also claimed that initiation created a connection between the soul and divine Nature, and in the exoteric Hymn to Demeter, there are subtle references to the holy child, Iacchus, and to his death and resurrection, which are explored in the Mysteries.[10]

From Iamblichus, the great theurgist of the third and fourth centuries A.D., much may be learned as to the object of the Mysteries. Theurgy was magic, "the last part of the sacerdotal science,"[11] and was practised in the Greater Mysteries, to evoke the appearance of superior Beings. The theory on which these Mysteries were based may be very briefly thus stated: There is One, prior to all beings, immovable, abiding in the solitude of His own unity. From That arises the Supreme God, the Self-begotten, the Good, the Source of all things, the Root, the God of Gods, the First Cause, unfolding Himself into Light.[12] From Him springs the Intelligible World, or ideal universe, the Universal Mind, the Nous and the incorporeal[Pg 23] or intelligible Gods belong to this. From this the World-Soul, to which belong the "divine intellectual forms which are present with the visible bodies of the Gods."[13] Then come various hierarchies of superhuman beings, Archangels, Archons (Rulers) or Cosmocratores, Angels, Daimons, &c. Man is a being of a lower order, allied to these in his nature, and is capable of knowing them; this knowledge was achieved in the Mysteries, and it led to union with God.[14] In the Mysteries these[Pg 24] doctrines are expounded, "the progression from, and the regression of all things to, the One, and the entire domination of the One,"[15] and, further, these different Beings were evoked, and appeared, sometimes to teach, sometimes, by Their mere presence, to elevate and purify. "The Gods," says Iamblichus, "being benevolent and propitious, impart their light to theurgists in unenvying abundance, calling upwards their souls to themselves, procuring them a union with themselves, and accustoming them, while they are yet in body, to be separated from bodies, and to be led round to their eternal and intelligible principle."[16][Pg 25] For "the soul having a twofold life, one being in conjunction with body, but the other being separate from all body,"[17] it is most necessary to learn to separate it from the body, that thus it may unite itself with the Gods by its intellectual and divine part, and learn the genuine principles of knowledge, and the truths of the intelligible world.[18] "The presence of the Gods, indeed, imparts to us health of body, virtue of soul, purity of intellect, and, in one word, elevates everything in us to its proper nature. It exhibits that which is not body as body to the eyes of the soul, through those of the body."[19] When the Gods appear, the soul receives "a liberation from the passions, a transcendent perfection, and an energy entirely more excellent, and participates of divine love and an immense joy."[20] By this we gain a divine life, and are rendered in reality divine.[21]

From Iamblichus, the great theurgist of the third and fourth centuries CE, we can learn a lot about the purpose of the Mysteries. Theurgy was a form of magic, described as "the last part of the sacerdotal science,"[11] and was practiced in the Greater Mysteries to summon the presence of higher Beings. The core idea behind these Mysteries can be summarized as follows: There is One, existing before all beings, unchangeable and existing in the solitude of His own unity. From That emerges the Supreme God, the Self-begotten, the Good, the Source of everything, the Root, the God of Gods, the First Cause, revealing Himself as Light.[12] From Him arises the Intelligible World, or ideal universe, the Universal Mind, the Nous, and the incorporeal[Pg 23] or intelligible Gods belong to this. Following this is the World-Soul, which encompasses the "divine intellectual forms that are present with the visible bodies of the Gods."[13] Then comes a variety of hierarchies of superhuman beings, including Archangels, Archons (Rulers) or Cosmocratores, Angels, Daimons, etc. Humans are beings of a lower order, connected to these in their nature, and are capable of knowing them; this understanding was achieved in the Mysteries and led to union with God.[14] In the Mysteries, these[Pg 24] teachings are expressed, "the progression from, and the regression of all things to, the One, and the complete dominance of the One,"[15] and, moreover, these different Beings were summoned and appeared, sometimes to teach, sometimes, just by being there, to uplift and purify. "The Gods," says Iamblichus, "being kind and favorable, share their light with theurgists generously, inviting their souls to ascend to them, granting them union with themselves, and training them, while still in the body, to be detached from bodies and to be led back to their eternal and intelligible source."[16][Pg 25] For "the soul has a dual existence, one connected to the body, but the other separate from all bodies,"[17] it is crucial to learn to separate it from the body, allowing it to unite with the Gods through its intellectual and divine aspect, and to understand the true principles of knowledge and the truths of the intelligible world.[18] "The presence of the Gods indeed brings us physical health, virtue of the soul, purity of intellect, and, in a word, elevates everything within us to its true nature. It reveals what is not body as body to the eyes of the soul, through the eyes of the body."[19] When the Gods appear, the soul experiences "freedom from passions, a higher perfection, and an energy that is truly superior, participating in divine love and immense joy."[20] Through this, we gain a divine life and are made truly divine.[21]

The culminating point of the Mysteries was when the Initiate became a God, whether by union with a divine Being outside himself, or by the realisation of the[Pg 26] divine Self within him. This was termed ecstasy, and was a state of what the Indian Yogî would term high Samâdhi, the gross body being entranced and the freed soul effecting its own union with the Great One. This "ecstasy is not a faculty properly so called, it is a state of the soul, which transforms it in such a way that it then perceives what was previously hidden from it. The state will not be permanent until our union with God is irrevocable; here, in earth life, ecstasy is but a flash.... Man can cease to become man, and become God; but man cannot be God and man at the same time."[22] Plotinus states that he had reached this state "but three times as yet."

The peak of the Mysteries happened when the Initiate became a God, either by merging with a divine Being outside of himself or by realizing the divine Self within him. This was called ecstasy, a state that the Indian Yogî would refer to as high Samâdhi, where the physical body is entranced and the liberated soul achieves union with the Great One. This "ecstasy is not exactly a faculty; it’s a state of the soul that transforms it so that it can perceive what was previously hidden. This state won’t be permanent until our union with God is irrevocable; here, in earthly life, ecstasy is just a fleeting moment.... A person can stop being human and become God; but one cannot be both God and human at the same time." Plotinus mentions that he has reached this state "but three times thus far."

So also Proclus taught that the one salvation of the soul was to return to her intellectual form, and thus escape from the "circle of generation, from abundant wanderings," and reach true Being, "to the uniform and simple energy of the period of sameness, instead of the abundantly wandering motion of the period which is characterised by difference." This[Pg 27] is the life sought by those initiated by Orpheus into the Mysteries of Bacchus and Proserpine, and this is the result of the practice of the purificatory, or cathartic, virtues.[23]

Proclus also taught that the only way for the soul to find salvation is to return to its true intellectual form, escaping the "cycle of creation and endless wandering," and achieving true existence, "to the uniform and simple energy of a state of sameness, rather than the endlessly wandering motion of a state characterized by differences." This[Pg 27] is the life sought by those initiated by Orpheus into the Mysteries of Bacchus and Proserpine, and it is the outcome of practicing the purifying, or cathartic, virtues.[23]

These virtues were necessary for the Greater Mysteries, as they concerned the purifying of the subtle body, in which the soul worked when out of the gross body. The political or practical virtues belonged to man's ordinary life, and were required to some extent before he could be a candidate even for such a School as is described below. Then came the cathartic virtues, by which the subtle body, that of the emotions and lower mind, was purified; thirdly the intellectual, belonging to the Augöeides, or the light-form of the intellect; fourthly the contemplative, or paradigmatic, by which union with God was realised. Porphyry writes: "He who energises according to the practical virtues is a worthy man; but he who energises according to the purifying virtues is an angelic man, or is also a good daimon. He who energises according to the intellectual[Pg 28] virtues alone is a God; but he who energises according to the paradigmatic virtues is the Father of the Gods."[24]

These virtues were essential for the Greater Mysteries because they involved purifying the subtle body, where the soul operates when it's not in the physical body. The political or practical virtues are part of everyday life and are somewhat necessary before someone can even consider joining a School like the one described below. Next are the cathartic virtues, which purify the subtle body related to emotions and the lower mind; then come the intellectual virtues, associated with the Augöeides, or the light form of intellect; and finally, the contemplative or paradigmatic virtues, through which union with God is achieved. Porphyry writes: "He who acts according to practical virtues is a worthy individual; but he who acts according to purifying virtues is an angelic person, or also a good daimon. He who acts solely according to intellectual virtues is a God; but he who acts according to paradigmatic virtues is the Father of the Gods."[24]

Much instruction was also given in the Mysteries by the archangelic and other hierarchies, and Pythagoras, the great teacher who was initiated in India, and who gave "the knowledge of things that are" to his pledged disciples, is said to have possessed such a knowledge of music that he could use it for the controlling of men's wildest passions, and the illuminating of their minds. Of this, instances are given by Iamblichus in his Life of Pythagoras. It seems probable that the title of Theodidaktos, given to Ammonius Saccas, the master of Plotinus, referred less to the sublimity of his teachings than to this divine instruction received by him in the Mysteries.

Much instruction was also offered in the Mysteries by the archangelic and other hierarchies. Pythagoras, the great teacher who was initiated in India and shared "the knowledge of things that are" with his dedicated disciples, is said to have had such an understanding of music that he could use it to control people's wildest passions and enlighten their minds. Iamblichus provides examples of this in his Life of Pythagoras. It seems likely that the title of Theodidaktos, given to Ammonius Saccas, the teacher of Plotinus, referred more to the divine instruction he received in the Mysteries than to the greatness of his teachings.

Some of the symbols used are explained by Iamblichus,[25] who bids Porphyry remove from his thought the image of the thing symbolised and reach its intellectual meaning. Thus "mire" meant everything[Pg 29] that was bodily and material; the "God sitting above the lotus" signified that God transcended both the mire and the intellect, symbolised by the lotus, and was established in Himself, being seated. If "sailing in a ship," His rule over the world was pictured. And so on.[26] On this use of symbols Proclus remarks that "the Orphic method aimed at revealing divine things by means of symbols, a method common to all writers of divine lore."[27]

Some of the symbols used are explained by Iamblichus,[25] who tells Porphyry to remove from his thoughts the image of the thing symbolized and understand its intellectual meaning. Thus, "mire" represented everything[Pg 29] that was physical and material; the "God sitting above the lotus" indicated that God transcended both the mire and the intellect, symbolized by the lotus, and was grounded in Himself, remaining seated. If "sailing in a ship," this depicted His rule over the world. And so on.[26] Regarding this use of symbols, Proclus notes that "the Orphic method aimed at revealing divine things through symbols, a method shared by all writers of divine lore."[27]

The Pythagorean School in Magna Græcia was closed at the end of the sixth century B.C., owing to the persecution of the civil power, but other communities existed, keeping up the sacred tradition.[28] Mead states that Plato intellectualised it, in order to protect it from an increasing profanation, and the Eleusinian rites preserved some of its forms, having lost its substance. The Neo-Platonists inherited from Pythagoras and Plato, and their works should be studied by those who would realise something of the grandeur[Pg 30] and the beauty preserved for the world in the Mysteries.

The Pythagorean School in Magna Graecia closed at the end of the sixth century B.C. due to government persecution, but other groups continued the sacred tradition. Mead notes that Plato intellectualized it to protect it from growing disrespect, and the Eleusinian rites preserved some of its forms, even though they lost their original meaning. The Neo-Platonists carried on the teachings of Pythagoras and Plato, and their works should be studied by anyone who wants to grasp some of the grandeur and beauty that the Mysteries have preserved for the world.

The Pythagorean School itself may serve as a type of the discipline enforced. On this Mead gives many interesting details,[29] and remarks: "The authors of antiquity are agreed that this discipline had succeeded in producing the highest examples, not only of the purest chastity and sentiment, but also a simplicity of manners, a delicacy, and a taste for serious pursuits which was unparalleled. This is admitted even by Christian writers." The School had outer disciples, leading the family and social life, and the above quotation refers to these. In the inner School were three degrees—the first of Hearers, who studied for two years in silence, doing their best to master the teachings; the second degree was of Mathematici, wherein were taught geometry and music, the nature of number, form, colour, and sound; the third degree was of Physici, who mastered cosmogony and metaphysics. This led up to the true Mysteries. Candidates for the School[Pg 31] must be "of an unblemished reputation and of a contented disposition."

The Pythagorean School itself can be seen as a model of the discipline it practiced. Mead provides many interesting details,[29] and comments: "The writers of ancient times agree that this discipline produced the highest examples of not only pure chastity and sentiment, but also a simplicity of manners, a delicacy, and a taste for serious pursuits that was unmatched. This is recognized even by Christian writers." The School had outer disciples who led family and social lives, and the quote above refers to these individuals. Inside the School, there were three degrees—the first was the Hearers, who studied for two years in silence, trying to fully grasp the teachings; the second degree was the Mathematici, where subjects like geometry and music, the nature of number, shape, color, and sound were taught; the third degree was the Physici, who studied cosmogony and metaphysics. This progression led to the true Mysteries. Candidates for the School[Pg 31] must have "an unblemished reputation and a contented disposition."

The close identity between the methods and aims pursued in these various Mysteries and those of Yoga in India is patent to the most superficial observer. It is not, however, necessary to suppose that the nations of antiquity drew from India; all alike drew from the one source, the Grand Lodge of Central Asia, which sent out its Initiates to every land. They all taught the same doctrines, and pursued the same methods, leading to the same ends. But there was much intercommunication between the Initiates of all nations, and there was a common language and a common symbolism. Thus Pythagoras journeyed among the Indians, and received in India a high Initiation, and Apollonius of Tyana later followed in his steps. Quite Indian in phrase as well as thought were the dying words of Plotinus: "Now I seek to lead back the Self within me to the All-self."[30]

The close connection between the methods and goals found in these various Mysteries and those of Yoga in India is clear to even the most casual observer. However, it's not necessary to assume that the ancient nations learned directly from India; instead, they all drew from the same source, the Grand Lodge of Central Asia, which sent out its Initiates to every region. They all taught the same principles and followed similar methods, leading to the same outcomes. There was significant communication among the Initiates of all nations, along with a shared language and symbolism. For example, Pythagoras traveled among the Indians and received a high Initiation there, and Apollonius of Tyana later followed his path. The final words of Plotinus were phrased in a distinctly Indian way: "Now I seek to lead back the Self within me to the All-self."[30]

Among the Hindus the duty of teaching the supreme knowledge only to the worthy[Pg 32] was strictly insisted on. "The deepest mystery of the end of knowledge ... is not to be declared to one who is not a son or a pupil, and who is not tranquil in mind."[31] So again, after a sketch of Yoga we read: "Stand up! awake! having found the Great Ones, listen! The road is as difficult to tread as the sharp edge of a razor. Thus say the wise."[32] The Teacher is needed, for written teaching alone does not suffice. The "end of knowledge" is to know God—not only to believe; to become one with God—not only to worship afar off. Man must know the reality of the divine Existence, and then know—not only vaguely believe and hope—that his own innermost Self is one with God, and that the aim of life is to realise that unity. Unless religion can guide a man to that realisation, it is but "as sounding brass or a tinkling cymbal."[33]

Among Hindus, it was emphasized that the supreme knowledge should only be taught to those who are worthy[Pg 32]. "The deepest mystery of the end of knowledge ... shouldn't be revealed to someone who is not a son or a student, and who isn't calm in mind."[31] After a brief overview of Yoga, we find: "Stand up! Wake up! Having found the Great Ones, listen! The path is as hard to walk as the sharp edge of a razor. This is what the wise say."[32] A Teacher is necessary because written teachings alone aren't enough. The "end of knowledge" is to truly know God—not just to believe; to become one with God—not just to worship from a distance. A person must understand the reality of the divine Existence, and then know—not just vaguely believe and hope—that their innermost Self is one with God, and that the purpose of life is to realize that unity. If religion can't lead someone to that realization, it is merely "like sounding brass or a tinkling cymbal."[33]

So also it was asserted that man should learn to leave the gross body: "Let a man with firmness separate it [the soul][Pg 33] from his own body, as a grass-stalk from its sheath."[34] And it was written! "In the golden highest sheath dwells the stainless, changeless Brahman; It is the radiant white Light of lights, known to the knowers of the Self."[35] "When the seer sees the golden-coloured Creator, the Lord, the Spirit, whose womb is Brahman, then, having thrown away merit and demerit, stainless, the wise one reaches the highest union."[36]

It was also said that a person should learn to detach from their physical body: "A person should firmly separate the soul from the body, just like a blade of grass is separated from its sheath."[Pg 33] And it was written! "In the highest golden sheath resides the pure, unchanging Brahman; it is the radiant white Light of lights, recognized by those who understand the Self." When the seer perceives the golden Creator, the Lord, the Spirit, whose essence is Brahman, then, having discarded both merit and demerit, the wise one attains the highest unity.

Nor were the Hebrews without their secret knowledge and their Schools of Initiation. The company of prophets at Naioth presided over by Samuel[37] formed such a School, and the oral teaching was handed down by them. Similar Schools existed at Bethel and Jericho,[38] and in Cruden's Concordance[39] there is the following interesting note: "The Schools or Colleges of the prophets are the first [schools] of which we have any account in Scripture; where the children of the prophets, that is, their disciples, lived in[Pg 34] the exercises of a retired and austere life, in study and meditation, and reading of the law of God.... These Schools, or Societies, of the prophets were succeeded by the Synagogues." The Kabbala, which contains the semi-public teaching, is, as it now stands, a modern compilation, part of it being the work of Rabbi Moses de Leon, who died A.D. 1305. It consists of five books, Bahir, Zohar, Sepher Sephiroth, Sepher Yetzirah, and Asch Metzareth, and is asserted to have been transmitted orally from very ancient times—as antiquity is reckoned historically. Dr. Wynn Westcott says that "Hebrew tradition assigns the oldest parts of the Zohar to a date antecedent to the building of the second Temple;" and Rabbi Simeon ben Jochai is said to have written down some of it in the first century A.D. The Sepher Yetzirah is spoken of by Saadjah Gaon, who died A.D. 940, as "very ancient."[40] Some portions of the ancient oral teaching have been incorporated in the Kabbala as it now stands, but the true archaic wisdom of the Hebrews[Pg 35] remains in the guardianship of a few of the true sons of Israel.

Nor were the Hebrews lacking in their secret knowledge and their Schools of Initiation. The community of prophets at Naioth, led by Samuel[37], formed one of these Schools, where oral teachings were passed down. Similar Schools existed at Bethel and Jericho,[38] and in Cruden's Concordance[39], there's an interesting note: "The Schools or Colleges of the prophets are the first [schools] mentioned in Scripture, where the children of the prophets, their disciples, led a disciplined and austere life focused on study, meditation, and reading the law of God.... These Schools or Societies of the prophets were later succeeded by the Synagogues." The Kabbala, which contains the semi-public teachings, is, as it stands now, a modern compilation, with part of it credited to Rabbi Moses de Leon, who died CE 1305. It consists of five books: Bahir, Zohar, Sepher Sephiroth, Sepher Yetzirah, and Asch Metzareth, and it is said to have been passed down orally from very ancient times—as far back as history records. Dr. Wynn Westcott states that "Hebrew tradition dates the oldest parts of the Zohar to a period before the construction of the second Temple;" and Rabbi Simeon ben Jochai is believed to have documented some of it in the first century CE The Sepher Yetzirah is mentioned by Saadjah Gaon, who died A.D. 940, as "very ancient."[40] Some parts of the ancient oral teachings have been included in the Kabbala as it exists today, but the genuine ancient wisdom of the Hebrews[Pg 35] is still safeguarded by a few of the true sons of Israel.

Brief as is this outline, it is sufficient to show the existence of a hidden side in the religions of the world outside Christianity, and we may now examine the question whether Christianity was an exception to this universal rule.

Brief as this outline is, it is enough to show that there is a hidden side to the religions of the world outside of Christianity, and we can now look into whether Christianity was an exception to this universal rule.


Chapter 2.

THE HIDDEN SIDE OF CHRISTIANITY.

(a) The Testimony of the Scriptures.

Having seen that the religions of the past claimed with one voice to have a hidden side, to be custodians of "Mysteries," and that this claim was endorsed by the seeking of initiation by the greatest men, we must now ascertain whether Christianity stands outside this circle of religions, and alone is without a Gnosis, offering to the world only a simple faith and not a profound knowledge. Were it so, it would indeed be a sad and lamentable fact, proving Christianity to be intended for a class only, and not for all types of human beings. But that it is not so, we shall be able to prove beyond the possibility of rational doubt.

Having noticed that the religions of the past all claimed to have a hidden aspect and were guardians of "Mysteries," and that this was supported by the greatest men seeking initiation, we now need to determine whether Christianity exists outside this group of religions, lacking a deeper knowledge and offering only simple faith. If that were the case, it would be a disappointing reality, suggesting that Christianity is meant for a select few and not for all people. However, we will be able to prove that this is not the case beyond any reasonable doubt.

And that proof is the thing which[Pg 37] Christendom at this time most sorely needs, for the very flower of Christendom is perishing for lack of knowledge. If the esoteric teaching can be re-established and win patient and earnest students, it will not be long before the occult is also restored. Disciples of the Lesser Mysteries will become candidates for the Greater, and with the regaining of knowledge will come again the authority of teaching. And truly the need is great. For, looking at the world around us, we find that religion in the West is suffering from the very difficulty that theoretically we should expect to find. Christianity, having lost its mystic and esoteric teaching, is losing its hold on a large number of the more highly educated, and the partial revival during the past few years is co-incident with the re-introduction of some mystic teaching. It is patent to every student of the closing forty years of the last century, that crowds of thoughtful and moral people have slipped away from the churches, because the teachings they received there outraged their intelligence and shocked their moral sense. It is idle[Pg 38] to pretend that the wide-spread agnosticism of this period had its root either in lack of morality or in deliberate crookedness of mind. Everyone who carefully studies the phenomena presented will admit that men of strong intellect have been driven out of Christianity by the crudity of the religious ideas set before them, the contradictions in the authoritative teachings, the views as to God, man, and the universe that no trained intelligence could possibly admit. Nor can it be said that any kind of moral degradation lay at the root of the revolt against the dogmas of the Church. The rebels were not too bad for their religion; on the contrary, it was the religion that was too bad for them. The rebellion against popular Christianity was due to the awakening and the growth of conscience; it was the conscience that revolted, as well as the intelligence, against teachings dishonouring to God and man alike, that represented God as a tyrant, and man as essentially evil, gaining salvation by slavish submission.

And that proof is what Christendom desperately needs right now, because the very essence of Christendom is dying for lack of knowledge. If the hidden teachings can be re-established and attract dedicated and serious students, it won't be long before the occult is also revived. Disciples of the Lesser Mysteries will become candidates for the Greater, and as knowledge is regained, the authority of teaching will emerge again. The need is indeed great. Looking at the world around us, we see that religion in the West is facing the very issues we’d expect theoretically. Christianity, having lost its mystical and esoteric teachings, is losing its appeal to many educated people, and the partial revival we've seen in recent years coincides with the reintroduction of some mystical teachings. It’s clear to anyone studying the last forty years of the last century that many thoughtful and moral individuals have distanced themselves from churches because the teachings they received there insulted their intelligence and shocked their moral sensibilities. It’s pointless to pretend that the widespread agnosticism of this period is rooted in a lack of morality or deliberate dishonesty. Anyone who studies the situation carefully will agree that people of strong intellect have left Christianity because of the simplistic religious ideas presented, the contradictions in the authoritative teachings, and the views of God, humanity, and the universe that no educated mind could accept. Moreover, it can’t be said that moral degradation was the reason for the rejection of the Church’s dogmas. The dissenters weren't immoral; rather, it was the religion that didn't align with their principles. The rebellion against mainstream Christianity arose from an awakening and growth of conscience; it was both conscience and intelligence that reacted against teachings that dishonored both God and humanity, which depicted God as a tyrant and humanity as fundamentally evil, deserving salvation only through blind submission.

The reason for this revolt lay in the gradual descent of Christian teaching into[Pg 39] so-called simplicity, so that the most ignorant might be able to grasp it. Protestant religionists asserted loudly that nothing ought to be preached save that which every one could grasp, that the glory of the Gospel lay in its simplicity, and that the child and the unlearned ought to be able to understand and apply it to life. True enough, if by this it were meant that there are some religious truths that all can grasp, and that a religion fails if it leaves the lowest, the most ignorant, the most dull, outside the pale of its elevating influence. But false, utterly false, if by this it be meant that religion has no truths that the ignorant cannot understand, that it is so poor and limited a thing that it has nothing to teach which is above the thought of the unintelligent or above the moral purview of the degraded. False, fatally false, if such be the meaning; for as that view spreads, occupying the pulpits and being sounded in the churches, many noble men and women, whose hearts are half-broken as they sever the links that bind them to their early faith, withdraw from the churches, and leave their places[Pg 40] to be filled by the hypocritical and the ignorant. They pass either into a state of passive agnosticism, or—if they be young and enthusiastic—into a condition of active aggression, not believing that that can be the highest which outrages alike intellect and conscience, and preferring the honesty of open unbelief to the drugging of the intellect and the conscience at the bidding of an authority in which they recognise nothing that is divine.

The reason for this rebellion was the slow decline of Christian teaching into a so-called simplicity, making it accessible to even the most ignorant. Protestant believers insisted that only what everyone could understand should be preached, arguing that the beauty of the Gospel is in its simplicity, and that children and the unlearned should easily understand and apply it to their lives. This is true if it means that there are some religious truths that everyone can grasp and that a religion fails if it excludes the lowest, the most ignorant, and the dull from its uplifting influence. However, it is completely false if it suggests that religion has no truths beyond the understanding of the ignorant, that it is so limited that it fails to teach anything above the capacity of the unintelligent or the morally degraded. This is fundamentally wrong; as this idea spreads, taking over pulpits and echoing in churches, many noble men and women, whose hearts are broken as they break away from their early faith, leave the churches to be filled by the hypocritical and the ignorant. They either fall into a state of passive agnosticism or—if they are young and passionate—into a state of active rebellion, unwilling to accept that what disrespects both intellect and conscience can be the highest truth, and preferring the honesty of open disbelief to the numbness of intellect and conscience under the influence of an authority they see as devoid of anything divine.

In thus studying the thought of our time we see that the question of a hidden teaching in connection with Christianity becomes of vital importance. Is Christianity to survive as the religion of the West? Is it to live through the centuries of the future, and to continue to play a part in moulding the thought of the evolving western races? If it is to live, it must regain the knowledge it has lost, and again have its mystic and its occult teachings; it must again stand forth as an authoritative teacher of spiritual verities, clothed with the only authority worth anything, the authority of knowledge. If these teachings be regained, their influence[Pg 41] will soon be seen in wider and deeper views of truth; dogmas, which now seem like mere shells and fetters, shall again be seen to be partial presentments of fundamental realities. First, Esoteric Christianity will reappear in the "Holy Place," in the Temple, so that all who are capable of receiving it may follow its lines of published thought; and secondly, Occult Christianity will again descend into the Adytum, dwelling behind the Veil which guards the "Holy of Holies," into which only the Initiate may enter. Then again will occult teaching be within the reach of those who qualify themselves to receive it, according to the ancient rules, those who are willing in modern days to meet the ancient demands, made on all those who would fain know the reality and truth of spiritual things.

As we study the ideas of our time, it becomes clear that the issue of a hidden teaching related to Christianity is extremely important. Will Christianity continue to be the religion of the West? Will it survive through the centuries to come and keep influencing the thoughts of developing Western societies? If it's going to survive, it needs to reclaim the knowledge it has lost and revive its mystical and occult teachings; it must reemerge as a credible authority on spiritual truths, backed by the only authority that matters—the authority of knowledge. If these teachings are restored, their impact will soon be evident in broader and deeper understandings of truth; doctrines that now appear as mere facades and constraints will again be recognized as partial representations of fundamental realities. First, Esoteric Christianity will rise again in the "Holy Place," in the Temple, so that anyone capable of receiving it may engage with its published ideas; and second, Occult Christianity will once more retreat into the Adytum, hidden behind the Veil that protects the "Holy of Holies," which only the Initiate can access. Then, occult teaching will be available to those who qualify to receive it, according to ancient standards, for those willing in today’s world to meet the age-old requirements set for anyone who truly seeks to understand the reality and truth of spiritual matters.

Once again we turn our eyes to history, to see whether Christianity was unique among religions in having no inner teaching, or whether it resembled all others in possessing this hidden treasure. Such a question is a matter of evidence, not of theory, and must be decided by the[Pg 42] authority of the existing documents and not by the mere ipse dixit of modern Christians.

Once again, we look to history to determine whether Christianity was unique among religions in lacking an inner teaching, or if it was similar to others in having this hidden treasure. This question is based on evidence, not theory, and must be settled by the authority of the available documents, not by the mere statements of modern Christians. [Pg 42]

As a matter of fact both the "New Testament" and the writings of the early Church make the same declarations as to the possession by the Church of such teachings, and we learn from these the fact of the existence of Mysteries—called the Mysteries of Jesus, or the Mystery of the Kingdom—the conditions imposed on candidates, something of the general nature of the teachings given, and other details. Certain passages in the "New Testament" would remain entirely obscure, if it were not for the light thrown on them by the definite statements of the Fathers and Bishops of the Church, but in that light they became clear and intelligible.

As a matter of fact, both the "New Testament" and the writings of the early Church make the same claims about the Church's possession of these teachings. From them, we learn about the existence of Mysteries—referred to as the Mysteries of Jesus or the Mystery of the Kingdom—the requirements placed on candidates, some insight into the general nature of the teachings given, and additional details. Certain passages in the "New Testament" would be completely unclear if it weren't for the clarity provided by the precise statements of the Fathers and Bishops of the Church, but with that perspective, they become clear and understandable.

It would indeed have been strange had it been otherwise when we consider the lines of religious thought which influenced primitive Christianity. Allied to the Hebrews, the Persians, and the Greeks, tinged by the older faiths of India, deeply coloured by Syrian and Egyptian[Pg 43] thought, this later branch of the great religious stem could not do other than again re-affirm the ancient traditions, and place in the grasp of western races the full treasure of the ancient teaching. "The faith once delivered to the saints" would indeed have been shorn of its chief value if, when delivered to the West, the pearl of esoteric teaching had been withheld.

It would have been quite odd if it were any different when we think about the religious ideas that shaped early Christianity. Connected to the Hebrews, Persians, and Greeks, influenced by the older religions of India, and heavily colored by Syrian and Egyptian thought, this later branch of the great religious tradition couldn’t help but reaffirm the ancient beliefs and offer the full wealth of ancient teachings to Western cultures. "The faith once delivered to the saints" would have lost its main value if the hidden wisdom had been kept away when it reached the West.

The first evidence to be examined is that of the "New Testament." For our purpose we may put aside all the vexed questions of different readings and different authors, that can only be decided by scholars. Critical scholarship has much to say on the age of MSS., on the authenticity of documents, and so on. But we need not concern ourselves with these. We may accept the canonical Scriptures, as showing what was believed in the early Church as to the teaching of the Christ and of His immediate followers, and see what they say as to the existence of a secret teaching given only to the few. Having seen the words put into the mouth of Jesus Himself, and regarded by the Church as of supreme authority, we will[Pg 44] look at the writings of the great apostle S. Paul; then we will consider the statements made by those who inherited the apostolic tradition and guided the Church during the first centuries A.D. Along this unbroken line of tradition and written testimony the proposition that Christianity had a hidden side can be established. We shall further find that the Lesser Mysteries of mystic interpretation can be traced through the centuries to the beginning of the 19th century, and that though there were no Schools of Mysticism recognised as preparatory to Initiation, after the disappearance of the Mysteries, yet great Mystics, from time to time, reached the lower stages of exstasy, by their own sustained efforts, aided doubtless by invisible Teachers.

The first evidence we need to look at is the "New Testament." For our purposes, we can set aside all the complicated questions about different interpretations and authors, which can only be settled by experts. Critical scholarship has a lot to say about the age of manuscripts, the authenticity of documents, and so on. But we don't need to focus on those issues. We can accept the canonical Scriptures as reflections of what was believed in the early Church regarding the teachings of Christ and His immediate followers, and see what they say about the existence of a secret teaching meant only for a select few. After examining the words attributed to Jesus Himself, which the Church considers to be of utmost authority, we will look at the writings of the great apostle St. Paul; then we will consider the statements made by those who carried on the apostolic tradition and guided the Church during the first centuries A.D. Throughout this continuous line of tradition and written evidence, we can establish the idea that Christianity had a hidden aspect. We will also find that the Lesser Mysteries of mystical interpretation can be traced through the centuries up to the early 19th century, and that even though there were no officially recognized Schools of Mysticism as preparatory paths for Initiation after the Mysteries disappeared, great Mystics occasionally reached lower stages of ecstasy through their own dedicated efforts, likely supported by invisible Teachers.

The words of the Master Himself are clear and definite, and were, as we shall see, quoted by Origen as referring to the secret teaching preserved in the Church. "And when he was alone, they that were about Him with the twelve asked of Him the parable. And He said unto them, 'Unto you it is given to know the mystery[Pg 45] of the kingdom of God, but unto them that are without, all these things are done in parables.'" And later: "With many such parables spake He the word unto them, as they were able to hear it. But without a parable spake He not unto them; and when they were alone He expounded all things to His disciples."[41] Mark the significant words, "when they were alone," and the phrase, "them that are without." So also in the version of S. Matthew: "Jesus sent the multitude away, and went into the house; and His disciples came unto Him." These teachings given "in the house," the innermost meanings of His instructions, were alleged to be handed on from teacher to teacher. The Gospel gives, it will be noted, the allegorical mystic explanation, that which we have called The Lesser Mysteries, but the deeper meaning was said to be given only to the Initiates.

The words of the Master Himself are clear and precise, and, as we will see, were quoted by Origen as referring to the hidden teachings kept within the Church. "And when He was alone, those around Him with the twelve asked Him about the parable. He replied, 'To you, it's granted to know the mystery[Pg 45] of the kingdom of God, but to those outside, everything is presented in parables.'" Later, He said: "With many such parables, He taught them as they were able to understand. But He didn't speak to them without a parable; when they were alone, He explained everything to His disciples."[41] Pay attention to the important words, "when they were alone," and the phrase, "those outside." Similarly, in the account of S. Matthew: "Jesus sent the crowd away and went into the house; His disciples came to Him." These teachings given "in the house," the core meanings of His lessons, were said to be passed down from teacher to teacher. The Gospel presents, as you might notice, the allegorical mystical explanation, what we refer to as The Lesser Mysteries, but the deeper meaning was said to be reserved only for the Initiates.

Again, Jesus tells even His apostles: "I have yet many things to say to you, but[Pg 46] ye cannot bear them now."[42] Some of them were probably said after His death, when He was seen of His disciples, "speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of God."[43] None of these have been publicly recorded, but who can believe that they were neglected or forgotten, and were not handed down as a priceless possession? There was a tradition in the Church that He visited His apostles for a considerable period after His death, for the sake of giving them instruction—a fact that will be referred to later—and in the famous Gnostic treatise, the Pistis Sophia, we read: "It came to pass, when Jesus had risen from the dead, that He passed eleven years speaking with His disciples and instructing them."[44] Then there is the phrase, which many would fain soften and explain away: "Give not that which is holy to the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine"[45]—a precept which is of general application indeed, but was considered by the early[Pg 47] Church to refer to the secret teachings. It should be remembered that the words had not the same harshness of sound in the ancient days as they have now; for the words "dogs"—like "the vulgar," "the profane"—was applied by those within a certain circle to all who were outside its pale, whether by a society or association, or by a nation—as by the Jews to all Gentiles.[46] It was sometimes used to designate those who were outside the circle of Initiates, and we find it employed in that sense in the early Church; those who, not having been initiated into the Mysteries, were regarded as being outside "the kingdom of God," or "the spiritual Israel," had this name applied to them.

Again, Jesus tells even His apostles: "I still have many things to say to you, but[Pg 46] you can't handle them right now."[42] Some of these were probably shared after His death, when He appeared to His disciples, "talking about things related to the kingdom of God."[43] None of these have been publicly recorded, but who can believe they were ignored or forgotten and not passed down as a valuable treasure? There was a tradition in the Church that He visited His apostles for a significant time after His death to give them guidance—a point that will be discussed later—and in the well-known Gnostic text, the Pistis Sophia, it states: "It happened that when Jesus rose from the dead, He spent eleven years speaking with His disciples and teaching them."[44] Then there’s the phrase that many people want to soften and explain away: "Don’t give what is holy to the dogs, and don’t throw your pearls before pigs."[45] This guideline is generally applicable, but the early Church viewed it as referring to secret teachings. It’s important to remember that these words didn’t sound as harsh in ancient times as they do today; for the term "dogs"—like "the vulgar," "the profane"—was used by those within a certain group to describe anyone outside it, whether by a social circle or a nation—as the Jews did to all Gentiles.[46] It was sometimes used to refer to those outside the circle of Initiates, and we see it used this way in the early Church; those who hadn’t been initiated into the Mysteries were regarded as outside "the kingdom of God" or "the spiritual Israel" and were called by this name.

There were several names, exclusive of the term "The Mystery," or "The Mysteries," used to designate the sacred circle of the Initiates or connected with Initiation: "The Kingdom," "The Kingdom of God," "The Kingdom of Heaven," "The Narrow Path," "The Strait Gate,"[Pg 48] "The Perfect," "The Saved," "Life Eternal," "Life," "The Second Birth," "A Little One," "A Little Child." The meaning is made plain by the use of these words in early Christian writings, and in some cases even outside the Christian pale. Thus the term, "The Perfect," was used by the Essenes, who had three orders in their communities: the Neophytes, the Brethren, and the Perfect—the latter being Initiates; and it is employed generally in that sense in old writings. "The Little Child" was the ordinary name for a candidate just initiated, i.e., who had just taken his "second birth."

There were several names, aside from "The Mystery" or "The Mysteries," used to refer to the sacred group of Initiates or related to Initiation: "The Kingdom," "The Kingdom of God," "The Kingdom of Heaven," "The Narrow Path," "The Strait Gate,"[Pg 48] "The Perfect," "The Saved," "Life Eternal," "Life," "The Second Birth," "A Little One," "A Little Child." The meaning is clarified by the use of these terms in early Christian writings and, in some cases, even outside of Christianity. For example, "The Perfect" was used by the Essenes, who had three orders in their communities: the Neophytes, the Brethren, and the Perfect—the last group being the Initiates; and it is generally used in that sense in ancient texts. "The Little Child" was the common name for a candidate who had just been initiated, meaning someone who had just experienced their "second birth."

When we know this use, many obscure and otherwise harsh passages become intelligible. "Then said one unto Him: Lord, are there few that be saved? And He said unto them: Strive to enter in at the strait gate; for many, I say unto you, will seek to enter in and shall not be able."[47] If this be applied in the ordinary Protestant way to salvation from everlasting hell-fire, the statement becomes incredible, shocking. No Saviour of the[Pg 49] world can be supposed to assert that many will seek to avoid hell and enter heaven, but will not be able to do so. But as applied to the narrow gateway of Initiation and to salvation from rebirth, it is perfectly true and natural. So again: "Enter ye in at the strait gate; for wide is the gate and broad is the way that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat; because strait is the gate and narrow is the way which leadeth unto life; and few there be that find it."[48] The warning which immediately follows against the false prophets, the teachers of the dark Mysteries, is most apposite in this connection. No student can miss the familiar ring of these words used in this same sense in other writings. The "ancient narrow way" is familiar to all; the path "difficult to tread as the sharp edge of a razor,"[49] already mentioned; the going "from death to death" of those who follow the flower-strewn path of desires, who do not know God; for those men only become immortal and escape[Pg 50] from the wide mouth of death, from ever repeated destruction, who have quitted all desires.[50] The allusion to death is, of course, to the repeated births of the soul into gross material existence, regarded always as "death" compared to the "life" of the higher and subtler worlds.

When we understand this use, many unclear and harsh statements become clear. "Then one asked Him: Lord, are there few that will be saved? And He replied: Strive to enter through the narrow gate; for many, I tell you, will try to enter and won't be able to." If this is interpreted in the common Protestant way as salvation from eternal hellfire, the statement becomes unbelievable and shocking. No Savior of the world would claim that many will try to avoid hell and reach heaven but won’t succeed. However, when applied to the narrow gateway of Initiation and salvation from rebirth, it makes perfect sense. Again, "Enter through the narrow gate; for wide is the gate and broad is the road that leads to destruction, and many enter through it; but small is the gate and narrow the road that leads to life, and only a few find it." The warning that follows against false prophets, the teachers of dark Mysteries, is very relevant here. No student can overlook the familiar tone of these words used in this context in other writings. The "ancient narrow way" is known to all; the path "difficult to tread as the sharp edge of a razor," already mentioned; the path that leads "from death to death" for those who follow the pleasure-filled path of desires, who do not know God; for only those who abandon all desires become immortal and escape from the gaping mouth of death, from endless destruction. The mention of death refers, of course, to the repeated births of the soul into gross material existence, always seen as "death" compared to the "life" of the higher and subtler worlds.

This "Strait Gate" was the gateway of Initiation, and through it a candidate entered "The Kingdom." And it ever has been, and must be, true that only a few can enter that gateway, though myriads—an exceedingly "great multitude, which no man could number,"[51] not a few—enter into the happiness of the heaven-world. So also spoke another great Teacher, nearly three thousand years earlier: "Among thousands of men scarce one striveth for perfection; of the successful strivers scarce one knoweth me in essence."[52] For the Initiates are few in each generation, the flower of humanity; but no gloomy sentence of everlasting woe is pronounced in this statement on the vast majority of the human race. The[Pg 51] saved are, as Proclus taught,[53] those who escape from the circle of generation, within which humanity is bound.

This "Strait Gate" was the entrance to Initiation, and through it a candidate would enter "The Kingdom." It has always been, and must be, true that only a few can pass through that gate, even though countless others—a "great multitude, which no one could count,"[51] are able to experience the joy of the heavenly world. Another great Teacher, nearly three thousand years ago, also said: "Out of thousands of men, hardly one seeks perfection; of those who succeed in striving, hardly one knows me in essence."[52] The Initiates are few in each generation, the elite of humanity; however, this statement does not carry a gloomy sentence of eternal doom for the vast majority of people. The[Pg 51] saved are, as Proclus taught,[53] those who break free from the cycle of generation, within which humanity is trapped.

In this connection we may recall the story of the young man who came to Jesus, and, addressing Him as "Good Master," asked how he might win eternal life—the well-recognised liberation from rebirth by knowledge of God.[54] His first answer was the regular exoteric precept: "Keep the commandments." But when the young man answered: "All these things have I kept from my youth up;" then, to that conscience free from all knowledge of transgression, came the answer of the true Teacher: "If thou wilt be perfect, go and sell that thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven; and come and follow me." "If thou wilt be perfect," be a member of the Kingdom, poverty and obedience must be embraced. And then to His own disciples Jesus explains that a rich man can hardly enter the Kingdom of Heaven, such entrance[Pg 52] being more difficult than for a camel to pass through the eye of a needle; with men such entrance could not be, with God all things were possible.[55] Only God in man can pass that barrier.

In this context, we remember the story of the young man who came to Jesus, calling Him "Good Master," and asked how he could achieve eternal life—the well-known release from rebirth through knowledge of God.[54] His first reply was the usual teaching: "Keep the commandments." But when the young man responded, "I've followed all these from my youth," the true Teacher answered him, "If you want to be perfect, go sell what you have, give to the poor, and you'll have treasure in heaven; then come follow me." "If you want to be perfect," to be part of the Kingdom, you must embrace poverty and obedience. Then, Jesus explains to His disciples that it's very hard for a rich person to enter the Kingdom of Heaven; it’s more challenging than a camel going through the eye of a needle. With human effort, it's impossible, but with God, everything is possible.[55] Only God within a person can overcome that barrier.

This text has been variously explained away, it being obviously impossible to take it in its surface meaning, that a rich man cannot enter a post-mortem state of happiness. Into that state the rich man may enter as well as the poor, and the universal practice of Christians shows that they do not for one moment believe that riches imperil their happiness after death. But if the real meaning of the Kingdom of Heaven be taken, we have the expression of a simple and direct fact. For that knowledge of God which is Eternal Life[56] cannot be gained till everything earthly is surrendered, cannot be learned until everything has been sacrificed. The man must give up not only earthly wealth, which henceforth may only pass through his hands as steward, but he must give up his inner wealth as well, so far as he holds it[Pg 53] as his own against the world; until he is stripped naked he cannot pass the narrow gateway. Such has ever been a condition of Initiation, and "poverty, obedience, chastity," has been the vow of the candidate.

This text has been explained in many ways, as it's clearly impossible to interpret it at face value—that a rich person can't achieve a state of happiness after death. A rich person can enter that state just like a poor person can, and the widespread belief among Christians shows they don’t think for a second that wealth endangers their happiness in the afterlife. However, if we consider the true meaning of the Kingdom of Heaven, we see it expresses a simple and direct reality. The knowledge of God, which is Eternal Life[56], cannot be attained until everything worldly is given up; it can only be learned after all has been sacrificed. A person must relinquish not just worldly wealth, which from now on can only flow through their hands as a steward, but also their inner wealth, as long as they clutch it[Pg 53] as their own against the world; until they are stripped bare, they cannot pass through the narrow gateway. This has always been a requirement of Initiation, and the vows of the candidate have been "poverty, obedience, chastity."

The "second birth" is another well-recognised term for Initiation; even now in India the higher castes are called "twice-born," and the ceremony that makes them twice-born is a ceremony of Initiation—mere husk truly, in these modern days, but the "pattern of things in the heavens."[57] When Jesus is speaking to Nicodemus, He states that "Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God," and this birth is spoken of as that "of water and the Spirit;"[58] this is the first Initiation; a later one is that of "the Holy Ghost and fire,"[59] the baptism of the Initiate in his manhood, as the first is that of birth, which welcomes him as "the Little Child" entering the Kingdom.[60] How thoroughly this imagery was familiar among the mystic of the Jews is shown[Pg 54] by the surprise evinced by Jesus when Nicodemus stumbled over His mystic phraseology: "Art thou a master of Israel, and knowest not these things?"[61]

The "second birth" is another well-known term for Initiation; even today in India, the higher castes are referred to as "twice-born," and the ceremony that makes them twice-born is an initiation ceremony—just a shell, really, in these modern times, but the "pattern of things in the heavens."[57] When Jesus speaks to Nicodemus, He says, "Unless someone is born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God," and this birth is described as "of water and the Spirit;"[58] this is the first Initiation; a later one is "the Holy Ghost and fire,"[59] the baptism of the Initiate in his adulthood, while the first is about birth, welcoming him as "the Little Child" entering the Kingdom.[60] How well this imagery was understood among Jewish mystics is illustrated[Pg 54] by the surprise shown by Jesus when Nicodemus struggled with His mystical language: "Are you a teacher of Israel and don’t understand these things?"[61]

Another precept of Jesus which remains as "a hard saying" to his followers is: "Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect."[62] The ordinary Christian knows that he cannot possibly obey this command; full of ordinary human frailties and weaknesses, how can he become perfect as God is perfect? Seeing the impossibility of the achievement set before him, he quietly puts it aside, and thinks no more about it. But seen as the crowning effort of many lives of steady improvement, as the triumph of the God within us over the lower nature, it comes within calculable distance, and we recall the words of Porphyry, how the man who achieves "the paradigmatic virtues is the Father of the Gods,"[63] and that in the Mysteries these virtues were acquired.

Another teaching of Jesus that continues to be seen as "a hard saying" by his followers is: "Be perfect, just as your Father in heaven is perfect."[62] The average Christian understands that they can't possibly follow this command; filled with common human flaws and weaknesses, how can they become perfect like God? Recognizing the impossibility of this goal, they often set it aside and forget about it. However, when viewed as the ultimate result of many lives dedicated to steady improvement, as the victory of the divine within us over our lower nature, it becomes more attainable. We remember the words of Porphyry, who said that the person who achieves "the paradigmatic virtues is the Father of the Gods,"[63] and that in the Mysteries, these virtues were attained.

S. Paul follows in the footsteps of his[Pg 55] Master, and speaks in exactly the same sense, but, as might be expected from his organising work in the Church, with greater explicitness and clearness. The student should read with attention chapters ii. and iii., and verse 1 of chapter iv. of the First Epistle to the Corinthians, remembering, as he reads, that the words are addressed to baptised and communicant members of the Church, full members from the modern standpoint, although described as babes and carnal by the Apostle. They were not catechumens or neophytes, but men and women who were in complete possession of all the privileges and responsibilities of Church membership, recognised by the Apostle as being separate from the world, and expected not to behave as men of the world. They were, in fact, in possession of all that the modern Church gives to its members. Let us summarise the Apostle's words:

S. Paul follows in the footsteps of his[Pg 55] Master and speaks in exactly the same way, but, as you'd expect from his organizational work in the Church, with more clarity and detail. The student should read carefully chapters ii. and iii., and verse 1 of chapter iv. of the First Epistle to the Corinthians, keeping in mind that these words are directed at baptized and communicant members of the Church—full members by today’s standards—though described as infants and worldly by the Apostle. They were not catechumens or new converts, but men and women who held all the privileges and responsibilities of Church membership, recognized by the Apostle as separate from the world and expected not to act like worldly people. They truly had all that the modern Church offers its members. Let’s summarize the Apostle's words:

"I came to you bearing the divine testimony, not alluring you with human wisdom but with the power of the Spirit. Truly 'we speak wisdom among them that are perfect,' but it is no human[Pg 56] wisdom. 'We speak the wisdom of God in a mystery, even the hidden wisdom, which God ordained before the world' began, and which none even of the princes of this world know. The things of that wisdom are beyond men's thinking, 'but God hath revealed them unto us by his Spirit ... the deep things of God,' 'which the Holy Ghost teacheth.'[64] These are spiritual things, to be discerned only by the spiritual man, in whom is the mind of Christ. 'And I, brethren, could not speak unto you as unto spiritual, but as unto carnal, even as unto babes in Christ.... Ye were not able to bear it, neither yet now are ye able. For ye are yet carnal.' 'As a wise master-builder[65] I have laid the foundation,' and 'ye are the temple of God, and the Spirit of God dwelleth in you.' 'Let a man[Pg 57] so account of us, as of the ministers of Christ, and stewards of the Mysteries of God.'"

"I came to you with a message from God, not trying to impress you with human wisdom but with the power of the Spirit. Truly, 'we speak wisdom to those who are mature,' but it’s not human wisdom. 'We speak the wisdom of God in a mystery, even the hidden wisdom, which God planned before the world began,' and which none of the rulers of this world understand. The things from that wisdom are beyond human thinking, 'but God has revealed them to us by his Spirit ... the deep things of God,' 'which the Holy Spirit teaches.' These are spiritual matters that can only be understood by the spiritual person, who has the mind of Christ. 'And I, brothers, could not talk to you as if you were spiritual, but as if you were worldly, just like babies in Christ.... You were not ready for it, and you still aren’t ready. For you are still worldly.' 'As a wise master-builder I have laid the foundation,' and 'you are the temple of God, and the Spirit of God lives in you.' 'Let everyone consider us as ministers of Christ, and stewards of the mysteries of God.'"

Can any one read this passage—and all that has been done in the summary is to bring out the salient points—without recognising the fact that the Apostle possessed a divine wisdom given in the Mysteries, that his Corinthian followers were not yet able to receive? And note the recurring technical terms: the "wisdom," the "wisdom of God in a mystery," the "hidden wisdom," known only to the "spiritual" man, spoken of only among the "perfect," wisdom from which the non-"spiritual," the "babes in Christ," the "carnal," were excluded, known to the "wise master-builder," the "steward of the Mysteries of God."

Can anyone read this passage—and all the summary does is highlight the key points—without recognizing that the Apostle had a divine wisdom given in the Mysteries, which his Corinthian followers weren't ready to understand? And take note of the repeated technical terms: the "wisdom," the "wisdom of God in a mystery," the "hidden wisdom," understood only by the "spiritual" person, discussed only among the "perfect," wisdom from which the non-"spiritual," the "babes in Christ," the "carnal," were excluded, known to the "wise master-builder," the "steward of the Mysteries of God."

Again and again he refers to these Mysteries. Writing to the Ephesian Christians he says that "by revelation," by the unveiling, had been "made known unto me the Mystery," and hence his "knowledge in the Mystery of Christ"; all might know of the "fellowship of the Mystery."[66] Of this Mystery, he repeated[Pg 58] to the Colossians, he was "made a minister," "the Mystery which hath been hid from ages and from generations, but now is made manifest to His saints"; not to the world, nor even to Christians, but only to the Holy Ones. To them was unveiled "the glory of this Mystery"; and what was it? "Christ in you"—a significant phrase, which we shall see, in a moment, belonged to the life of the Initiate; thus ultimately must every man learn the wisdom, and become "perfect in Christ Jesus."[67] These Colossians he bids pray "that God would open to us a door of utterance, to speak the mystery of Christ,"[68] a passage to which S. Clement refers as one in which the apostle "clearly reveals that knowledge belongs not to all."[69][Pg 59] So also he writes to his loved Timothy, bidding him select his deacons from those who hold "the Mystery of the faith in a pure conscience," that great "Mystery of Godliness," that he had learned,[70] knowledge of which was necessary for the teachers of the Church.

Again and again he talks about these Mysteries. Writing to the Ephesian Christians, he states that "through revelation," by revealing, he has "made known to me the Mystery," and thus his "understanding of the Mystery of Christ"; everyone might know about the "fellowship of the Mystery." Of this Mystery, he emphasized to the Colossians, he was "made a minister," "the Mystery which has been hidden for ages and generations, but now is revealed to His saints"; not to the world, nor even to Christians, but only to the Holy Ones. To them was revealed "the glory of this Mystery"; and what was it? "Christ in you"—a powerful phrase that we will see shortly belonged to the life of the Initiate; thus ultimately every person must learn the wisdom and become "perfect in Christ Jesus." These Colossians he urged to pray "that God would open to us a door of utterance, to speak the mystery of Christ," a passage which St. Clement mentions as one where the apostle "clearly reveals that knowledge does not belong to everyone." So also, he writes to his beloved Timothy, instructing him to choose his deacons from those who hold "the Mystery of the faith with a pure conscience," that great "Mystery of Godliness," that he had learned, knowing that it was essential for the teachers of the Church.

Now S. Timothy holds an important position, as representing the next generation of Christian teachers. He was a pupil of S. Paul, and was appointed by him to guide and rule a portion of the Church. He had been, we learn, initiated into the Mysteries by S. Paul himself, and reference is made to this, the technical phrases once more serving as a clue. "This charge I commit unto thee, son Timothy, according to the prophecies which went before on thee,"[71] the solemn benediction of the Initiator, who admitted the candidate; but not alone was the Initiator present: "Neglect not the gift that is in thee, which was given thee by prophecy, by the laying on of the hands of the Presbytery,"[72] of the Elder Brothers.[Pg 60] And he reminds him to lay hold of that "eternal life, whereunto thou art also called, and hast professed a good profession before many witnesses"[73]—the vow of the new Initiate, pledged in the presence of the Elder Brothers, and of the assembly of Initiates. The knowledge then given was the sacred charge of which S. Paul cries out so forcibly: "O Timothy, keep that which is committed to thy trust"[74]—not the knowledge commonly possessed by Christians, as to which no special obligation lay upon S. Timothy, but the sacred deposit committed to his trust as an Initiate, and essential to the welfare of the Church. S. Paul later recurs again to this, laying stress on the supreme importance of the matter in a way that would be exaggerated had the knowledge been the common property of Christian men: "Hold fast the form of sound words which thou hast heard of me.... That good thing which was committed unto thee, keep by the Holy Ghost which dwelleth in us"[75]—as[Pg 61] serious an adjuration as human lips could frame. Further, it was his duty to provide for the due transmission of this sacred deposit, that it might be handed on to the future, and the Church might never be left without teachers: "The things that thou hast heard of me among many witnesses"—the sacred oral teachings given in the assembly of Initiates, who bore witness to the accuracy of the transmission—"the same commit thou to faithful men, who shall be able to teach others also."[76]

Now Timothy holds an important role as a representative of the next generation of Christian teachers. He was a student of Paul and was appointed by him to guide and lead a part of the Church. He had been initiated into the Mysteries by Paul himself, and this is mentioned, with the technical phrases again serving as a clue. "This charge I commit to you, son Timothy, according to the prophecies that were made about you,"[71] the solemn blessing of the Initiator, who admitted the candidate; but the Initiator was not alone: "Neglect not the gift that is in you, which was given to you by prophecy, by the laying on of the hands of the Presbytery,"[72] of the Elder Brothers.[Pg 60] And he reminds him to hold on to that "eternal life, for which you are also called, and have confessed a good confession before many witnesses"[73]—the vow of the new Initiate, pledged in the presence of the Elder Brothers, and of the assembly of Initiates. The knowledge given then was the sacred charge of which Paul exclaims so powerfully: "O Timothy, keep that which is committed to your trust"[74]—not the knowledge commonly held by Christians, for which there was no special obligation on Timothy, but the sacred deposit entrusted to him as an Initiate, essential for the welfare of the Church. Paul later emphasizes this matter again, stressing its supreme importance in a way that would seem exaggerated if the knowledge were the common property of Christian men: "Hold fast the form of sound words which you have heard from me.... That good thing which was committed to you, keep by the Holy Ghost which dwells in us"[75]—as serious an admonition as human lips could offer. Furthermore, it was his duty to ensure the proper transmission of this sacred deposit, so it could be passed on to the future, and the Church would never be left without teachers: "The things that you have heard from me among many witnesses"—the sacred oral teachings given in the assembly of Initiates, who confirmed the accuracy of the transmission—"the same commit to faithful men, who will be able to teach others also."[76]

The knowledge—or, if the phrase be preferred, the supposition—that the Church possessed these hidden teachings throws a flood of light on the scattered remarks made by S. Paul about himself, and when they are gathered together, we have an outline of the evolution of the Initiate. S. Paul asserts that though he was already among the perfect, the initiated—for he says: "Let us, therefore, as many as be perfect, be thus minded"—he had not yet "attained," was indeed not yet wholly "perfect," for he had not yet won Christ, he had not yet reached the "high calling[Pg 62] of God in Christ," "the power of His resurrection, and the fellowship of His sufferings, being made conformable unto His death;" and he was striving, he says, "if by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead."[77] For this was the Initiation that liberated, that made the Initiate the Perfect Master, the Risen Christ, freeing Him finally from the "dead," from the humanity within the circle of generation, from the bonds that fettered the soul to gross matter. Here again we have a number of technical terms, and even the surface reader should realise that the "resurrection of the dead" here spoken of cannot be the ordinary resurrection of the modern Christian, supposed to be inevitable for all men, and therefore obviously not requiring any special struggle on the part of any one to attain to it. In fact the very word "attain" would be out of place in referring to a universal and inevitable human experience. S. Paul could not avoid that resurrection, according to the modern Christian view. What then was the resurrection to attain[Pg 63] which he was making such strenuous efforts? Once more the only answer comes from the Mysteries. In them the Initiate approaching the Initiation that liberated from the cycle of rebirth, the circle of generation, was called "the suffering Christ;" he shared the sufferings of the Saviour of the world, was crucified mystically, "made conformable to His death," and then attained the resurrection, the fellowship of the glorified Christ, and, after, that death had over him no power.[78] This was "the prize" towards which the great Apostle was pressing, and he urged "as many as be perfect," not the ordinary believer, thus also to strive. Let them not be content with what they had gained, but still press onwards.

The understanding—or, if you prefer, the idea—that the Church had these hidden teachings sheds light on S. Paul's scattered comments about himself. When we piece them together, we get a clear picture of the development of the Initiate. S. Paul claims that although he was already among the perfect and the initiated—saying, "Let us, therefore, as many as be perfect, be thus minded"—he had not yet "attained," and was still not entirely "perfect," because he hadn't won Christ yet. He hadn't reached the "high calling of God in Christ," "the power of His resurrection, and the fellowship of His sufferings, being made conformable unto His death;" and he was striving, as he puts it, "if by any means I might attain unto the resurrection of the dead." For this was the Initiation that set the Initiate free, making them the Perfect Master, the Risen Christ, finally liberating them from the "dead," from humanity within the cycle of rebirth, and from the chains that bound the soul to material existence. Here again, we encounter several technical terms, and even a casual reader should recognize that the "resurrection of the dead" mentioned here cannot refer to the ordinary resurrection believed by modern Christians, which is thought to be inevitable for everyone and thus requires no special effort to achieve. In fact, the very word "attain" seems out of place when talking about a universal and unavoidable human experience. S. Paul wouldn't have had to pursue that resurrection, according to the modern Christian perspective. So what was the resurrection he was striving so hard to reach? Once again, the answer comes from the Mysteries. In those, the Initiate approaching the Initiation that freed them from the cycle of rebirth was called "the suffering Christ;" they shared in the sufferings of the Savior of the world, were mystically crucified, "made conformable to His death," and then attained the resurrection, sharing in the glory of Christ, and afterward, death had no power over them. This was "the prize" that the great Apostle was aiming for, and he encouraged "as many as be perfect"—not the ordinary believer—to strive as well. They should not be satisfied with what they had already achieved, but continue to press on.

This resemblance of the Initiate to the Christ is, indeed, the very groundwork of the Greater Mysteries, as we shall see more in detail when we study "The Mystical Christ." The Initiate was no longer to look on Christ as outside himself: "Though we have known Christ[Pg 64] after the flesh, yet now henceforth know we Him no more."[79]

This similarity between the Initiate and Christ is really the foundation of the Greater Mysteries, which we will explore more thoroughly when we look at "The Mystical Christ." The Initiate was no longer supposed to see Christ as something external: "Though we used to know Christ[Pg 64] after the flesh, now we recognize Him differently."

The ordinary believer had "put on Christ;" "as many of you as have been baptised into Christ have put on Christ."[80] Then they were the "babes in Christ" to whom reference has already been made, and Christ was the Saviour to whom they looked for help, knowing Him "after the flesh." But when they had conquered the lower nature and were no longer "carnal," then they were to enter on a higher path, and were themselves to become Christ. This which he himself had already reached, was the longing of the Apostle for his followers: "My little children, of whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you."[81] Already he was their spiritual father, having "begotten you through the gospel."[82] But now "again" he was as a parent, as their mother to bring them to the second birth. Then the infant Christ, the Holy Child, was born in the soul, "the hidden man of the heart;"[83][Pg 65] the Initiate thus became that "Little Child"; henceforth he was to live out in his own person the life of the Christ, until he became the "perfect man," growing "unto the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ."[84] Then he, as S. Paul was doing, filled up the sufferings of Christ in his own flesh,[85] and always bore "about in the body the dying of the Lord Jesus,"[86] so that he could truly say: "I am crucified with Christ: nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in me."[87] Thus was the Apostle himself suffering; thus he describes himself. And when the struggle is over, how different is the calm tone of triumph from the strained effort of the earlier years: "I am now ready to be offered, and the time of my departure is at hand. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith; henceforth there is laid up for me a crown of righteousness."[88] This was the crown given to "him that overcometh," of whom it is said by the ascended Christ: "I will make him a pillar in the[Pg 66] temple of my God; and he shall go no more out."[89] For after the "Resurrection" the Initiate has become the Perfect Man, the Master, and He goes out no more from the Temple, but from it serves and guides the worlds.

The average believer had "put on Christ;" "as many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ."[80] They were the "babes in Christ" that have been mentioned before, and Christ was the Savior they looked to for help, understanding Him "in a physical way." But once they had overcome their lower nature and were no longer "worldly," they were ready to follow a higher path and become like Christ themselves. This was what the Apostle longed for his followers: "My little children, of whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you."[81] He was already their spiritual father, having "begotten you through the gospel."[82] But now "again," he was like a parent, a mother striving to bring them to their second birth. At this point, the infant Christ, the Holy Child, was born in the soul, "the hidden man of the heart;"[83][Pg 65] the Initiate then became that "Little Child"; from now on, he was to embody the life of Christ until he became the "perfect man," maturing "to the measure of the stature of the fullness of Christ."[84] Then, just as S. Paul was doing, he filled up the sufferings of Christ in his own body,[85] and continually carried "about in the body the dying of the Lord Jesus,"[86] which allowed him to say: "I am crucified with Christ: nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ lives in me."[87] This was how the Apostle was suffering; this is how he describes himself. And once the struggle is over, the triumphant calm is a sharp contrast to the earlier years of effort: "I am now ready to be offered, and the time of my departure is at hand. I have fought a good fight, I have finished my course, I have kept the faith; henceforth there is laid up for me a crown of righteousness."[88] This is the crown given to "him that overcomes," about whom the ascended Christ said: "I will make him a pillar in the[Pg 66] temple of my God; and he shall go no more out."[89] For after the "Resurrection," the Initiate has become the Perfect Man, the Master, and he no longer leaves the Temple, but instead serves and guides the worlds from within it.

It may be well to point out, ere closing this chapter, that S. Paul himself sanctions the use of the theoretical mystic teaching in explaining the historical events recorded in the Scriptures. The history therein written is not regarded by him as a mere record of facts, which occurred on the physical plane. A true mystic, he saw in the physical events the shadows of the universal truths ever unfolding in higher and inner worlds, and knew that the events selected for preservation in occult writings were such as were typical, the explanation of which would subserve human instruction. Thus he takes the story of Abraham, Sarai, Hagar, Ishmael, and Isaac, and saying, "which things are an allegory," he proceeds to give the mystical interpretation.[90] Referring to the escape of the Israelites from Egypt, he[Pg 67] speaks of the Red Sea as a baptism, of the manna and the water as spiritual meat and spiritual drink, of the rock from which the water flowed as Christ.[91] He sees the great mystery of the union of Christ and His Church in the human relation of husband and wife, and speaks of Christians as the flesh and the bones of the body of Christ.[92] The writer of the Epistle to the Hebrews allegorises the whole Jewish system of worship. In the Temple he sees a pattern of the heavenly Temple, in the High Priest he sees Christ, in the sacrifices the offering of the spotless Son; the priests of the Temple are but "the example and shadow of heavenly things," of the heavenly priesthood serving in "the true tabernacle." A most elaborate allegory is thus worked out in chapters iii.-x., and the writer alleges that the Holy Ghost thus signified the deeper meaning; all was "a figure for the time."

It’s important to note, before we finish this chapter, that Paul himself supports using mystical teachings to explain the historical events recorded in the Scriptures. He doesn’t see the history as just a record of physical facts. As a true mystic, he perceived physical events as reflections of universal truths that are constantly unfolding in higher and inner realms, understanding that the events chosen for preservation in hidden writings were typically representative, with interpretations intended for human guidance. For example, when he discusses the story of Abraham, Sarai, Hagar, Ishmael, and Isaac, he states, "which things are an allegory," and then he goes on to provide the mystical interpretation.[90] In reference to the Israelites' escape from Egypt, he[Pg 67] refers to the Red Sea as a baptism, the manna and water as spiritual food and drink, and the rock that produced the water as Christ.[91] He sees the profound mystery of the union of Christ and His Church reflected in the human relationship between husband and wife, and describes Christians as the flesh and bones of Christ's body.[92] The author of the Epistle to the Hebrews interprets the entire Jewish worship system allegorically. He views the Temple as a model of the heavenly Temple, identifies Christ with the High Priest, sees the sacrifices as an offering of the spotless Son; the Temple priests are merely "the example and shadow of heavenly things," reflecting the heavenly priesthood serving in "the true tabernacle." An intricate allegory is constructed in chapters iii.-x., where the author claims the Holy Spirit signifies the deeper meaning; everything was "a figure for the time."

In this view of the sacred writings, it is not alleged that the events recorded did not take place, but only that their[Pg 68] physical happening was a matter of minor importance. And such explanation is the unveiling of the Lesser Mysteries, the mystic teaching which is permitted to be given to the world. It is not, as many think, a mere play of the imagination, but is the outcome of a true intuition, seeing the patterns in the heavens, and not only the shadows cast by them on the screen of earthly time.

In this understanding of the sacred texts, it's not claimed that the events described didn't happen, but rather that their physical occurrence is of little significance. This explanation reveals the Lesser Mysteries, the mystical teaching that is allowed to be shared with the world. Contrary to what many believe, it's not just a flight of fancy but comes from genuine intuition, recognizing the patterns in the cosmos, not just the shadows they cast on the canvas of earthly time.


CHAPTER III.

THE HIDDEN SIDE OF CHRISTIANITY(concluded).

(b) The Testimony of the Church.

While it may be that some would be willing to admit the possession by the Apostles and their immediate successors of a deeper knowledge of spiritual things than was current among the masses of the believers around them, few will probably be willing to take the next step, and, leaving that charmed circle, accept as the depository of their sacred learning the Mysteries of the Early Church. Yet we have S. Paul providing for the transmission of the unwritten teaching, himself initiating S. Timothy, and instructing S. Timothy to initiate others in his turn, who should again hand it on to yet others. We thus see the provision of four successive generations of[Pg 70] teachers, spoken of in the Scriptures themselves, and these would far more than overlap the writers of the Early Church, who bear witness to the existence of the Mysteries. For among these are pupils of the Apostles themselves, though the most definite statements belong to those removed from the Apostles by one intermediate teacher. Now, as soon as we begin to study the writings of the Early Church, we are met by the facts that there are allusions which are only intelligible by the existence of the Mysteries, and then statements that the Mysteries are existing. This might, of course, have been expected, seeing the point at which the New Testament leaves the matter, but it is satisfactory to find the facts answer to the expectation.

While some might admit that the Apostles and their immediate followers had a deeper understanding of spiritual matters than what was common among the believers around them, few would likely take the next step and, leaving that exclusive group, accept the Mysteries of the Early Church as the source of their sacred teachings. Yet, we find St. Paul ensuring the transmission of unwritten teachings, initiating St. Timothy, and instructing him to initiate others in turn, who should then pass it on to more people. This shows a chain of four successive generations of teachers mentioned in the Scriptures themselves, which would greatly overlap with the writers of the Early Church, who attest to the existence of the Mysteries. Among these are students of the Apostles themselves, though the clearest statements come from those one step removed from the Apostles by an intermediary teacher. As soon as we start examining the writings of the Early Church, we encounter references that can only be understood by recognizing the existence of the Mysteries, along with statements affirming that the Mysteries are present. This outcome might have been anticipated, considering where the New Testament leaves the discussion, but it's reassuring to see that the facts align with those expectations.

The first witnesses are those called the Apostolic Fathers, the disciples of the Apostles; but very little of their writings, and that disputed, remains. Not being written controversially, the statements are not as categorical as those of the later writers. Their letters are for the encouragement of the believers. Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna, and fellow-disciple with[Pg 71] Ignatius of S. John,[93] expresses a hope that his correspondents are "well versed in the sacred Scriptures and that nothing is hid from you; but to me this privilege is not yet granted"[94]—writing, apparently, before reaching full Initiation. Barnabas speaks of communicating "some portion of what I have myself received,"[95] and after expounding the Law mystically, declares that "we then, rightly understanding His commandments, explain them as the Lord intended."[96] Ignatius, Bishop of Antioch, a disciple of S. John,[97] speaks of himself as "not yet perfect in Jesus Christ. For I now begin to be a disciple, and I speak to you as my fellow-disciples,"[98] and he speaks of them as "initiated into the mysteries of the Gospel with Paul, the holy, the[Pg 72] martyred."[99] Again he says: "Might I not write to you things more full of mystery? But I fear to do so, lest I should inflict injury on you who are but babes. Pardon me in this respect, lest, as not being able to receive their weighty import, ye should be strangled by them. For even I, though I am bound [for Christ] and am able to understand heavenly things, the angelic orders, and the different sorts of angels and hosts, the distinction between powers and dominions, and the diversities between thrones and authorities, the mightiness of the æons, and the pre-eminence of the cherubim and seraphim, the sublimity of the Spirit, the kingdom of the Lord, and above all the incomparable majesty of Almighty God—though I am acquainted with these things, yet am I not therefore by any means perfect, nor am I such a disciple as Paul or Peter."[100] This passage is interesting, as indicating that the organisation of the celestial hierarchies was one of the subjects in which instruction was given in the Mysteries. Again he[Pg 73] speaks of the High Priest, the Hierophant, "to whom the holy of holies has been committed, and who alone has been entrusted with the secrets of God."[101]

The first witnesses are known as the Apostolic Fathers, the disciples of the Apostles; however, very little of their writings remains, and much of it is disputed. Because their writings were not meant to be controversial, their statements aren’t as firm as those of later writers. Their letters aim to encourage the believers. Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna and a fellow disciple of Ignatius of S. John, expresses a hope that his correspondents are "well versed in the sacred Scriptures and that nothing is hidden from you; but to me, this privilege is not yet granted"—writing, it seems, before fully reaching Initiation. Barnabas mentions communicating "some portion of what I have myself received," and after explaining the Law in a mystical way, he declares that "we then, rightly understanding His commandments, explain them as the Lord intended." Ignatius, Bishop of Antioch and a disciple of S. John, describes himself as "not yet perfect in Jesus Christ. For I now begin to be a disciple, and I speak to you as my fellow-disciples," and he refers to them as "initiated into the mysteries of the Gospel with Paul, the holy, the martyred." He adds: "Might I not write to you things fuller of mystery? But I fear to do so, lest I should harm you who are just beginners. Please forgive me in this regard, so that, not being able to receive their profound meaning, you may not be overwhelmed by them. For even I, though I am bound [for Christ] and capable of understanding heavenly things, the angelic orders, and the different types of angels and hosts, the distinction between powers and dominions, and the variations between thrones and authorities, the mightiness of the eons, and the preeminence of the cherubim and seraphim, the greatness of the Spirit, the kingdom of the Lord, and above all the unmatched majesty of Almighty God—even though I know these things, I am still not perfect, nor am I a disciple like Paul or Peter." This passage is interesting, as it indicates that the organization of the celestial hierarchies was one of the topics taught in the Mysteries. Again, he speaks of the High Priest, the Hierophant, "to whom the holy of holies has been entrusted, and who alone has been given the secrets of God."

We come next to S. Clement of Alexandria and his pupil Origen, the two writers of the second and third centuries who tell us most about the Mysteries in the Early Church; though the general atmosphere is full of mystic allusions, these two are clear and categorical in their statements that the Mysteries were a recognised institution.

We now turn to S. Clement of Alexandria and his student Origen, the two writers from the second and third centuries who provide us with the most information about the Mysteries in the Early Church. While the overall context is filled with mystical references, these two are clear and direct in their assertions that the Mysteries were an established institution.

Now S. Clement was a disciple of Pantænus, and he speaks of him and of two others, said to be probably Tatian and Theodotus, as "preserving the tradition of the blessed doctrine derived directly from the holy Apostles, Peter, James, John, and Paul,"[102] his link with the Apostles themselves consisting thus of only one intermediary. He was the head of the Catechetical School of Alexandria in A.D. 189, and died about A.D. 220. Origen,[Pg 74] born about A.D. 185, was his pupil, and he is, perhaps, the most learned of the Fathers, and a man of the rarest moral beauty. These are the witnesses from whom we receive the most important testimony as to the existence of definite Mysteries in the Early Church.

Now S. Clement was a student of Pantænus, and he talks about him and two others, likely Tatian and Theodotus, as "preserving the tradition of the blessed doctrine that came directly from the holy Apostles, Peter, James, John, and Paul,"[102] connecting him to the Apostles with just one intermediary. He led the Catechetical School of Alexandria in CE 189 and died around A.D. 220. Origen,[Pg 74] who was born around CE 185, was his student and is perhaps the most knowledgeable of the Fathers and a person of exceptional moral character. These are the key witnesses from whom we get the most significant evidence regarding the existence of definite Mysteries in the Early Church.

The Stromata, or Miscellanies, of S. Clement are our source of information about the Mysteries in his time. He himself speaks of these writings as a "miscellany of Gnostic notes, according to the true philosophy,"[103] and also describes them as memoranda of the teachings he had himself received from Pantænus. The passage is instructive: "The Lord ... allowed us to communicate of those divine Mysteries, and of that holy light, to those who are able to receive them. He did not certainly disclose to the many what did not belong to the many; but to the few to whom He knew that they belonged, who were capable of receiving and being moulded according to them. But secret things are entrusted to speech, not to writing, as is the case with God. And if[Pg 75] one say[104] that it is written, 'There is nothing secret which shall not be revealed, nor hidden which shall not be disclosed,' let him also hear from us, that to him who hears secretly, even what is secret shall be manifested. This is what was predicted by this oracle. And to him who is able secretly to observe what is delivered to him, that which is veiled shall be disclosed as truth; and what is hidden to the many shall appear manifest to the few.... The Mysteries are delivered mystically, that what is spoken may be in the mouth of the speaker; rather not in his voice, but in his understanding.... The writing of these memoranda of mine, I well know, is weak when compared with that spirit, full of grace, which I was privileged to hear. But it will be an image to recall the archetype to him who was struck with the Thyrsus." The Thyrsus, we may here interject, was the wand borne by Initiates, and candidates were touched with it during the ceremony of Initiation. It had a mystic significance, symbolising[Pg 76] the spinal cord and the pineal gland in the Lesser Mysteries, and a Rod, known to Occultists, in the Greater. To say, therefore, "to him who was struck with the Thyrsus" was exactly the same as to say, "to him who was initiated in the Mysteries." Clement proceeds: "We profess not to explain secret things sufficiently—far from it—but only to recall them to memory, whether we have forgot aught, or whether for the purpose of not forgetting. Many things, I well know, have escaped us, through length of time, that have dropped away unwritten.... There are then some things of which we have no recollection; for the power that was in the blessed men was great." A frequent experience of those taught by the Great Ones, for Their presence stimulates and renders active powers which are normally latent, and which the pupil, unassisted, cannot evoke. "There are also some things which remained unnoted long, which have now escaped; and others which are effaced, having faded away in the mind itself, since such a task is not easy to those not experienced; these I revive in my commentaries.[Pg 77] Some things I purposely omit, in the exercise of a wise selection, afraid to write what I guarded against speaking; not grudging—for that were wrong—but fearing for my readers, lest they should stumble by taking them in a wrong sense; and, as the proverb says, we should be found 'reaching a sword to a child.' For it is impossible that what has been written should not escape [become known], although remaining unpublished by me. But being always revolved, using the one only voice, that of writing, they answer nothing to him that makes enquiries beyond what is written; for they require of necessity the aid of some one, either of him who wrote, or of some one else who has walked in his footsteps. Some things my treatise will hint; on some it will linger; some it will merely mention. It will try to speak imperceptibly, to exhibit secretly, and to demonstrate silently."[105]

The Stromata, or Miscellanies, of S. Clement provide our information about the Mysteries during his time. He refers to these writings as a "collection of Gnostic notes, in line with true philosophy,"[103] and he also describes them as a record of the teachings he received from Pantænus. The passage is informative: "The Lord ... allowed us to share those divine Mysteries, and that holy light, with those who can understand them. He certainly didn’t reveal to the many what was not meant for the many; but to the few whom He knew could receive and be shaped by them. However, secret things are entrusted to speech, not to writing, just like with God. And if[Pg 75] someone says[104] that it is written, 'There is nothing secret that will not be revealed, nor hidden that will not be disclosed,' they should also understand from us that to the one who hears in secret, even what is secret will be shown. This is what was predicted by this oracle. And for the one who is able to quietly observe what is given to him, what is hidden will be revealed as truth; and what is concealed from the many will be clear to the few.... The Mysteries are communicated in a mystical way, so that what is said can resonate in the speaker’s mind; not merely in his words, but in his understanding.... I know that my writing of these notes is weak when compared to that spirit, full of grace, which I was fortunate enough to hear. But it will serve as a reminder for the one who was struck with the Thyrsus." The Thyrsus, we might add, was the staff carried by Initiates, and candidates were touched with it during the Initiation ceremony. It had mystical significance, symbolizing[Pg 76] the spinal cord and the pineal gland in the Lesser Mysteries, and a Rod, known to Occultists, in the Greater. So, to say, "to him who was struck with the Thyrsus" is just another way of saying, "to him who was initiated in the Mysteries." Clement continues: "We don’t claim to fully explain secret things—far from it—but only to help remember them, whether we’ve forgotten something or to avoid forgetting. I know that many things have slipped away from us over time, things that have gone unwritten.... There are some things we don’t remember at all; the power that resided in the blessed men was great." This is a common experience for those taught by the Great Ones, as Their presence activates powers that are usually dormant, which the pupil cannot bring out on their own. "There are also things that remained unrecorded for a long time, now lost; and others that have faded from memory because such tasks are tough for those who lack experience; these I attempt to revive in my writings.[Pg 77] I intentionally omit some things, making careful choices, not out of reluctance—but out of concern for my readers, lest they misinterpret them; as the proverb goes, we must avoid 'giving a sword to a child.' What has been written cannot fail to become known, even if I don’t publish it. But always revolving around, using the singular voice of writing, they respond to no one who questions beyond what is written; because they inevitably require guidance from someone, either the author himself or another who has followed in his path. Some things my work will suggest; some it will dwell on; some it will only briefly mention. It will aim to communicate subtly, to present quietly, and to demonstrate in silence."[105]

This passage, if it stood alone, would suffice to establish the existence of a secret teaching in the Early Church. But it stands by no means alone. In Chapter[Pg 78] xii. of this same Book I., headed, "The Mysteries of the Faith not to be divulged to all," Clement declares that, since others than the wise may see his work, "it is requisite, therefore, to hide in a Mystery the wisdom spoken, which the Son of God taught." Purified tongue of the speaker, purified ears of the hearer, these were necessary. "Such were the impediments in the way of my writing. And even now I fear, as it is said, 'to cast the pearls before swine, lest they tread them under foot and turn and rend us.' For it is difficult to exhibit the really pure and transparent words respecting the true light, to swinish and untrained hearers. For scarcely could anything which they could hear be more ludicrous than these to the multitude; nor any subjects on the other hand more admirable or more inspiring to those of noble nature. But the wise do not utter with their mouth what they reason in council. 'But what ye hear in the ear,' said the Lord, 'proclaim upon the houses'; bidding them receive the secret traditions of the true knowledge, and expound them aloft[Pg 79] and conspicuously; and as we have heard in the ear, so to deliver them to whom it is requisite; but not enjoining us to communicate to all without distinction, what is said to them in parables. But there is only a delineation in the memoranda, which have the truth sown sparse and broadcast, that it may escape the notice of those who pick up seeds like jackdaws; but when they find a good husbandman, each one of them will germinate and will produce corn."

This passage, if it were taken on its own, would be enough to prove that there was a secret teaching in the Early Church. But it certainly isn’t alone. In Chapter[Pg 78] xii of this same Book I., titled "The Mysteries of the Faith not to be shared with everyone," Clement states that since those who are not wise may see his work, "it’s necessary to hide the wisdom spoken, which the Son of God taught, in a Mystery." A purified speaker and an attentive listener are essential. "Such were the obstacles to my writing. And even now I worry, as it’s said, 'to throw pearls before swine, lest they trample them underfoot and turn to attack us.' It’s hard to convey truly clear and pure words about the true light to unrefined and untrained listeners. Almost nothing that they hear could be more ridiculous to the masses; nor could there be subjects more admirable or inspiring for those of noble character. But the wise don’t speak out loud what they think in private. 'But what you hear whispered,' said the Lord, 'proclaim from the rooftops'; instructing them to accept the secret teachings of true knowledge and share them openly[Pg 79] and clearly; and as we have heard in whispers, so to pass them on to those who need them; but not to share indiscriminately what is given to them in parables. There is only an outline in the notes, where the truth is scattered thinly, so it can go unnoticed by those who gather seeds like jackdaws; but when a skilled farmer is found, each of those seeds will sprout and produce grain."

Clement might have added that to "proclaim upon the houses" was to proclaim or expound in the assembly of the Perfect, the Initiated, and by no means to shout aloud to the man in the street.

Clement might have added that to "proclaim upon the houses" was to proclaim or explain in the gathering of the Perfect, the Initiated, and definitely not to shout out to the average person on the street.

Again he says that those who are "still blind and dumb, not having understanding, or the undazzled and keen vision of the contemplative soul ... must stand outside of the divine choir.... Wherefore, in accordance with the method of concealment, the truly sacred Word, truly divine and most necessary for us, deposited in the shrine of truth, was by the Egyptians indicated by what were called[Pg 80] among them adyta, and by the Hebrews by the veil. Only the consecrated ... were allowed access to them. For Plato also thought it not lawful for 'the impure to touch the pure.' Thence the prophecies and oracles are spoken in enigmas, and the Mysteries are not exhibited incontinently to all and sundry, but only after certain purifications and previous instructions."[106] He then descants at great length on Symbols, expounding Pythagorean, Hebrew, Egyptian,[107] and then remarks that the ignorant and unlearned man fails in understanding them. "But the Gnostic apprehends. Now then it is not wished that all things should be exposed indiscriminately to all and sundry, or the benefits of wisdom communicated to those who have not even in a dream been purified in soul (for it is not allowed to hand to every chance comer what has been procured with such laborious efforts); nor are the Mysteries of the Word to be expounded to the profane." The Pythagoreans and Plato, Zeno, and Aristotle had exoteric and[Pg 81] esoteric teachings. The philosophers established the Mysteries, for "was it not more beneficial for the holy and blessed contemplation of realities to be concealed?"[108] The Apostles also approved of "veiling the Mysteries of the Faith," "for there is an instruction to the perfect," alluded to in Colossians i. 9-11 and 25-27. "So that, on the one hand, then, there are the Mysteries which were hid till the time of the Apostles, and were delivered by them as they received from the Lord, and, concealed in the Old Testament, were manifested to the saints. And, on the other hand, there is 'the riches of the glory of the mystery in the Gentiles,' which is faith and hope in Christ; which in another place he has called the 'foundation.'" He quotes S. Paul to show that this "knowledge belongs not to all," and says, referring to Heb. v. and vi., that "there were certainly among the Hebrews, some things delivered unwritten;" and then refers to S. Barnabas, who speaks of God, "who has put into our hearts wisdom and the[Pg 82] understanding of His secrets," and says that "it is but for few to comprehend these things," as showing a "trace of Gnostic tradition." "Wherefore instruction, which reveals hidden things, is called illumination, as it is the teacher only who uncovers the lid of the ark."[109] Further referring to S. Paul, he comments on his remark to the Romans that he will "come in the fulness of the blessing of Christ,"[110] and says that he thus designates "the spiritual gift and the Gnostic interpretation, while being present he desires to impart to them present as 'the fulness of Christ, according to the revelation of the Mystery sealed in the ages of eternity, but now manifested by the prophetic Scriptures'[111].... But only to a few of them is shown what those things are which are contained in the Mystery. Rightly, then, Plato, in the epistles, treating of God, says: 'We must speak in enigmas; that should the tablet come by any mischance[Pg 83] on its leaves either by sea or land, he who reads may remain ignorant.'"[112]

Again, he states that those who are "still blind and ignorant, lacking understanding, or the clear and sharp vision of a contemplative soul ... must stand outside of the divine choir.... Therefore, according to the method of concealment, the truly sacred Word, genuinely divine and essential for us, stored in the shrine of truth, was indicated by the Egyptians as what they called [Pg 80] adyta, and by the Hebrews as the veil. Only the consecrated ... were permitted access to them. For Plato also believed it was not lawful for 'the impure to touch the pure.' Consequently, prophecies and oracles are spoken in riddles, and the Mysteries are not just shown to everyone, but only after specific purifications and prior teachings." [106] He then elaborates extensively on Symbols, explaining Pythagorean, Hebrew, Egyptian, [107] and notes that the ignorant and unlearned fail to understand them. "But the Gnostic comprehends. Now, it is not desired that everything should be shared indiscriminately with everyone, or the benefits of wisdom given to those who have not even in their dreams purified their souls (for it is not right to hand over what has been gained through such hard efforts to just anyone); nor should the Mysteries of the Word be explained to the uninitiated." The Pythagoreans, along with Plato, Zeno, and Aristotle, had both exoteric and [Pg 81] esoteric teachings. The philosophers established the Mysteries, for "was it not more beneficial for the holy and blessed contemplation of realities to be hidden?" [108] The Apostles also supported "veiling the Mysteries of the Faith," "for there is instruction for the perfect," as mentioned in Colossians i. 9-11 and 25-27. "So, on one hand, there are the Mysteries that were hidden until the time of the Apostles and were delivered by them as they received from the Lord, concealed in the Old Testament, and revealed to the saints. On the other hand, there is 'the riches of the glory of the mystery in the Gentiles,' which is faith and hope in Christ; which in another place he has called the 'foundation.'" He quotes St. Paul to demonstrate that this "knowledge does not belong to everyone," and refers to Heb. v. and vi., stating that "there were indeed among the Hebrews, some things delivered unwritten;" and then mentions St. Barnabas, who speaks of God, "who has put into our hearts wisdom and the understanding of His secrets," noting that "it is only for a few to grasp these things," showing a "trace of Gnostic tradition." "Therefore, instruction that reveals hidden things is called illumination, as it is the teacher alone who uncovers the lid of the ark." [109] Further referencing St. Paul, he comments on his statement to the Romans that he will "come in the fullness of the blessing of Christ," [110] and notes that he describes "the spiritual gift and the Gnostic interpretation, wishing to impart to them what is present as 'the fullness of Christ, according to the revelation of the Mystery sealed in the ages of eternity, but now manifested by the prophetic Scriptures'" [111].... But only a few are shown what those things are that are contained in the Mystery. Thus, Plato correctly states in his letters, discussing God: 'We must speak in riddles; so that should the tablet accidentally come across by sea or land, the reader may remain ignorant.'"[112]

After much examination of Greek writers, and an investigation into philosophy, S. Clement declares that the Gnosis "imparted and revealed by the Son of God, is wisdom.... And the Gnosis itself is that which has descended by transmission to a few, having been imparted unwritten by the Apostles."[113] A very long exposition of the life of the Gnostic, the Initiate, is given, and S. Clement concludes it by saying: "Let the specimen suffice to those who have ears. For it is not required to unfold the mystery, but only to indicate what is sufficient for those who are partakers in knowledge to bring it to mind."[114]

After closely studying Greek writers and looking into philosophy, S. Clement states that the Gnosis "given and revealed by the Son of God is wisdom.... And the Gnosis itself is that which has been passed down to a select few, having been shared unwritten by the Apostles."[113] A detailed account of the life of the Gnostic, the Initiate, is provided, and S. Clement wraps it up by saying: "Let the example be enough for those who have ears. There’s no need to reveal the mystery, but only to point out what’s enough for those who share in knowledge to remember."[114]

Regarding Scripture as consisting of allegories and symbols, and as hiding the sense in order to stimulate enquiry and to preserve the ignorant from danger.[115] S. Clement naturally confined the higher instruction to the learned. "Our Gnostic[Pg 84] will be deeply learned,"[116] he says. "Now the Gnostic must be erudite."[117] Those who had acquired readiness by previous training could master the deeper knowledge, for though "a man can be a believer without learning, so also we assert that it is impossible for a man without learning to comprehend the things which are declared in the faith."[118] "Some who think themselves naturally gifted, do not wish to touch either philosophy or logic; nay more, they do not wish to learn natural science. They demand bare faith alone.... So also I call him truly learned who brings everything to bear on the truth—so that, from geometry, and music, and grammar, and philosophy itself, culling what is useful, he guards the faith against assault.... How necessary is it for him who desires to be partaker of the power of God, to treat of intellectual subjects by philosophising."[119] "The Gnostic avails himself of branches of learning as auxiliary preparatory[Pg 85] exercises."[120] So far was S. Clement from thinking that the teaching of Christianity should be measured by the ignorance of the unlearned. "He who is conversant with all kinds of wisdom will be pre-eminently a Gnostic."[121] Thus while he welcomed the ignorant and the sinner, and found in the Gospel what was suited to their needs, he considered that only the learned and the pure were fit candidates for the Mysteries. "The Apostle, in contradistinction to Gnostic perfection, calls the common faith the foundation, and sometimes milk,"[122] but on that foundation the edifice of the Gnosis was to be raised, and the food of men was to succeed that of babes. There is nothing of harshness nor of contempt in the distinction he draws, but only a calm and wise recognition of the facts.

Regarding Scripture as made up of allegories and symbols, and as hiding the meaning to encourage exploration and to protect the uneducated from danger.[115] S. Clement naturally limited the higher teaching to the educated. "Our Gnostic[Pg 84] will be highly knowledgeable,"[116] he says. "Now the Gnostic must be well-educated."[117] Those who had gained proficiency through prior training could grasp the deeper understanding, because "while a person can have faith without education, we also argue that it is impossible for someone without education to comprehend the things that are stated in the faith."[118] "Some who believe they are naturally talented, do not want to engage with either philosophy or logic; moreover, they do not wish to learn about natural science. They demand only straightforward faith.... I also consider someone truly educated who brings everything to focus on the truth—so that, from geometry, music, grammar, and even philosophy itself, selecting what is useful, he protects the faith from attack.... How essential it is for anyone wishing to share in the power of God to address intellectual subjects by philosophizing."[119] "The Gnostic uses branches of learning as supportive preparatory[Pg 85] exercises."[120] S. Clement was far from believing that Christian teaching should be limited by the ignorance of the uneducated. "He who is familiar with all kinds of wisdom will be exceptionally a Gnostic."[121] Thus, while he accepted the ignorant and the sinner, and found in the Gospel what suited their needs, he believed that only the educated and the pure were suitable candidates for the Mysteries. "The Apostle, in contrast to Gnostic perfection, calls the common faith the foundation, and sometimes milk,"[122] but on that foundation, the structure of Gnosis was to be built, and the nourishment of men was to follow that of infants. There is nothing harsh or contemptuous in the distinction he makes, only a calm and wise acknowledgment of the facts.

Even the well-prepared candidate, the learned and trained pupil, could only hope to advance step by step in the profound truths unveiled in the Mysteries. This appears clearly in his comments on the[Pg 86] vision of Hermas, in which he also throws out some hints on methods of reading occult works. "Did not the Power also, that appeared to Hermas in the Vision, in the form of the Church, give for transcription the book which she wished to be made known to the elect? And this, he says, he transcribed to the letter, without finding how to complete the syllables. And this signified that the Scripture is clear to all, when taken according to base reading; and that this is the faith which occupies the place of the rudiments. Wherefore also the figurative expression is employed, 'reading according to the letter,' while we understand that the gnostic unfolding of Scriptures, when faith has already reached an advanced state, is likened to reading according to the syllables.... Now that the Saviour has taught the Apostles the unwritten rendering of the written (scriptures) has been handed down also to us, inscribed by the power of God on hearts new, according to the renovation of the book. Thus those of highest repute among the Greeks dedicate the fruit of the pomegranate to Hermes, who[Pg 87] they say is speech, on account of its interpretation. For speech conceals much.... That it is therefore not only to those who read simply that the acquisition of the truth is so difficult, but that not even to those whose prerogative the knowledge of the truth is, is the contemplation of it vouchsafed all at once, the history of Moses teaches; until accustomed to gaze, as the Hebrews on the glory of Moses, and the prophets of Israel on the visions of angels, so we also become able to look the splendours of truth in the face."[123]

Even a well-prepared candidate, a knowledgeable and trained student, could only hope to progress gradually in the deep truths revealed in the Mysteries. This is clearly illustrated in his remarks on the vision of Hermas, where he also hints at ways to read occult texts. "Did not the Power, which appeared to Hermas in the Vision as the Church, provide the book that she wanted to be revealed to the chosen ones? He says that he copied it word for word, without figuring out how to complete the words. This indicated that the Scripture is clear to everyone when approached with basic reading; and that this represents the faith that stands in place of the fundamentals. Thus, the figurative expression 'reading according to the letter' is used, while we understand that the deeper interpretation of Scriptures, once faith has developed to a higher level, is compared to reading according to the words.... Now that the Savior has taught the Apostles, the unwritten interpretation of the written scriptures has also been passed down to us, inscribed by God's power on renewed hearts, according to the transformation of the text. Therefore, those held in high regard among the Greeks dedicate the fruit of the pomegranate to Hermes, whom they say represents speech, due to its interpretation. For speech hides a lot.... So it's not just those who read simply who find it difficult to acquire the truth, but even those who have the privilege of knowing the truth do not comprehend it all at once, as the history of Moses shows; until we become accustomed to gaze, just as the Hebrews did on the glory of Moses, and the prophets of Israel on the visions of angels, allowing us to face the brilliance of truth."

Yet more references might be given, but these should suffice to establish the fact that S. Clement knew of, had been initiated into, and wrote for the benefit of those who had also been initiated into, the Mysteries in the Church.

Yet more references could be provided, but these should be enough to prove that S. Clement was aware of, had been initiated into, and wrote for the benefit of those who had also been initiated into the Mysteries in the Church.

The next witness is his pupil Origen, that most shining light of learning, courage, sanctity, devotion, meekness, and zeal, whose works remain as mines of gold wherein the student may dig for the treasures of wisdom.[Pg 88]

The next witness is his student Origen, that brilliant beacon of knowledge, bravery, holiness, dedication, humility, and passion, whose works stand as treasure troves where learners can uncover the riches of wisdom.[Pg 88]

In his famous controversy with Celsus attacks were made on Christianity which drew out a defence of the Christian position in which frequent references were made to the secret teachings.[124]

In his well-known debate with Celsus, there were criticisms of Christianity that prompted a defense of the Christian viewpoint, which often referenced the secret teachings.[124]

Celsus had alleged, as a matter of attack, that Christianity was a secret system, and Origen traverses this by saying that while certain doctrines were secret, many others were public, and that this system of exoteric and esoteric teachings, adopted in Christianity, was also in general use among philosophers. The reader should note, in the following passage, the distinction drawn between the resurrection of Jesus, regarded in a historical light, and the "mystery of the resurrection."

Celsus claimed, as a means of criticism, that Christianity was a hidden system, and Origen counters this by stating that while some doctrines were secret, many others were open, highlighting that this approach of having both public and private teachings, used in Christianity, was also common among philosophers. The reader should pay attention to the distinction made in the following passage between the resurrection of Jesus, viewed historically, and the "mystery of the resurrection."

"Moreover, since he [Celsus] frequently calls the Christian doctrine a secret system [of belief], we must confute him on this point also, since almost the entire world is better acquainted with what Christians preach than with the favourite opinions of[Pg 89] philosophers. For who is ignorant of the statement that Jesus was born of a virgin, and that He was crucified, and that His resurrection is an article of faith among many, and that a general judgment is announced to come, in which the wicked are to be punished according to their deserts, and the righteous to be duly rewarded? And yet the Mystery of the resurrection, not being understood, is made a subject of ridicule among unbelievers. In these circumstances, to speak of the Christian doctrine as a secret system, is altogether absurd. But that there should be certain doctrines, not made known to the multitude, which are [revealed] after the exoteric ones have been taught, is not a peculiarity of Christianity alone, but also of philosophic systems, in which certain truths are exoteric and others esoteric. Some of the hearers of Pythagoras were content with his ipse dixit; while others were taught in secret those doctrines which were not deemed fit to be communicated to profane and insufficiently prepared ears. Moreover, all the Mysteries that are celebrated everywhere throughout Greece and[Pg 90] barbarous countries, although held in secret, have no discredit thrown upon them, so that it is in vain he endeavours to calumniate the secret doctrines of Christianity, seeing that he does not correctly understand its nature."[125]

"Also, since he [Celsus] often refers to Christian belief as a secret system, we need to counter that claim, especially since almost everyone knows more about what Christians teach than about popular opinions from philosophers. Who doesn’t know that Jesus was born of a virgin, crucified, and that His resurrection is a fundamental belief for many? Moreover, there's a proclamation of a final judgment in which the wicked will face punishment and the righteous will receive their rewards. Yet, the mystery of the resurrection is often mocked by skeptics because they don’t understand it. Under these circumstances, to call Christian teachings a secret system is completely ridiculous. However, it's true that some doctrines aren't disclosed to the general public and are revealed after the foundational teachings have been shared. This isn’t unique to Christianity; it happens in philosophy too, where some truths are public and others are private. Some followers of Pythagoras accepted his words as truth without question, while others learned the teachings that weren’t considered appropriate for those who weren’t ready. Furthermore, all the Mysteries celebrated across Greece and foreign lands, despite being secret, are not looked down upon. Therefore, his attempts to slander Christianity’s secret doctrines are futile, as he doesn’t fully grasp what they really are."

It is impossible to deny that, in this important passage, Origen distinctly places the Christian Mysteries in the same category as those of the Pagan world, and claims that what is not regarded as a discredit to other religions should not form a subject of attack when found in Christianity.

It’s undeniable that, in this significant passage, Origen clearly puts the Christian Mysteries in the same category as those of the Pagan world and argues that what isn’t considered a discredit to other religions shouldn't be criticized when it comes to Christianity.

Still writing against Celsus, he declares that the secret teachings of Jesus were preserved in the Church, and refers specifically to the explanations that He gave to His disciples of His parables, in answering Celsus' comparison of "the inner Mysteries of the Church of God" with the Egyptian worship of animals. "I have not yet spoken of the observance of all that is written in the Gospels, each one of which contains much doctrine difficult to be understood, not merely by the multitude, but even by certain of the more intelligent,[Pg 91] including a very profound explanation of the parables which Jesus delivered to 'those without,' while reserving the exhibition of their full meaning for those who had passed beyond the stage of exoteric teaching, and who came to Him privately in the house. And when he comes to understand it, he will admire the reason why some are said to be 'without,' and others 'in the house.'"[126]

Still writing against Celsus, he states that the secret teachings of Jesus were kept within the Church and specifically mentions the explanations Jesus provided to His disciples about His parables, in response to Celsus' comparison of "the inner Mysteries of the Church of God" with the Egyptian worship of animals. "I haven't yet discussed the adherence to everything written in the Gospels, each of which contains a lot of teaching that is hard to grasp, not just for the general public but even for some of the more intelligent individuals,[Pg 91] including a very deep explanation of the parables that Jesus shared with 'those outside,' while reserving the full understanding for those who had moved past basic teachings and came to Him privately in the house. And when he grasps it, he will appreciate why some are referred to as 'outside' and others as 'in the house.'"[126]

And he refers guardedly to the "mountain" which Jesus ascended, from which he came down again to help "those who were unable to follow Him whither His disciples went." The allusion is to "the Mountain of Initiation," a well-known mystical phrase, as Moses also made the Tabernacle after the pattern "showed thee in the mount."[127] Origen refers to it again later, saying that Jesus showed himself to be very different in his real appearance when on the "Mountain," from what those saw who could not "follow Him on high."[128][Pg 92]

And he cautiously mentions the "mountain" that Jesus climbed, from which he returned to assist "those who couldn't follow Him where His disciples went." This refers to "the Mountain of Initiation," a well-known mystical term, just as Moses built the Tabernacle according to the pattern "shown to you in the mount."[127] Origen brings it up again later, stating that Jesus appeared very differently in his true form on the "Mountain" compared to what those who could not "follow Him on high" saw.[128][Pg 92]

So also, in his commentary on the Gospel of Matthew, Chap, xv., dealing with the episode of the Syro-Phœnician woman, Origen remarks: "And perhaps, also, of the words of Jesus there are some loaves which it is possible to give to the more rational, as to children, only; and others as it were crumbs from the great house and table of the well-born, which may be used by some souls like dogs."

So, in his commentary on the Gospel of Matthew, Chap. xv, discussing the story of the Syro-Phoenician woman, Origen notes: "And perhaps there are certain words of Jesus that can only be shared with the more understanding, like giving bread to children, while others are like crumbs from the large house and table of the privileged, which some souls may use like dogs."

Celsus complaining that sinners were brought into the Church, Origen answers that the Church had medicine for those that were sick, but also the study and the knowledge of divine things for those who were in health. Sinners were taught not to sin, and only when it was seen that progress had been made, and men were "purified by the Word," "then and not before do we invite them to participation in our Mysteries. For we speak wisdom among them that are perfect."[129] Sinners came to be healed: "For there are in the divinity of the Word some helps towards the cure of those who are sick.... Others, again, which to the pure in soul[Pg 93] and body exhibit the 'revelation of the Mystery, which was kept secret since the world began, but now is made manifest by the Scriptures of the prophets,' and 'by the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,' which 'appearing' is manifested to each one of those who are perfect, and which enlightens the reason in the true knowledge of things."[130] Such appearances of divine Beings took place, we have seen, in the Pagan Mysteries, and those of the Church had equally glorious visitants. "God the Word," he says, "was sent as a physician to sinners, but as a Teacher of Divine Mysteries to those who are already pure, and who sin no more."[131] "Wisdom will not enter into the soul of a base man, nor dwell in a body that is involved in sin;" hence these higher teachings are given only to those who are "athletes in piety and in every virtue."

Celsus complains that sinners were brought into the Church, and Origen replies that the Church has healing for those who are sick, as well as the study and knowledge of divine matters for those who are well. Sinners were taught not to sin, and only when it was seen that they had made progress, and people were "purified by the Word," "then and not before do we invite them to participate in our Mysteries. For we speak wisdom among those who are perfect."[129] Sinners came to be healed: "For there are in the divinity of the Word some helps towards the cure of those who are sick.... Others, again, which to the pure in soul[Pg 93] and body reveal the 'revelation of the Mystery, which was kept secret since the world began, but now is made known by the Scriptures of the prophets,' and 'by the appearing of our Lord Jesus Christ,' which 'appearing' is revealed to each one of those who are perfect, and which enlightens the mind in the true knowledge of things."[130] Such appearances of divine Beings occurred, as we have seen, in the Pagan Mysteries, and those of the Church had equally glorious visitors. "God the Word," he says, "was sent as a healer to sinners, but as a Teacher of Divine Mysteries to those who are already pure, and who sin no more."[131] "Wisdom will not enter into the soul of a wicked person, nor dwell in a body that is caught up in sin;" hence these higher teachings are given only to those who are "athletes in piety and in every virtue."

Christians did not admit the impure to this knowledge, but said: "Whoever has clean hands, and, therefore, lifts up holy hands to God ... let him come to[Pg 94] us ... whoever is pure not only from all defilement, but from what are regarded as lesser transgressions, let him be boldly initiated in the Mysteries of Jesus, which properly are made known only to the holy and the pure." Hence also, ere the ceremony of Initiation began, he who acts as Initiator, according to the precepts of Jesus, the Hierophant, made the significant proclamation "to those who have been purified in heart: He, whose soul has, for a long time, been conscious of no evil, especially since he yielded himself to the healing of the Word, let such a one hear the doctrines which were spoken in private by Jesus to His genuine disciples." This was the opening of the "initiating those who were already purified into the sacred Mysteries."[132] Such only might learn the realities of the unseen worlds, and might enter into the sacred precincts where, as of old, angels were the teachers, and where knowledge was given by sight and not only by words. It is impossible not to be struck with the different tone of these Christians from[Pg 95] that of their modern successors. With them perfect purity of life, the practice of virtue, the fulfilling of the divine Law in every detail of outer conduct, the perfection of righteousness, were—as with the Pagans—only the beginning of the way instead of the end. Nowadays religion is considered to have gloriously accomplished its object when it has made the Saint; then, it was to the Saints that it devoted its highest energies, and, taking the pure in heart, it led them to the Beatific Vision.

Christians didn't allow the unclean to access this knowledge, but said: "Whoever has clean hands, and therefore raises holy hands to God... let him come to[Pg 94] us... whoever is pure not just from all defilement, but from what are seen as lesser sins, let him be boldly initiated into the Mysteries of Jesus, which are meant to be revealed only to the holy and pure." Therefore, before the Initiation ceremony began, the person acting as Initiator, in line with the teachings of Jesus, the Hierophant, made the significant announcement "to those who have been purified in heart: He whose soul has been free from evil for a long time, especially since he allowed himself to be healed by the Word, let such a one hear the doctrines that were shared privately by Jesus with His true disciples." This was the start of "initiating those who were already purified into the sacred Mysteries." Such individuals alone could learn the truths of the unseen worlds and enter the sacred spaces where, as before, angels were the teachers, and knowledge was given through vision rather than just words. It's impossible not to notice the different tone of these Christians compared to their modern successors. For them, perfect purity of life, practicing virtue, and fulfilling divine Law in every aspect of outer conduct, the perfection of righteousness, were—as with the Pagans—only the beginning of the journey rather than the end. Today, religion is seen to have successfully achieved its goal once it has created the Saint; back then, it devoted its highest energies to the Saints, taking the pure in heart and leading them to the Beatific Vision.

The same fact of secret teaching comes out again, when Origen is discussing the arguments of Celsus as to the wisdom of retaining ancestral customs, based on the belief that "the various quarters of the earth were from the beginning allotted to different superintending Spirits, and were thus distributed among certain governing Powers, and in this way the administration of the world is carried on."[133]

The same point about secret teaching comes up again when Origen talks about Celsus's arguments regarding the wisdom of keeping ancestral customs. This is based on the belief that "the different regions of the earth were assigned from the start to various overseeing Spirits, and were distributed among certain governing Powers, managing the world's administration this way."[133]

Origen having animadverted on the deductions of Celsus, proceeds: "But as[Pg 96] we think it likely that some of those who are accustomed to deeper investigation will fall in with this treatise, let us venture to lay down some considerations of a profounder kind, conveying a mystical and secret view respecting the original distribution of the various quarters of the earth among different superintending Spirits."[134] He says that Celsus has misunderstood the deeper reasons relating to the arrangement of terrestrial affairs, some of which are even touched upon in Grecian history. Then he quotes Deut. xxxii. 8-9: "When the Most High divided the nations, when he dispersed the sons of Adam, He set the bounds of the people according to the number of the Angels of God; and the Lord's portion was his people Jacob, and Israel the cord of his inheritance." This is the wording of the Septuagint, not that of the English authorised version, but it is very suggestive of the title the "Lord" being regarded as that of the Ruling Angel of the Jews only, and not of the "Most High," i.e. God. This view has disappeared, from[Pg 97] ignorance, and hence the impropriety of many of the statements referring to the "Lord," when they are transferred to the "Most High," e.g. Judges i. 19.

Origen, having commented on the conclusions of Celsus, continues: "But since we believe that some of those who are used to deeper analysis will encounter this work, let’s take the opportunity to present some more profound thoughts, conveying a mystical and hidden perspective about the original allocation of different regions of the earth among various overseeing Spirits." He argues that Celsus has misinterpreted the deeper reasons behind the organization of earthly matters, some of which are even hinted at in Greek history. Then he cites Deut. 32:8-9: "When the Most High divided the nations, when he scattered the sons of Adam, He set the borders of the people according to the number of the Angels of God; and the Lord's portion was His people Jacob, and Israel the line of His inheritance." This wording comes from the Septuagint, not the English authorized version, but it strongly implies that the title "Lord" is seen as referring specifically to the Ruling Angel of the Jews, rather than to the "Most High," i.e., God. This interpretation has faded away, due to ignorance, which is why many statements referring to the "Lord" become inappropriate when assigned to the "Most High," e.g., Judges 1:19.

Origen then relates the history of the Tower of Babel, and continues: "But on these subjects much, and that of a mystical kind, might be said; in keeping with which is the following: 'It is good to keep close the secret of a king,' Tobit xii. 7, in order that the doctrine of the entrance of souls into bodies (not, however, that of the transmigration from one body into another) may not be thrown before the common understanding, nor what is holy given to the dogs, nor pearls be cast before swine. For such a procedure would be impious, being equivalent to a betrayal of the mysterious declarations of God's wisdom.... It is sufficient, however, to represent in the style of a historic narrative what is intended to convey a secret meaning in the garb of history, that those who have the capacity may work out for themselves all that relates to the subject."[135] He then expounds more fully[Pg 98] the Tower of Babel story, and writes: "Now, in the next place, if any one has the capacity let him understand that in what assumes the form of history, and which contains some things that are literally true, while yet it conveys a deeper meaning...."[136]

Origen then shares the story of the Tower of Babel and continues: "But there’s much to say on these topics, especially in a mystical way; in line with this is the following: 'It is good to keep the secret of a king,' Tobit 12:7, so that the idea of souls entering bodies (not the idea of moving from one body to another) isn’t put out there for everyone to grasp, nor should what is sacred be given to those who don’t appreciate it, nor should pearls be thrown to pigs. Doing so would be wrong, as it would betray the sacred messages of God’s wisdom.... However, it’s enough to present in a historical narrative what is meant to convey a secret meaning wrapped in history, so that those who are able can figure out everything that relates to the topic." He then elaborates further on the Tower of Babel story and writes: "Now, if anyone has the capacity to understand, they should see that what appears as history, which contains some literal truths, also conveys a deeper meaning...."

After endeavouring to show that the "Lord" was more powerful than the other superintending Spirits of the different quarters of the earth, and that he sent his people forth to be punished by living under the dominion of the other powers, and afterwards reclaimed them with all of the less favoured nations who could be drawn in, Origen concludes by saying: "As we have previously observed, these remarks are to be understood as being made by us with a concealed meaning, by way of pointing out the mistakes of those who assert ..."[137] as did Celsus.

After trying to demonstrate that the "Lord" was more powerful than the other supervising Spirits from different parts of the earth, and that he sent his people to be punished by living under the rule of those other powers, only to later reclaim them along with all the less favored nations he could gather, Origen concludes by saying: "As we have previously noted, these comments should be understood as having a hidden meaning, aimed at highlighting the errors of those who claim ..." [137] as Celsus did.

After remarking that "the object of Christianity is that we should become wise,"[138] Origen proceeds: "If you come to[Pg 99] the books written after the time of Jesus, you will find that those multitudes of believers who hear the parables are, as it were, 'without,' and worthy only of exoteric doctrines, while the disciples learn in private the explanation of the parables. For, privately, to His own disciples did Jesus open up all things, esteeming above the multitudes those who desired to know His wisdom. And He promises to those who believe on Him to send them wise men and scribes.... And Paul also in the catalogue of 'Charismata' bestowed by God, placed first 'the Word of wisdom,' and second, as being inferior to it, 'the word of knowledge,' but third, and lower down, 'faith.' And because he regarded 'the Word' as higher than miraculous powers, he for that reason places 'workings of miracles' and 'gifts of healings' in a lower place than gifts of the Word."[139]

After noting that "the goal of Christianity is for us to become wise,"[138] Origen continues: "If you look at the writings from after Jesus' time, you'll see that the many believers who hear the parables are, in a way, just 'outsiders,' primarily suited for basic teachings, while the disciples receive a deeper understanding of the parables in private. For privately, Jesus revealed everything to His disciples, valuing those who wanted to grasp His wisdom over the crowds. He promises to send wise men and teachers to those who believe in Him.... Paul, too, in his list of 'Charismata' given by God, put 'the Word of wisdom' first, then 'the word of knowledge' as less important, but third, and lower down, 'faith.' And because he saw 'the Word' as greater than miraculous powers, he consequently listed 'workings of miracles' and 'gifts of healings' as lesser than gifts related to the Word."[139]

The Gospel truly helped the ignorant, "but it is no hindrance to the knowledge of God, but an assistance, to have been educated, and to have studied the best opinions, and to be wise."[140] As for the[Pg 100] unintelligent, "I endeavour to improve such also to the best of my ability, although I would not desire to build up the Christian community out of such materials. For I seek in preference those who are more clever and acute, because they are able to comprehend the meaning of the hard sayings."[141] Here we have plainly stated the ancient Christian idea, entirely at one with the considerations submitted in Chapter I. of this book. There is room for the ignorant in Christianity, but it is not intended only for them, and has deep teachings for the "clever and acute."

The Gospel genuinely helped those who are ignorant, "but it doesn't get in the way of knowing God; instead, it supports those who are educated, who have studied the best ideas, and who are wise."[140] Regarding the[Pg 100] less intelligent, "I try to uplift them as much as I can, though I wouldn't want to build the Christian community solely out of such individuals. I prefer to seek out those who are smarter and sharper since they can grasp the meaning of difficult teachings."[141] Here we clearly see the ancient Christian idea, completely aligned with what was discussed in Chapter I of this book. There is a place for the ignorant in Christianity, but it is not meant only for them, and it holds profound teachings for the "smart and sharp."

It is for these that he takes much pains to show that the Jewish and Christian Scriptures have hidden meanings, veiled under stories the outer meaning of which repels them as absurd, alluding to the serpent and the tree of life, and "the other statements which follow, which might of themselves lead a candid reader to see that all these things had, not inappropriately, an allegorical meaning."[142] Many chapters are devoted to these allegorical and mystical meanings, hidden[Pg 101] beneath the words of the Old and New Testaments, and he alleges that Moses, like the Egyptians, gave histories with concealed meanings.[143] "He who deals candidly with histories"—this is Origen's general canon of interpretation—"and would wish to keep himself also from being imposed on by them, will exercise his judgment as to what statements he will give his assent to, and what he will accept figuratively, seeking to discover the meaning of the authors of such inventions, and from what statements he will withhold his beliefs, as having been written for the gratification of certain individuals. And we have said this by way of anticipation respecting the whole history related in the Gospels concerning Jesus."[144] A great part of his Fourth Book is taken up with illustrations of the mystical explanations of the Scripture stories, and anyone who wishes to pursue the subject can read through it.

He works hard to demonstrate that the Jewish and Christian Scriptures have deeper meanings, hidden beneath narratives whose surface meanings might seem absurd, referencing the serpent and the tree of life, as well as "other statements that could reasonably lead an open-minded reader to recognize that all these things have, quite appropriately, an allegorical meaning."[142] Many chapters focus on these allegorical and mystical interpretations, concealed[Pg 101] beneath the words of the Old and New Testaments. He argues that Moses, similar to the Egyptians, presented histories with hidden meanings.[143] "Anyone who approaches histories honestly"—this is Origen's general guideline for interpretation—"and wants to protect himself from being misled by them, will use his judgment on what statements to agree with and which to interpret figuratively, aiming to uncover the intentions of the authors of such narratives, and deciding from which statements to withhold his belief, as they were written to please certain individuals. We mention this as a prelude to the entire story depicted in the Gospels about Jesus."[144] A significant portion of his Fourth Book is dedicated to examples of the mystical interpretations of the Scripture stories, and anyone interested in the topic can read through it.

In the De Principiis, Origen gives it as the received teaching of the Church "that[Pg 102] the Scriptures were written by the Spirit of God, and have a meaning, not only such as is apparent at first sight, but also another, which escapes the notice of most. For those [words] which are written are the forms of certain Mysteries, and the images of divine things. Respecting which there is one opinion throughout the whole Church, that the whole law is indeed spiritual; but that the spiritual meaning which the law conveys is not known to all, but to those only on whom the grace of the Holy Spirit is bestowed in the word of wisdom and knowledge."[145] Those who remember what has already been quoted will see in the "Word of wisdom" and "the word of knowledge" the two typical mystical instructions, the spiritual and the intellectual.

In the De Principiis, Origen states that the accepted teaching of the Church is "that[Pg 102] the Scriptures were written by the Spirit of God, and they have a meaning that goes beyond what is obvious at first glance; there is also another meaning that most people overlook. The written words are forms of certain Mysteries and representations of divine realities. It’s a unanimous belief across the Church that the entire law is indeed spiritual; however, the spiritual meaning conveyed by the law is not understood by everyone, but only by those who receive the grace of the Holy Spirit in the gift of wisdom and knowledge."[145] Those who remember what has already been stated will recognize in "the word of wisdom" and "the word of knowledge" the two main mystical teachings: the spiritual and the intellectual.

In the Fourth Book of De Principiis, Origen explains at length his views on the interpretation of Scripture. It has a "body," which is the "common and historical sense"; a "soul," a figurative meaning to be discovered by the exercise of the intellect; and a "spirit," an inner[Pg 103] and divine sense, to be known only by those who have "the mind of Christ." He considers that incongruous and impossible things are introduced into the history to arouse an intelligent reader, and compel him to search for a deeper explanation, while simple people would read on without appreciating the difficulties.[146]

In the Fourth Book of De Principiis, Origen thoroughly shares his thoughts on interpreting Scripture. It has a "body," which is the "common and historical sense"; a "soul," a figurative meaning that can be discovered through intellectual exploration; and a "spirit," an inner[Pg 103] and divine sense, understood only by those who possess "the mind of Christ." He believes that absurd and impossible elements are placed in the narrative to challenge insightful readers and encourage them to seek a deeper understanding, while simpler individuals will continue reading without recognizing the complexities.[146]

Cardinal Newman, in his Arians of the Fourth Century, has some interesting remarks on the Disciplina Arcani, but, with the deeply-rooted ingrained scepticism of the nineteenth century, he cannot believe to the full in the "riches of the glory of the Mystery," or probably never for a moment conceived the possibility of the existence of such splendid realities. Yet he was a believer in Jesus, and the words of the promise of Jesus were clear and definite: "I will not leave you comfortless; I will come to you. Yet a little while, and the world seeth me no more; but ye see me: because I live, ye shall live also. At that day ye shall know that I am in my Father, and ye in me, and I in you."[147] The promise was amply[Pg 104] redeemed, for He came to them and taught them in His Mysteries; therein they saw Him, though the world saw Him no more, and they knew the Christ as in them, and their life as Christ's.

Cardinal Newman, in his Arians of the Fourth Century, makes some interesting points about the Disciplina Arcani, but with the deep skepticism of the nineteenth century, he can't fully believe in the "riches of the glory of the Mystery," and probably never truly considered the possibility of such amazing realities. Still, he was a believer in Jesus, and Jesus' promise was clear and definite: "I will not leave you comfortless; I will come to you. Yet a little while, and the world sees me no more; but you see me: because I live, you shall live also. On that day you shall know that I am in my Father, and you in me, and I in you." [147] The promise was more than fulfilled, as He came to them and taught them in His Mysteries; in that, they saw Him, even though the world no longer did, and they recognized Christ within them, and their life as Christ's.

Cardinal Newman recognises a secret tradition, handed down from the Apostles, but he considers that it consisted of Christian doctrines, later divulged, forgetting that those who were told that they were not yet fit to receive it were not heathen, nor even catechumens under instruction, but full communicating members of the Christian Church. Thus he states that this secret tradition was later "authoritatively divulged and perpetuated in the form of symbols," and was embodied "in the creeds of the early Councils."[148] But as the doctrines in the creeds are to be found clearly stated in the Gospels and Epistles, this position is wholly untenable, all these having been already divulged to the world at large; and in all of them the members of the Church were certainly thoroughly instructed. The repeated statements as to secrecy become[Pg 105] meaningless if thus explained. The Cardinal, however, says that whatever "has not been thus authenticated, whether it was prophetical information or comment on the past dispensations, is, from the circumstances of the case, lost to the Church."[149] That is very probably, in fact certainly, true, so far as the Church is concerned, but it is none the less recoverable.

Cardinal Newman acknowledges a hidden tradition passed down from the Apostles, but he believes it consisted of Christian doctrines that were later revealed, overlooking the fact that those told they weren't ready to receive it were not outsiders or even new learners, but full members of the Christian Church. He claims this secret tradition was later "authoritatively revealed and maintained in the form of symbols," and was expressed "in the creeds of the early Councils."[148] However, since the doctrines in the creeds are clearly stated in the Gospels and Epistles, this argument is completely untenable, as all this information had already been shared with the wider world; and in all cases, the Church members were certainly well-informed. The repeated references to secrecy become[Pg 105] meaningless if explained this way. Nevertheless, the Cardinal states that whatever "has not been thus verified, whether it was prophetic knowledge or commentary on past events, is, due to the circumstances, lost to the Church."[149] That is likely true, indeed certainly true, as far as the Church is concerned, but it is still possible to recover.

Commenting on Irenæus, who in his work Against Heresies lays much stress on the existence of an Apostolic Tradition in the Church, the Cardinal writes: "He then proceeds to speak of the clearness and cogency of the traditions preserved in the Church, as containing that true wisdom of the perfect, of which S. Paul speaks, and to which the Gnostics pretended. And, indeed, without formal proofs of the existence and the authority in primitive times of an Apostolic Tradition, it is plain that there must have been such a tradition, granting that the Apostles conversed, and their friends had memories, like other men. It is quite inconceivable that they should[Pg 106] not have been led to arrange the series of revealed doctrines more systematically than they record them in Scripture, as soon as their converts became exposed to the attacks and misrepresentations of heretics; unless they were forbidden to do so, a supposition which cannot be maintained. Their statements thus occasioned would be preserved as a matter of course; together with those other secret but less important truths, to which S. Paul seems to allude, and which the early writers more or less acknowledge, whether concerning the types of the Jewish Church, or the prospective fortunes of the Christian. And such recollections of apostolical teaching would evidently be binding on the faith of those who were instructed in them; unless it can be supposed that, though coming from inspired teachers, they were not of divine origin."[150] In a part of the section dealing with the allegorising method, he writes in reference to the sacrifice of Isaac, &c., as "typical of the New Testament revelation": "In corroboration of this remark, let it be observed,[Pg 107] that there seems to have been[151] in the Church a traditionary explanation of these historical types, derived from the Apostles, but kept among the secret doctrines, as being dangerous to the majority of hearers; and certainly S. Paul, in the Epistle to the Hebrews, affords us an instance of such a tradition, both as existing and as secret (even though it be shown to be of Jewish origin), when, first checking himself and questioning his brethren's faith, he communicates, not without hesitation, the evangelical scope of the account of Melchisedec, as introduced into the book of Genesis."[152]

Commenting on Irenæus, who in his work Against Heresies emphasizes the importance of an Apostolic Tradition in the Church, the Cardinal writes: "He then goes on to discuss the clarity and strength of the traditions preserved in the Church, which embody the true wisdom of the perfect that S. Paul refers to, and which the Gnostics claimed to possess. Indeed, without formal evidence of the existence and authority of an Apostolic Tradition in early times, it is clear that there must have been such a tradition, assuming that the Apostles communicated with others and that their friends had memories like anyone else. It’s hard to believe they wouldn’t have organized the revealed doctrines more systematically than they recorded them in Scripture, especially once their followers faced the challenges and distortions from heretics; unless they were somehow forbidden to do so, a notion that can’t be justified. The resulting statements would naturally be preserved, along with those other secret but less significant truths, which S. Paul seems to refer to and which early writers acknowledge to varying degrees, whether related to the types of the Jewish Church or the future of Christianity. These memories of apostolic teaching would clearly be binding on those who were instructed in them; unless you assume that, despite coming from inspired teachers, they weren’t of divine origin."[150] In a section discussing the allegorical method, he refers to the sacrifice of Isaac and others as "symbolic of the New Testament revelation": "To support this observation, it should be noted that there seems to have been[151] a traditional explanation in the Church of these historical types, derived from the Apostles, but kept among the secret doctrines, as they might be dangerous for most listeners; and indeed S. Paul, in the Epistle to the Hebrews, gives us an example of such a tradition, both as existing and as secret (even if shown to be of Jewish origin), when, first pausing and questioning his fellow believers' faith, he relays, not without hesitation, the evangelical significance of the account of Melchisedec found in the book of Genesis."[152]

The social and political convulsions that accompanied its dying now began to torture the vast frame of the Roman Empire, and even the Christians were caught up in the whirlpool of selfish warring interests. We still find scattered references to special knowledge imparted to the leaders and teachers of the Church, knowledge of the[Pg 108] heavenly hierarchies, instructions given by angels, and so on. But the lack of suitable pupils caused the Mysteries to be withdrawn as an institution publicly known to exist, and teaching was given more and more secretly to those rarer and rarer souls, who by learning, purity, and devotion showed themselves capable of receiving it. No longer were schools to be found wherein the preliminary teachings were given, and with the disappearance of these the "door was shut."

The social and political turmoil that came with its decline began to strain the vast structure of the Roman Empire, and even Christians found themselves caught in the chaos of selfish, conflicting interests. We still discover scattered mentions of special knowledge given to the leaders and teachers of the Church—knowledge about the heavenly hierarchies, instructions from angels, and so on. However, the lack of suitable students led to the Mysteries being withdrawn as a publicly recognized institution, and teaching increasingly took place in secret, reserved for those rare individuals who demonstrated the capability to receive it through learning, purity, and devotion. There were no longer any schools where the initial teachings were provided, and with their disappearance, the "door was shut."

Two streams may nevertheless be tracked through Christendom, streams which had as their source the vanished Mysteries. One was the stream of mystic learning, flowing from the Wisdom, the Gnosis, imparted in the Mysteries; the other was the stream of mystic contemplation, equally part of the Gnosis, leading to the exstasy, to spiritual vision. This latter, however, divorced from knowledge, rarely attained the true exstasis, and tended either to run riot in the lower regions of the invisible worlds, or to lose itself amid a variegated crowd of subtle superphysical forms, visible as objective appearances to[Pg 109] the inner vision—prematurely forced by fastings, vigils, and strained attention—but mostly born of the thoughts and emotions of the seer. Even when the forms observed were not externalised thoughts, they were seen through a distorting atmosphere of preconceived ideas and beliefs, and were thus rendered largely unreliable. None the less, some of the visions were verily of heavenly things, and Jesus truly appeared from time to time to His devoted lovers, and angels would sometimes brighten with their presence the cell of monk and nun, the solitude of rapt devotee and patient seeker after God. To deny the possibility of such experiences would be to strike at the very root of that "which has been most surely believed" in all religions, and is known to all Occultists—the intercommunication between Spirits veiled in flesh and those clad in subtler vestures, the touching of mind with mind across the barriers of matter, the unfolding of the Divinity in man, the sure knowledge of a life beyond the gates of death.

Two streams can still be traced through Christianity, originating from the lost Mysteries. One is the stream of mystical knowledge, stemming from the Wisdom, the Gnosis, shared in the Mysteries; the other is the stream of mystical meditation, also part of the Gnosis, leading to ecstasy and spiritual insight. However, this second stream, when separated from knowledge, rarely achieves true ecstasy and often ends up either getting lost in the lower realms of the invisible world or wandering amid a chaotic mix of subtle, superphysical forms that are seen as tangible manifestations to the inner vision—prematurely triggered by fasting, sleeplessness, and intense focus—but mostly arising from the thoughts and feelings of the observer. Even when the forms seen were not mere projected thoughts, they were viewed through a distorted lens of preconceived notions and beliefs, making them largely unreliable. Nevertheless, some of these visions were indeed of heavenly nature, and Jesus would genuinely appear from time to time to his devoted followers, while angels occasionally illuminated the cells of monks and nuns, as well as the solitude of rapt devotees and patient seekers of God. To deny the possibility of such experiences would undermine the very essence of what has been "most surely believed" in all religions and is recognized by all Occultists—the communication between spirits in physical bodies and those in subtler forms, the connection of mind with mind beyond the barriers of matter, the revelation of the divine within humanity, and the undeniable awareness of life beyond death.

Glancing down the centuries we find no time in which Christendom was left[Pg 110] wholly devoid of mysteries. "It was probably about the end of the 5th century, just as ancient philosophy was dying out in the Schools of Athens, that the speculative philosophy of neo-Platonism made a definite lodgment in Christian thought through the literary forgeries of the Pseudo-Dionysius. The doctrines of Christianity were by that time so firmly established that the Church could look upon a symbolical or mystical interpretation of them without anxiety. The author of the Theologica Mystica and the other works ascribed to the Areopagite proceeds, therefore, to develop the doctrines of Proclus with very little modification into a system of esoteric Christianity. God is the nameless and supra-essential One, elevated above goodness itself. Hence 'negative theology,' which ascends from the creature to God by dropping one after another every determinate predicate, leads us nearest to the truth. The return to God is the consummation of all things and the goal indicated by Christian teaching. The same doctrines were preached with more of churchly fervour[Pg 111] by Maximus the Confessor (580-622). Maximus represents almost the last speculative activity of the Greek Church, but the influence of the Pseudo-Dionysian writing was transmitted to the West in the ninth century by Erigena, in whose speculative spirit both the scholasticism and the mysticism of the Middle Ages have their rise. Erigena translated Dionysius into Latin along with the commentaries of Maximus, and his system is essentially based upon theirs. The negative theology is adopted, and God is stated to be predicateless Being, above all categories, and therefore not improperly called Nothing [query, No-Thing]. Out of this Nothing or incomprehensible essence the world of ideas or primordial causes is eternally created. This is the Word or Son of God, in whom all things exist, so far as they have substantial existence. All existence is a theophany, and as God is the beginning of all things, so also is He the end. Erigena teaches the restitution of all things under the form of the Dionysian adunatio or deificatio. These are the permanent outlines[Pg 112] of what may be called the philosophy of mysticism in Christian times, and it is remarkable with how little variation they are repeated from age to age."[153]

Looking back over the centuries, we see that there has never been a time when Christianity was completely without mysteries. "It was probably toward the end of the 5th century, just as ancient philosophy was fading in the Schools of Athens, that neo-Platonism made a clear impact on Christian thought through the literary forgeries of Pseudo-Dionysius. By that time, the doctrines of Christianity were well established, allowing the Church to interpret them symbolically or mystically without concern. The author of Theologica Mystica and other works attributed to the Areopagite proceeds to develop the ideas of Proclus with minimal changes into a system of esoteric Christianity. God is the nameless and essential One, higher even than goodness itself. Thus, 'negative theology'—which moves from creature to God by stripping away every specific attribute—brings us closest to the truth. The return to God is the culmination of all things and the objective highlighted by Christian teaching. These same doctrines were preached with greater fervor by Maximus the Confessor (580-622). Maximus represents nearly the last speculative activity of the Greek Church, but the influence of Pseudo-Dionysian writing was carried to the West in the ninth century by Erigena, from whose speculative spirit both scholasticism and mysticism of the Middle Ages emerged. Erigena translated Dionysius into Latin along with Maximus's commentaries, and his system fundamentally relies on theirs. Negative theology is adopted, and God is described as being beyond all categories, and thus rightly called Nothing [query, No-Thing]. From this Nothing or incomprehensible essence, the realm of ideas or original causes is eternally created. This is the Word or Son of God, in whom all things exist to the extent that they have substantial existence. All existence is a manifestation of God, and just as God is the beginning of all things, He is also the end. Erigena teaches the restoration of all things in the form of the Dionysian adunatio or deificatio. These are the enduring outlines of what might be referred to as the philosophy of mysticism in Christian times, and it is striking how little they change from age to age."

In the eleventh century Bernard of Clairvaux (A.D. 1091-1153) and Hugo of S. Victor carry on the mystic tradition, with Richard of S. Victor in the following century, and S. Bonaventura the Seraphic Doctor, and the great S. Thomas Aquinas (A.D. 1227-1274) in the thirteenth. Thomas Aquinas dominates the Europe of the Middle Ages, by his force of character no less than by his learning and piety. He asserts "Revelation" as one source of knowledge, Scripture and tradition being the two channels in which it runs, and the influence, seen in his writings, of the Pseudo-Dionysius links him to the Neo-Platonists. The second source is Reason, and here the channels are the Platonic philosophy and the methods of Aristotle—the latter an alliance that did Christianity no good, for Aristotle became an obstacle to the advance of the higher thought, as was made manifest in the struggles[Pg 113] of Giordano Bruno, the Pythagorean. Thomas Aquinas was canonised in A.D. 1323, and the great Dominican remains as a type of the union of theology and philosophy—the aim of his life. These belong to the great Church of western Europe, vindicating her claim to be regarded as the transmitter of the holy torch of mystic learning. Around her there also sprang up many sects, deemed heretical, yet containing true traditions of the sacred secret learning, the Cathari and many others, persecuted by a Church jealous of her authority, and fearing lest the holy pearls should pass into profane custody. In this century also S. Elizabeth of Hungary shines out with sweetness and purity, while Eckhart (A.D. 1260-1329) proves himself a worthy inheritor of the Alexandrian Schools. Eckhart taught that "The Godhead is the absolute Essence (Wesen), unknowable not only by man but also by Itself; It is darkness and absolute indeterminateness, Nicht in contrast to Icht, or definite and knowable existence. Yet It is the potentiality of all things, and Its nature is, in a triadic[Pg 114] process, to come to consciousness of Itself as the triune God. Creation is not a temporal act, but an eternal necessity, of the divine nature. I am as necessary to God, Eckhart is fond of saying, as God is necessary to me. In my knowledge and love God knows and loves Himself."[154]

In the eleventh century, Bernard of Clairvaux (A.D. 1091-1153) and Hugo of S. Victor continued the mystic tradition, followed by Richard of S. Victor in the next century, and S. Bonaventura, the Seraphic Doctor, along with the great S. Thomas Aquinas (A.D. 1227-1274) in the thirteenth century. Thomas Aquinas dominated medieval Europe through his strong character as much as his knowledge and devotion. He states that "Revelation" is one source of knowledge, with Scripture and tradition being the two avenues through which it flows; the influence of Pseudo-Dionysius evident in his writings connects him to the Neo-Platonists. The second source is Reason, drawing from Platonic philosophy and the methods of Aristotle—this latter connection hindered the progress of higher thought, as evidenced by the struggles of Giordano Bruno, the Pythagorean. Thomas Aquinas was canonized in A.D. 1323, and the notable Dominican remains a symbol of the merger of theology and philosophy, his life's goal. These figures belong to the great Church of western Europe, validating her role as the transmitter of the sacred torch of mystical learning. Around her, various sects emerged, seen as heretical but still holding true traditions of sacred secret learning, such as the Cathari and many others, persecuted by a Church protective of its authority and fearful that the sacred treasures might fall into secular hands. In this century, S. Elizabeth of Hungary also shines with sweetness and purity, while Eckhart (A.D. 1260-1329) proves to be a worthy successor of the Alexandrian Schools. Eckhart taught that "The Godhead is the absolute Essence (Wesen), unknowable not only by man but also by itself; It is darkness and absolute indeterminateness, Nicht in contrast to Icht, or definite and knowable existence. Yet It holds the potential for all things, and Its nature is, in a triadic process, to become conscious of itself as the triune God. Creation is not a temporal act but an eternal necessity of the divine nature. I am as necessary to God, Eckhart often says, as God is necessary to me. In my knowledge and love, God knows and loves Himself."

Eckhart is followed, in the fourteenth century, by John Tauler, and Nicolas of Basel, "the Friend of God in the Oberland." From these sprang up the Society of the Friends of God, true mystics and followers of the old tradition. Mead remarks that Thomas Aquinas, Tauler, and Eckhart followed the Pseudo-Dionysius, who followed Plotinus, Iamblichus, and Proclus, who in turn followed Plato and Pythagoras.[155] So linked together are the followers of the Wisdom in all ages. It was probably a "Friend" who was the author of Die Deutsche Theologie, a book of mystical devotion, which had the curious fortune of being approved by Staupitz, the Vicar-General of the Augustinian Order, who recommended it to Luther, and by[Pg 115] Luther himself, who published it A.D. 1516, as a book which should rank immediately after the Bible and the writings of S. Augustine of Hippo. Another "Friend" was Ruysbroeck, to whose influence with Groot was due the founding of the Brethren of the Common Lot or Common Life—a Society that must remain ever memorable, as it numbered among its members that prince of mystics, Thomas à Kempis (A.D. 1380-1471), the author of the immortal Imitation of Christ.

Eckhart was followed in the fourteenth century by John Tauler and Nicolas of Basel, known as "the Friend of God in the Oberland." From these figures emerged the Society of the Friends of God, genuine mystics who adhered to the old tradition. Mead notes that Thomas Aquinas, Tauler, and Eckhart were influenced by Pseudo-Dionysius, who was inspired by Plotinus, Iamblichus, and Proclus, who in turn followed Plato and Pythagoras.[155] This connection binds the followers of Wisdom throughout the ages. It’s likely that a "Friend" authored Die Deutsche Theologie, a book of mystical devotion that received the unique distinction of being endorsed by Staupitz, the Vicar-General of the Augustinian Order, who recommended it to Luther. Luther himself published it AD 1516, considering it a work that should be regarded right after the Bible and the writings of St. Augustine of Hippo. Another "Friend" was Ruysbroeck, whose influence on Groot led to the establishment of the Brethren of the Common Lot or Common Life—a Society that remains significant, as it included the renowned mystic Thomas à Kempis (CE 1380-1471), the author of the timeless Imitation of Christ.

In the fifteenth century the more purely intellectual side of mysticism comes out more strongly than the exstatic—so dominant in these societies of the fourteenth—and we have Cardinal Nicolas of Cusa, with Giordano Bruno, the martyred knight-errant of philosophy, and Paracelsus, the much slandered scientist, who drew his knowledge directly from the original eastern fountain, instead of through Greek channels.

In the fifteenth century, the intellectual aspect of mysticism became more prominent than the ecstatic side that had dominated the fourteenth-century societies. Notable figures from this time include Cardinal Nicolas of Cusa, Giordano Bruno, the philosopher who was a martyr for his beliefs, and Paracelsus, the often-misunderstood scientist who obtained his knowledge directly from the original Eastern sources rather than through Greek intermediaries.

The sixteenth century saw the birth of Jacob Böhme (A.D. 1575-1624), the "inspired cobbler," an Initiate in obscuration truly, sorely persecuted by[Pg 116] unenlightened men; and then too came S. Teresa, the much-oppressed and suffering Spanish mystic; and S. John of the Cross, a burning flame of intense devotion; and S. Francois de Sales. Wise was Rome in canonising these, wiser than the Reformation that persecuted Böhme, but the spirit of the Reformation was ever intensely anti-mystical, and wherever its breath hath passed the fair flowers of mysticism have withered as under the sirocco.

The sixteenth century saw the birth of Jacob Böhme (A.D. 1575-1624), the "inspired cobbler," who was truly a hidden initiate, harshly persecuted by unenlightened people; and then there was S. Teresa, the greatly oppressed and suffering Spanish mystic; and S. John of the Cross, a passionate flame of deep devotion; and S. Francois de Sales. Rome was wise to canonize these figures, much wiser than the Reformation that persecuted Böhme, but the spirit of the Reformation was always intensely anti-mystical, and wherever its influence spread, the beautiful flowers of mysticism withered like they were caught in a hot desert wind.

Rome, however, who, though she canonised Teresa dead, had sorely harried her while living—did ill with Mme. de Guyon (A.D. 1648-1717), a true mystic, and with Miguel de Molinos (1627-1696), worthy to sit near S. John of the Cross, who carried on in the seventeenth century the high devotion of the mystic, turned into a peculiarly passive form—the Quietist.

Rome, however, who, although she canonized Teresa after her death, had greatly troubled her while she was alive—did wrong by Madame de Guyon (CE 1648-1717), a genuine mystic, and Miguel de Molinos (1627-1696), deserving to sit alongside St. John of the Cross, who continued the deep devotion of mysticism in the seventeenth century, transformed into a uniquely passive form—the Quietist.

In this same century arose the school of Platonists in Cambridge, of whom Henry More (A.D. 1614-1687) may serve as salient example; also Thomas Vaughan, and Robert Fludd the Rosicrucian; and there is formed also the[Pg 117] Philadelphian Society, and we see William Law (A.D. 1686-1761) active in the eighteenth century, and overlapping S. Martin (A.D. 1743-1803), whose writings have fascinated so many nineteenth century students.[156]

In this same century, the Platonist school emerged in Cambridge, with Henry More (CE 1614-1687) as a prominent example, along with Thomas Vaughan and Rosicrucian Robert Fludd. The [Pg 117] Philadelphian Society was also formed, and we see William Law (CE 1686-1761) active in the eighteenth century, overlapping with S. Martin (A.D. 1743-1803), whose writings have captivated many students in the nineteenth century.[156]

Nor should we omit Christian Rosenkreutz (d. A.D. 1484), whose mystic Society of the Rosy Cross, appearing in 1614, held true knowledge, and whose spirit was reborn in the "Comte de S. Germain," the mysterious figure that appears and disappears through the gloom, lit by lurid flashes, of the closing eighteenth century. Mystics too were some of the Quakers, the much-persecuted sect of Friends, seeking the illumination of the Inner Light, and listening ever for the Inner Voice. And many another mystic was there, "of whom the world was not worthy," like the wholly delightful and wise Mother Juliana of Norwich, of the fourteenth century, jewels of Christendom,[Pg 118] too little known, but justifying Christianity to the world.

Nor should we forget Christian Rosenkreutz (d. CE 1484), whose mystic Society of the Rosy Cross emerged in 1614, holding true knowledge, and whose spirit was reborn in the "Comte de S. Germain," the mysterious figure who appears and disappears through the shadows, illuminated by sudden bursts of light, at the end of the eighteenth century. Mystics were also part of the Quakers, the often-persecuted group of Friends, seeking the illumination of the Inner Light and always listening for the Inner Voice. And there were many other mystics, "of whom the world was not worthy," like the truly delightful and wise Mother Juliana of Norwich from the fourteenth century, gems of Christianity,[Pg 118] too little known, but validating Christianity to the world.

Yet, as we salute reverently these Children of the Light, scattered over the centuries, we are forced to recognise in them the absence of that union of acute intellect and high devotion which were welded together by the training of the Mysteries, and while we marvel that they soared so high, we cannot but wish that their rare gifts had been developed under that magnificent disciplina arcani.

Yet, as we respectfully honor these Children of the Light, spread across the centuries, we have to acknowledge that they lack the combination of sharp intelligence and deep devotion that was shaped by the training of the Mysteries. While we are amazed that they reached such heights, we can’t help but wish that their unique talents had been cultivated under that magnificent disciplina arcani.

Alphonse Louis Constant, better known under his pseudonym, Eliphas Lévi, has put rather well the loss of the Mysteries, and the need for their re-institution. "A great misfortune befell Christianity. The betrayal of the Mysteries by the false Gnostics—for the Gnostics, that is, those who know, were the Initiates of primitive Christianity—caused the Gnosis to be rejected, and alienated the Church from the supreme truths of the Kabbala, which contain all the secrets of transcendental theology.... Let the most absolute science, let the highest reason, become once more the patrimony of the leaders[Pg 119] of the people; let the sacerdotal art and the royal art take the double sceptre of antique initiations, and the social world will once more issue from its chaos. Burn the holy images no longer; demolish the temples no more; temples and images are necessary for men; but drive the hirelings from the house of prayer; let the blind be no longer leaders of the blind, reconstruct the hierarchy of intelligence and holiness, and recognise only those who know as the teachers of those who believe."[157]

Alphonse Louis Constant, better known by his pseudonym, Eliphas Lévi, expressed quite well the loss of the Mysteries and the need to restore them. "A great misfortune has befallen Christianity. The betrayal of the Mysteries by the false Gnostics—those who know, were the Initiates of early Christianity—led to the rejection of Gnosis, distancing the Church from the supreme truths of the Kabbala, which hold all the secrets of transcendental theology.... Let absolute science and the highest reason once again be the heritage of the leaders of the people; let the sacred and royal arts take on the dual authority of ancient initiations, and society will emerge anew from its chaos. Stop burning holy images; stop destroying temples; temples and images are necessary for humanity; but remove the charlatans from the house of worship; let the blind no longer lead the blind, rebuild the hierarchy of intelligence and holiness, and acknowledge only those who know as the teachers of those who believe."[Pg 119]

Will the Churches of to-day again take up the mystic teaching, the Lesser Mysteries, and so prepare their children for the re-establishment of the Greater Mysteries, again drawing down the Angels as Teachers, and having as Hierophant the Divine Master, Jesus? On the answer to that question depends the future of Christianity.

Will today's Churches embrace the mystical teachings, the Lesser Mysteries, and prepare their children for the re-establishment of the Greater Mysteries, once again inviting the Angels as Teachers and having the Divine Master, Jesus, as the Hierophant? The answer to that question determines the future of Christianity.


Chapter 4.

THE HISTORICAL CHRIST.

We have already spoken, in the first chapter, on the identities existing in all the religions of the world, and we have seen that out of a study of these identities in beliefs, symbolisms, rites, ceremonies, histories, and commemorative festivals, has arisen a modern school which relates the whole of these to a common source in human ignorance, and in a primitive explanation of natural phenomena. From these identities have been drawn weapons for the stabbing of each religion in turn, and the most effective attacks on Christianity and on the historical existence of its Founder have been armed from this source. On entering now on the study of the life of the Christ, of the rites of Christianity, its sacraments, its doctrines,[Pg 121] it would be fatal to ignore the facts marshalled by Comparative Mythologists. Rightly understood, they may be made serviceable instead of mischievous. We have seen that the Apostles and their successors dealt very freely with the Old Testament as having an allegorical and mystic sense far more important than the historical, though by no means negating it, and that they did not scruple to teach the instructed believer that some of the stories that were apparently historical were really purely allegorical. Nowhere, perhaps, is it more necessary to understand this than when we are studying the story of Jesus, surnamed the Christ, for when we do not disentangle the intertwisted threads, and see where symbols have been taken as events, allegories as histories, we lose most of the instructiveness of the narrative and much of its rarest beauty. We cannot too much insist on the fact that Christianity gains, it does not lose, when knowledge is added to faith and virtue, according to the apostolic injunction.[158] Men fear that Christianity will be weakened when reason[Pg 122] studies it, and that it is "dangerous" to admit that events thought to be historical have the deeper significance of the mythical or mystical meaning. It is, on the contrary, strengthened, and the student finds, with joy, that the pearl of great price shines with a purer, clearer lustre when the coating of ignorance is removed and its many colours are seen.

We already discussed, in the first chapter, the similarities found in all the world's religions. We saw that studying these common beliefs, symbols, rituals, ceremonies, histories, and festivals has led to a modern perspective that connects them all to a shared source in human ignorance and early attempts to explain natural phenomena. These similarities have been used as tools to critique each religion, with the strongest attacks on Christianity and the historical existence of its Founder stemming from this analysis. Now, as we look into the life of Christ, the rituals of Christianity, its sacraments, and its doctrines,[Pg 121] it would be harmful to overlook the facts put forth by Comparative Mythologists. When properly understood, these facts can be helpful rather than harmful. We observed that the Apostles and their successors interpreted the Old Testament allegorically and mystically, placing greater importance on its deeper meanings rather than its historical context, without dismissing the latter, and they were not hesitant to teach that some stories that seemed historical were actually purely allegorical. Nowhere is it more crucial to understand this than when we are examining the story of Jesus, called the Christ, because failing to untangle the intertwined threads means we might see symbols as events and allegories as actual histories, causing us to miss much of the narrative's teachings and its unique beauty. We cannot emphasize enough that Christianity benefits, rather than suffers, when knowledge is added to faith and virtue, as urged by the apostles.[158] People worry that reason will weaken Christianity when it examines it, believing it's "dangerous" to acknowledge that events once seen as historical may have deeper mythical or mystical meanings. On the contrary, reason strengthens faith, and students discover, with delight, that the valuable truths of Christianity shine brighter and clearer when ignorance is stripped away and its many facets are revealed.

There are two schools of thought at the present time, bitterly opposed to each other, who dispute over the story of the great Hebrew Teacher. According to one school there is nothing at all in the accounts of His life save myths and legends—myths and legends that were given as explanations of certain natural phenomena, survivals of a pictorial way of teaching certain facts of nature, of impressing on the minds of the uneducated certain grand classifications of natural events that were important in themselves, and that lent themselves to moral instruction. Those who endorse this view form a well-defined school to which belong many men of high education and strong intelligence, and round them gather crowds[Pg 123] of the less instructed, who emphasise with crude vehemence the more destructive elements in their pronouncements. This school is opposed by that of the believers in orthodox Christianity, who declare that the whole story of Jesus is history, unadulterated by legend or myth. They maintain that this history is nothing more than the history of the life of a man born some nineteen centuries ago in Palestine, who passed through all the experiences set down in the Gospels, and they deny that the story has any significance beyond that of a divine and human life. These two schools stand in direct antagonism, one asserting that everything is legend, the other declaring that everything is history. Between them lie many phases of opinion generally labelled "freethinking," which regard the life-story as partly legendary and partly historical, but offer no definite and rational method of interpretation, no adequate explanation of the complex whole. And we also find, within the limits of the Christian Church, a large and ever-increasing number of faithful and devout Christians of refined intelligence,[Pg 124] men and women who are earnest in their faith and religious in their aspirations, but who see in the Gospel story more than the history of a single divine Man. They allege—defending their position from the received Scriptures—that the story of the Christ has a deeper and more significant meaning than lies on the surface; while they maintain the historical character of Jesus, they at the same time declare that The Christ is more than the man Jesus, and has a mystical meaning. In support of this contention they point to such phrases as that used by S. Paul: "My little children, of whom I travail in birth again again until Christ be formed in you";[159] here S. Paul obviously cannot refer to a historical Jesus, but to some forthputting from the human soul which is to him the shaping of Christ therein. Again the same teacher declares that though he had known Christ after the flesh yet from henceforth he would know him thus no more;[160] obviously implying that while he recognised the Christ of the flesh—Jesus—there was a higher view to which he[Pg 125] had attained which threw into the shade the historical Christ. This is the view which many are seeking in our own days, and—faced by the facts of Comparative Religion, puzzled by the contradictions of the Gospels, confused by problems they cannot solve so long as they are tied down to the mere surface meanings of their Scripture—they cry despairingly that the letter killeth while the spirit giveth life, and seek to trace some deep and wide significance in a story which is as old as the religions of the world, and has always served as the very centre and life of every religion in which it has reappeared. These struggling thinkers, too unrelated and indefinite to be spoken of as forming a school, seem to stretch out a hand on one side to those who think that all is legend, asking them to accept a historical basis; on the other side they say to their fellow Christians that there is a growing danger lest, in clinging to a literal and unique meaning, which cannot be defended before the increasing knowledge of the day, the spiritual meaning should be entirely lost. There is a danger of losing "the story of[Pg 126] the Christ," with that thought of the Christ which has been the support and inspiration of millions of noble lives in East and West, though the Christ be called by other names and worshipped under other forms; a danger lest the pearl of great price should escape from our hold, and man be left the poorer for evermore.

There are currently two opposing views fiercely clashing over the story of the great Hebrew Teacher. One view holds that the accounts of His life are just myths and legends—stories created to explain certain natural events, remnants of a visual way of teaching important facts about nature, and ways to instill moral lessons in the minds of those who are uneducated. People who support this view form a distinct group, including many highly educated and intelligent individuals, who are often joined by crowds of less informed people who passionately emphasize the more destructive aspects of their claims. This perspective is countered by those who believe in orthodox Christianity, who argue that the entire story of Jesus is purely historical, without any influence from myth or legend. They assert that this history is simply about a man born around nineteen centuries ago in Palestine, who went through all the experiences detailed in the Gospels, and they reject any deeper significance beyond that of a divine and human life. These two views are in direct conflict, with one claiming everything is legend and the other insisting everything is history. Between them is a range of opinions generally labeled as "freethinking," which sees the life story as a mix of legend and history but does not provide a clear and rational way to interpret it or explain the complex entirety. Additionally, within the Christian Church, there is a growing number of faithful and devout Christians of refined intelligence—men and women who are sincere in their beliefs and spiritual in their aspirations—who find more in the Gospel story than just the history of one divine Man. They argue, supported by the Scriptures, that the story of Christ has a deeper and more significant meaning than what is immediately apparent; while they affirm the historical existence of Jesus, they also maintain that The Christ is more than just the man Jesus and carries a mystical significance. To back this up, they cite phrases from S. Paul, such as, "My little children, of whom I travail in birth again until Christ be formed in you"; here, S. Paul clearly refers not to a historical Jesus but to a deeper reality emerging from the human soul that shapes Christ within. Moreover, the same teacher states that although he once knew Christ in a physical sense, he would no longer know Him that way, implying a recognition of the historical Christ—Jesus—while also acknowledging a higher understanding that transcends the historical context. This is the perspective many are currently searching for, faced with the realities of Comparative Religion, confused by the contradictions in the Gospels, and troubled by issues they cannot resolve while fixated on the superficial meanings of their Scriptures. They lament that "the letter kills, but the spirit gives life," seeking to uncover some profound and expansive significance in a story as ancient as the world’s religions, which has always been the core and essence of every religion in which it has appeared. These inquisitive thinkers, too vague and uncertain to be classified as a cohesive group, seem to reach out on one side to those who believe everything is legend, urging them to consider a historical foundation; on the other side, they caution their fellow Christians that there is a growing risk that by clinging to a literal and unique interpretation—which cannot withstand the increasing knowledge of today—they may completely lose the spiritual meaning. There is a real danger of losing "the story of the Christ," along with the concept of the Christ that has supported and inspired countless noble lives worldwide, regardless of the names or forms under which the Christ is worshipped; a risk that the precious pearl of great value might slip from our grasp, leaving humanity poorer forever.

What is needed, in order that this danger may be averted, is to disentangle the different threads in the story of the Christ, and to lay them side by side—the thread of history, the thread of legend, the thread of mysticism. These have been intertwined into a single strand, to the great loss of the thoughtful, and in disentangling them we shall find that the story becomes more, not less, valuable as knowledge is added to it, and that here, as in all that is basically of the truth, the brighter the light thrown upon it the greater the beauty that is revealed.

What we need to prevent this danger is to separate the different threads in the story of Christ and lay them out side by side—the historical thread, the legendary thread, and the mystical thread. These have been woven together into a single strand, which is a great loss for those who think deeply. By untangling them, we will discover that the story becomes more valuable, not less, as we add knowledge to it. And here, just like in everything that is fundamentally true, the more light we shine on it, the greater the beauty that is revealed.

We will study first the historical Christ; secondly, the mythic Christ; thirdly, the mystic Christ. And we shall find that elements drawn from all these make up[Pg 127] the Jesus Christ of the Churches. They all enter into the composition of the grandiose and pathetic Figure which dominates the thoughts and the emotions of Christendom, the Man of Sorrows, the Saviour, the Lover and Lord of Men.

We will first study the historical Christ; next, the mythic Christ; and finally, the mystic Christ. We will discover that elements from all these sources combine to form [Pg 127] the Jesus Christ of the Churches. They all contribute to the remarkable and moving figure that influences the thoughts and emotions of Christianity, the Man of Sorrows, the Savior, the Lover, and Lord of Humanity.

THE HISTORICAL CHRIST, OR JESUS THE HEALER AND TEACHER.

The thread of the life-story of Jesus is one which may be disentangled from those with which it is intertwined without any great difficulty. We may fairly here aid our study by reference to those records of the past which experts can reverify for themselves, and from which certain details regarding the Hebrew Teacher have been given to the world by H. P. Blavatsky and by others who are experts in occult investigation. Now in the minds of many there is apt to arise a challenge when this word "expert" is used in connection with occultism. Yet it only means a person who by special study, by special training, has accumulated a special kind of knowledge, and has developed powers that[Pg 128] enable him to give an opinion founded on his own individual knowledge of the subject with which he is dealing. Just as we speak of Huxley as an expert in biology, as we speak of a Senior Wrangler as an expert in mathematics, or of Lyell as an expert in geology, so we may fairly call a man an expert in occultism who has first mastered intellectually certain fundamental theories of the constitution of man and the universe, and secondly has developed within himself the powers that are latent in everyone—and are capable of being developed by those who give themselves to appropriate studies—capacities which enable him to examine for himself the more obscure processes of nature. As a man may be born with a mathematical faculty, and by training that faculty year after year may immensely increase his mathematical capacity, so may a man be born with certain faculties within him, faculties belonging to the Soul, which he can develop by training and by discipline. When, having developed those faculties, he applies them to the study of the invisible world, such a man becomes an[Pg 129] expert in Occult Science, and such a man can at his will reverify the records to which I have referred. Such reverification is as much out of the reach of the ordinary person as a mathematical book written in the symbols of the higher mathematics is out of the reach of those who are untrained in mathematical science. There is nothing exclusive in the knowledge save as every science is exclusive; those who are born with a faculty, and train the faculty, can master its appropriate science, while those who start in life without any faculty, or those who do not develop it if they have it, must be content to remain in ignorance. These are the rules everywhere of the obtaining of knowledge, in Occultism as in every other science.

The story of Jesus is one that can be separated from the others it's mixed with without much trouble. We can help our study by referring to past records that experts can verify for themselves, from which certain details about the Hebrew Teacher have been shared with the world by H. P. Blavatsky and others who specialize in occult research. Many people often question the term "expert" when it’s used in relation to occultism. However, it simply refers to someone who, through specialized study and training, has gained a unique kind of knowledge and has developed abilities that enable them to offer an informed opinion based on their individual understanding of the subject. Just as we refer to Huxley as an expert in biology, a Senior Wrangler as an expert in mathematics, or Lyell as an expert in geology, we can also call someone an expert in occultism if they have first intellectually mastered key theories about the nature of man and the universe, and secondly, have cultivated the latent powers within everyone—powers that can be developed by those who dedicate themselves to appropriate studies—that allow them to explore the more obscure processes of nature. Just as someone can be born with a talent for mathematics and enhance that ability through years of training, an individual can also be born with certain soul faculties that can be developed through discipline and education. When someone has honed these faculties and applies them to the study of the invisible world, they become an expert in Occult Science and can verify the records I've mentioned at will. This re-verification is as inaccessible to the average person as a math book using advanced symbols is to those untrained in mathematics. There is nothing exclusive about this knowledge other than the way all sciences are exclusive; those born with abilities who cultivate them can master their relevant science, while those who start without these abilities, or who fail to develop them if they have them, must accept their ignorance. These principles apply universally to the pursuit of knowledge, in Occultism and every other science.

The occult records partly endorse the story told in the Gospels, and partly do not endorse it; they show us the life, and thus enable us to disentangle it from the myths which are intertwined therewith.

The occult records somewhat support the story presented in the Gospels, and somewhat do not; they reveal the life, allowing us to separate it from the myths mixed in with it.

The child whose Jewish name has been turned into that of Jesus was born in[Pg 130] Palestine B.C. 105, during the consulate of Publius Rutilius Rufus and Gnaeus Mallius Maximus. His parents were well-born though poor, and he was educated in a knowledge of the Hebrew Scriptures. His fervent devotion and a gravity beyond his years led his parents to dedicate him to the religious and ascetic life, and soon after a visit to Jerusalem, in which the extraordinary intelligence and eagerness for knowledge of the youth were shown in his seeking of the doctors in the Temple, he was sent to be trained in an Essene community in the southern Judæan desert. When he had reached the age of nineteen he went on to the Essene monastery near Mount Serbal, a monastery which was much visited by learned men travelling from Persia and India to Egypt, and where a magnificent library of occult works—many of them Indian of the Trans-Himâlayan regions—had been established. From this seat of mystic learning he proceeded later to Egypt. He had been fully instructed in the secret teachings which were the real fount of life among the Essenes, and was initiated in[Pg 131] Egypt as a disciple of that one sublime Lodge from which every great religion has its Founder. For Egypt has remained one of the world-centres of the true Mysteries, whereof all semi-public Mysteries are the faint and far-off reflections. The Mysteries spoken of in history as Egyptian were the shadows of the true things "in the Mount," and there the young Hebrew received the solemn consecration which prepared him for the Royal Priesthood he was later to attain. So superhumanly pure and so full of devotion was he, that in his gracious manhood he stood out pre-eminently from the severe and somewhat fanatical ascetics among whom he had been trained, shedding on the stern Jews around him the fragrance of a gentle and tender wisdom, as a rose-tree strangely planted in a desert would shed its sweetness on the barrenness around. The fair and stately grace of his white purity was round him as a radiant moonlit halo, and his words, though few, were ever sweet and loving, winning even the most harsh to a temporary gentleness, and the most rigid to a passing softness. Thus he lived[Pg 132] through nine-and-twenty years of mortal life, growing from grace to grace.

The child whose Jewish name has been changed to that of Jesus was born in[Pg 130] Palestine BCE 105, during the consulate of Publius Rutilius Rufus and Gnaeus Mallius Maximus. His parents were of good lineage but poor, and he was educated in the Hebrew Scriptures. His passionate devotion and maturity beyond his years led his parents to dedicate him to a religious and ascetic life. Soon after a trip to Jerusalem, where his remarkable intelligence and eagerness for knowledge were evident as he sought out the scholars in the Temple, he was sent to be trained in an Essene community in the southern Judean desert. When he turned nineteen, he moved to the Essene monastery near Mount Serbal, a place often visited by learned men traveling from Persia and India to Egypt, which housed a magnificent library of occult works—many of them from India beyond the Himalayas. From this center of mystical learning, he later journeyed to Egypt. He was thoroughly educated in the secret teachings that were the true source of life among the Essenes and was initiated in[Pg 131] Egypt as a disciple of the one sublime Lodge from which every major religion derives its Founder. Egypt has remained one of the world centers of the true Mysteries, of which all semi-public Mysteries are faint and distant reflections. The Mysteries referred to in history as Egyptian were merely shadows of the true essence "in the Mount," and there the young Hebrew received the solemn anointing that prepared him for the Royal Priesthood he would eventually achieve. So superhumanly pure and deeply devoted was he that in his graceful adulthood he stood out remarkably among the strict and somewhat fanatical ascetics who trained him, bringing to the stern Jews around him the fragrance of gentle and tender wisdom, like a rosebush unexpectedly planted in a desert, releasing its sweetness into the surrounding barrenness. The beauty and dignified grace of his white purity surrounded him like a radiant moonlit halo, and his words, though few, were always sweet and loving, softening even the harshest hearts and momentarily gentling the most rigid souls. Thus, he lived[Pg 132] for twenty-nine years of mortal life, growing from grace to grace.

This superhuman purity and devotion fitted the man Jesus, the disciple, to become the temple of a loftier Power, of a mighty, indwelling Presence. The time had come for one of those Divine manifestations which from age to age are made for the helping of humanity, when a new impulse is needed to quicken the spiritual evolution of mankind, when a new civilisation is about to dawn. The world of the West was then in the womb of time, ready for the birth, and the Teutonic sub-race was to catch the sceptre of empire falling from the failing hands of Rome. Ere it started on its journey a World-Saviour must appear, to stand in blessing beside the cradle of the infant Hercules.

This extraordinary purity and devotion equipped Jesus, the disciple, to become a vessel for a higher Power, a powerful, internal Presence. The moment had arrived for one of those Divine revelations that occur throughout history to assist humanity, when a fresh spark is needed to advance the spiritual growth of people, just as a new civilization is on the verge of emerging. At that time, the Western world was pregnant with potential, ready for birth, and the Teutonic sub-race was set to seize the mantle of empire as it fell from the weakening grasp of Rome. Before it began its journey, a World-Savior needed to appear, to stand in blessing beside the cradle of the emerging Hercules.

A mighty "Son of God" was to take flesh upon earth, a supreme Teacher, "full of grace and truth"—[161] One in whom the Divine Wisdom abode in fullest measure, who was verily "the Word" incarnate, Light and Life in outpouring richness, a very Fountain of the Waters[Pg 133] of Life. Lord of Compassion and of Wisdom—such was His name—and from His dwelling in the Secret Places He came forth into the world of men.

A powerful "Son of God" was about to take on human form, a supreme Teacher, "full of grace and truth"—[161] One in whom Divine Wisdom resided in its fullest extent, who was truly "the Word" made flesh, a source of Light and Life overflowing with abundance, a genuine Fountain of the Waters[Pg 133] of Life. Lord of Compassion and Wisdom—such was His title—and from His home in the Secret Places, He came into the realm of humanity.

For Him was needed an earthly tabernacle, a human form, the body of a man, and who so fit to yield his body in glad and willing service to One before whom Angels and men bow down in lowliest reverence, as this Hebrew of the Hebrews, this purest and noblest of "the Perfect," whose spotless body and stainless mind offered the best that humanity could bring? The man Jesus yielded himself a willing sacrifice, "offered himself without spot" to the Lord of Love, who took unto Himself that pure form as tabernacle, and dwelt therein for three years of mortal life.

For Him, an earthly dwelling was needed, a human form, the body of a man. And who better to offer his body in joyful and willing service to One before whom angels and people bow in deep respect than this Hebrew of the Hebrews, this purest and noblest of "the Perfect," whose flawless body and unblemished mind represented the best that humanity could offer? The man Jesus willingly gave himself as a sacrifice, "offered himself without spot" to the Lord of Love, who accepted that pure form as a dwelling and lived in it for three years of mortal life.

This epoch is marked in the traditions embodied in the Gospels as that of the Baptism of Jesus, when the Spirit was seen "descending from heaven like a dove, and it abode upon Him,"[162] and a celestial voice proclaimed Him as the beloved Son, to whom men should give ear. Truly was He the beloved Son in whom the Father[Pg 134] was well-pleased,[163] and from that time forward "Jesus began to preach,"[164] and was that wondrous mystery, "God manifest in the flesh"[165]—not unique in that He was God, for: "Is it not written in your law, I said, Ye are Gods? If he called them Gods, unto whom the word of God came, and the scripture cannot be broken; say ye of Him, whom the Father hath sanctified and sent into the world, Thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the Son of God?"[166] Truly all men are Gods, in respect to the Spirit within them, but not in all is the Godhead manifested, as in that well-beloved Son of the Most High.

This era is marked in the traditions captured in the Gospels as the time of Jesus' Baptism, when the Spirit appeared "descending from heaven like a dove, and it stayed on Him,"[162] and a heavenly voice declared Him to be the beloved Son, to whom people should listen. Indeed, He was the beloved Son in whom the Father[Pg 134] was well-pleased,[163] and from that point on, "Jesus began to preach,"[164] and embodied that amazing mystery, "God made manifest in the flesh"[165]—not in that He was uniquely God, for: "Is it not written in your law, I said, Ye are Gods? If He called them Gods, to whom the word of God came, and the scripture cannot be broken; do you say of Him, whom the Father has set apart and sent into the world, You are blaspheming; because I said, I am the Son of God?"[166] Indeed, all people are Gods, in terms of the Spirit within them, but not everyone shows the divine presence, as in that dearly beloved Son of the Most High.

To that manifested Presence the name of "the Christ" may rightly be given, and it was He who lived and moved in the form of the man Jesus over the hills and plains of Palestine, teaching, healing diseases, and gathering round Him as disciples a few of the more advanced souls. The rare charm of His royal love, outpouring from Him as rays from a sun, drew round Him the suffering, the weary,[Pg 135] and the oppressed, and the subtly tender magic of His gentle wisdom purified, ennobled, and sweetened the lives that came into contact with His own. By parable and luminous imagery He taught the uninstructed crowds who pressed around Him, and, using the powers of the free Spirit, He healed many a disease by word or touch, reinforcing the magnetic energies belonging to His pure body with the compelling force of His inner life. Rejected by His Essene brethren among whom He first laboured—whose arguments against His purposed life of loving labour are summarised in the story of the temptation—because he carried to the people the spiritual wisdom that they regarded as their proudest and most secret treasure, and because His all-embracing love drew within its circle the outcast and the degraded—ever loving in the lowest as in the highest the Divine Self—He saw gathering round Him all too quickly the dark clouds of hatred and suspicion. The teachers and rulers of His nation soon came to eye Him with jealousy and anger; His spirituality was a constant reproach to[Pg 136] their materialism, His power a constant, though silent, exposure of their weakness. Three years had scarcely passed since His baptism when the gathering storm outbroke, and the human body of Jesus paid the penalty for enshrining the glorious Presence of a Teacher more than man.

To that visible Presence, the name "the Christ" is fitting, and it was He who lived and moved in the form of the man Jesus across the hills and plains of Palestine, teaching, healing diseases, and gathering around Him a few of the more enlightened souls as disciples. The rare charm of His royal love, radiating from Him like rays from the sun, attracted to Him those who were suffering, weary, and oppressed. The subtly tender magic of His gentle wisdom purified, uplifted, and sweetened the lives of those who came into contact with Him. Through parables and vivid imagery, He taught the uneducated crowds that pressed around Him, and, using the powers of the free Spirit, He healed many diseases with just a word or a touch, enhancing the magnetic energies of His pure body with the powerful force of His inner life. Rejected by His Essene brothers among whom He first worked—whose arguments against His intended life of loving service are summed up in the story of the temptation—because He brought to the people the spiritual wisdom they considered their proudest and most hidden treasure, and because His all-encompassing love embraced the outcast and the degraded—always loving in the lowest as well as in the highest the Divine Self—He quickly saw dark clouds of hatred and suspicion gathering around Him. The teachers and rulers of His nation soon began to view Him with jealousy and anger; His spirituality was a constant reproach to their materialism, and His power was a silent exposure of their weakness. Barely three years had passed since His baptism when the storm finally erupted, and the human body of Jesus paid the price for embodying the glorious Presence of a Teacher greater than man.

The little band of chosen disciples whom He had selected as repositories of His teachings were thus deprived of their Master's physical presence ere they had assimilated His instructions, but they were souls of high and advanced type, ready to learn the Wisdom, and fit to hand it on to lesser men. Most receptive of all was that "disciple whom Jesus loved," young, eager, and fervid, profoundly devoted to his Master, and sharing His spirit of all-embracing love. He represented, through the century that followed the physical departure of the Christ, the spirit of mystic devotion that sought the exstasis, the vision of and the union with the Divine, while the later great Apostle, S. Paul, represented the wisdom side of the Mysteries.

The small group of chosen disciples that He had picked to carry His teachings were left without their Master's physical presence before they could fully understand His instructions. However, they were elevated souls, ready to learn and capable of sharing this knowledge with others. The most receptive among them was the "disciple whom Jesus loved," young, eager, and passionate, deeply devoted to his Master and embodying His all-encompassing love. Throughout the century following Christ’s physical departure, he represented the spirit of deep devotion that sought the ecstatic experience, the vision of, and union with the Divine, while the later great Apostle, St. Paul, represented the wisdom aspect of the Mysteries.

The Master did not forget His promise[Pg 137] to come to them after the world had lost sight of Him,[167] and for something over fifty years He visited them in His subtle spiritual body, continuing the teachings He had begun while with them, and training them in a knowledge of occult truths. They lived together, for the most part, in a retired spot on the outskirts of Judæa, attracting no attention among the many apparently similar communities of the time, studying the profound truths He taught them and acquiring "the gifts of the Spirit."

The Master didn't forget His promise[Pg 137] to come to them after the world had lost sight of Him,[167] and for over fifty years He visited them in His subtle spiritual form, continuing the teachings He had started while with them, and training them in a knowledge of hidden truths. They mostly lived together in a quiet place on the outskirts of Judea, drawing no attention among the many similar communities of the time, studying the deep truths He taught them and gaining "the gifts of the Spirit."

These inner instructions, commenced during His physical life among them and carried on after He had left the body, formed the basis of the "Mysteries of Jesus," which we have seen in early Church History, and gave the inner life which was the nucleus round which gathered the heterogeneous materials which formed ecclesiastical Christianity.

These inner teachings, which began during His time with them in the physical world and continued after He had left His body, created the foundation of the "Mysteries of Jesus," as we've observed in early Church History. They provided the spiritual essence that became the core around which various elements collected to form organized Christianity.

In the remarkable fragment called the Pistis Sophia, we have a document of the greatest interest bearing on the hidden teaching, written by the famous Valentinus.[Pg 138] In this it is said that during the eleven years immediately after His death Jesus instructed His disciples so far as "the regions of the first statutes only, and up to the regions of the first mystery, the mystery within the veil."[168] They had not so far learned the distribution of the angelic orders, of part whereof Ignatius speaks.[169] Then Jesus, being "in the Mount" with His disciples, and having received His mystic Vesture, the knowledge of all the regions and the Words of Power which unlocked them, taught His disciples further, promising: "I will perfect you in every perfection, from the mysteries of the interior to the mysteries of the exterior: I will fill you with the Spirit, so that ye shall be called spiritual, perfect in all perfections."[170] And He taught them of Sophia, the Wisdom, and of her fall into matter in her attempt to rise unto the Highest, and of her cries to the Light in which she had trusted, and of the sending of Jesus to redeem her from[Pg 139] chaos, and of her crowning with His light, and leading forth from bondage. And He told them further of the highest Mystery the ineffable, the simplest and clearest of all, though the highest, to be known by him alone who utterly renounced the world;[171] by that knowledge men became Christs for such "men are myself, and I am these men," for Christ is that highest Mystery.[172] Knowing that, men are "transformed into pure light and are brought into the light."[173] And He performed for them the great ceremony of Initiation, the baptism "which leadeth to the region of truth and into the region of light," and bade them celebrate it for others who were worthy: "But hide ye this mystery, give it not unto every man, but unto him [only] who shall do all things which I have said unto you in my commandments."[174]

In the fascinating text called the Pistis Sophia, we have an incredibly interesting document about hidden teachings, written by the renowned Valentinus.[Pg 138] In this, it states that during the eleven years right after His death, Jesus taught His disciples only about "the regions of the first statutes and up to the regions of the first mystery, the mystery within the veil."[168] They had not yet learned about the distribution of the angelic orders, part of which Ignatius mentions.[169] Then Jesus, being "on the Mount" with His disciples, and having received His mystic Vesture, which contained the knowledge of all the regions and the Words of Power that unlocked them, taught His disciples more, promising: "I will perfect you in every perfection, from the mysteries of the inner to the mysteries of the outer: I will fill you with the Spirit, so you shall be called spiritual, perfect in all perfections."[170] He taught them about Sophia, the Wisdom, her fall into matter as she tried to rise to the Highest, her cries to the Light in whom she had trusted, and of Jesus being sent to rescue her from[Pg 139] chaos, her crowning with His light, and leading her out of bondage. He further explained the highest Mystery, the incomprehensible yet the simplest and clearest of all, which could only be known by one who completely renounces the world;[171] through this knowledge, people become Christs because "these men are myself, and I am these men," for Christ is that highest Mystery.[172] By knowing this, people are "transformed into pure light and brought into the light."[173] He also conducted for them the significant ceremony of Initiation, the baptism "that leads to the region of truth and into the region of light," and instructed them to perform it for others who were worthy: "But keep this mystery hidden, don’t share it with everyone, only with those who will do all the things I have commanded you."[174]

Thereafter, being fully instructed, the apostles went forth to preach, ever aided by their Master.

Thereafter, fully trained, the apostles went out to preach, always supported by their Master.

Moreover these same disciples and their earliest colleagues wrote down from[Pg 140] memory all the public sayings and parables of the Master that they had heard, and collected with great eagerness any reports they could find, writing down these also, and circulating them all among those who gradually attached themselves to their small community. Various collections were made, any member writing down what he himself remembered, and adding selections from the accounts of others. The inner teachings, given by the Christ to His chosen ones, were not written down, but were taught orally to those deemed worthy to receive them, to students who formed small communities for leading a retired life, and remained in touch with the central body.

Moreover, these same disciples and their earliest colleagues wrote down from[Pg 140] memory all the public sayings and parables of the Master that they had heard. They eagerly collected any reports they could find, wrote them down, and shared them among those who gradually joined their small community. Various collections were created, with each member documenting what they remembered and including selections from others' accounts. The inner teachings that Christ gave to His chosen ones were not recorded but were taught orally to those considered worthy to receive them. These students formed small communities to live a more secluded life while staying connected with the central group.

The historical Christ, then, is a glorious Being belonging to the great spiritual hierarchy that guides the spiritual evolution of humanity, who used for some three years the human body of the disciple Jesus; who spent the last of these three years in public teaching throughout Judæa and Samaria; who was a healer of diseases and performed other remarkable occult works; who gathered round Him a small[Pg 141] band of disciples whom He instructed in the deeper truths of the spiritual life; who drew men to Him by the singular love and tenderness and the rich wisdom that breathed from His Person; and who was finally put to death for blasphemy, for teaching the inherent Divinity of Himself and of all men. He came to give a new impulse of spiritual life to the world; to re-issue the inner teachings affecting spiritual life; to mark out again the narrow ancient way; to proclaim the existence of the "Kingdom of Heaven," of the Initiation which admits to that knowledge of God which is eternal life; and to admit a few to that Kingdom who should be able to teach others. Round this glorious Figure gathered the myths which united Him to the long array of His predecessors, the myths telling in allegory the story of all such lives, as they symbolise the work of the Logos in the Kosmos and the higher evolution of the individual human soul.

The historical Christ is a remarkable figure in the great spiritual hierarchy that guides humanity's spiritual growth. He used the human body of His disciple, Jesus, for about three years. During the last three years, He taught publicly throughout Judea and Samaria, healed illnesses, and performed other extraordinary spiritual acts. He gathered a small group of disciples around Him, teaching them the deeper truths of spiritual life. His unique love, compassion, and profound wisdom attracted many to Him. Ultimately, He was executed for blasphemy for proclaiming the inherent Divinity in Himself and in all people. He came to inject new spiritual life into the world, to renew the inner teachings related to spiritual existence, to redefine the narrow ancient path, to announce the "Kingdom of Heaven," which offers the knowledge of God that is eternal life, and to invite a select few into that Kingdom who could then teach others. Around this magnificent figure developed the myths that connected Him to a long line of predecessors, myths that allegorically tell the stories of all such lives, symbolizing the work of the Logos in the universe and the higher evolution of the individual human soul.

But it must not be supposed that the work of the Christ for His followers was over after He had established the[Pg 142] Mysteries, or was confined to rare appearances therein. That Mighty One who had used the body of Jesus as His vehicle, and whose guardian care extends over the whole spiritual evolution of the fifth race of humanity, gave into the strong hands of the holy disciple who had surrendered to Him his body the care of the infant Church. Perfecting his human evolution, Jesus became one of the Masters of Wisdom, and took Christianity under His special charge, ever seeking to guide it to the right lines, to protect, to guard and nourish it. He was the Hierophant in the Christian Mysteries, the direct Teacher of the Initiates. His the inspiration that kept alight the Gnosis in the Church, until the superincumbent mass of ignorance became so great that even His breath could not fan the flame sufficiently to prevent its extinguishment. His the patient labour which strengthened soul after soul to endure through the darkness, and cherish within itself the spark of mystic longing, the thirst to find the Hidden God. His the steady inpouring of truth into every brain ready[Pg 143] to receive it, so that hand stretched out to hand across the centuries and passed on the torch of knowledge, which thus was never extinguished. His the Form which stood beside the rack and in the flames of the burning pile, cheering His confessors and His martyrs, soothing the anguish of their pains, and filling their hearts with His peace. His the impulse which spoke in the thunder of Savonarola, which guided the calm wisdom of Erasmus, which inspired the deep ethics of the God-intoxicated Spinoza. His the energy which impelled Roger Bacon, Galileo, and Paracelsus in their searchings into nature. His the beauty that allured Fra Angelica and Raphael and Leonardo da Vinci, that inspired the genius of Michelangelo, that shone before the eyes of Murillo, and that gave the power that raised the marvels of the world, the Duomo of Milan, the San Marco of Venice, the Cathedral of Florence. His the melody that breathed in the masses of Mozart, the sonatas of Beethoven, the oratorios of Handel, the fugues of Bach, the austere splendour of Brahms. His[Pg 144] the Presence that cheered the solitary mystics, the hunted occultists, the patient seekers after truth. By persuasion and by menace, by the eloquence of a S. Francis and by the gibes of a Voltaire, by the sweet submission of a Thomas à Kempis, and the rough virility of a Luther, He sought to instruct and awaken, to win into holiness or to scourge from evil. Through the long centuries He has striven and laboured, and, with all the mighty burden of the Churches to carry, He has never left uncared for or unsolaced one human heart that cried to Him for help. And now He is striving to turn to the benefit of Christendom part of the great flood of the Wisdom poured out for the refreshing of the world, and He is seeking through the Churches for some who have ears to hear the Wisdom, and who will answer to His appeal for messengers to carry it to His flock: "Here am I; send me."

But it shouldn't be assumed that Christ's work for His followers was finished after He created the Mysteries, or that it was limited to a few rare appearances. The powerful Being who used the body of Jesus as His vessel and whose protective care covers the spiritual growth of humanity's fifth race entrusted the care of the young Church to the devoted disciple who had yielded his body to Him. By perfecting his human development, Jesus became one of the Masters of Wisdom and took Christianity under His special protection, always aiming to guide it in the right direction, to protect, nurture, and sustain it. He was the leader in the Christian Mysteries, the direct Teacher of the Initiates. His inspiration kept the knowledge alive in the Church until the overwhelming mass of ignorance became so significant that even His breath couldn't keep the flame burning to prevent it from being extinguished. He patiently worked to strengthen each soul to endure the darkness and to hold onto the spark of mystical longing, the desire to find the Hidden God. He consistently poured truth into every mind willing to accept it, allowing hands stretched across the centuries to pass on the torch of knowledge, which thus was never extinguished. He was present beside the rack and in the flames of the burning pyre, encouraging His confessors and martyrs, soothing their pain, and filling their hearts with His peace. His influence was in the thunder of Savonarola, guiding the thoughtful wisdom of Erasmus, inspiring the deep ethics of the God-imbued Spinoza. His energy drove Roger Bacon, Galileo, and Paracelsus in their explorations of nature. His beauty attracted Fra Angelico, Raphael, and Leonardo da Vinci, inspired Michelangelo’s genius, shone in the eyes of Murillo, and provided the power that created the wonders of the world: the Duomo of Milan, the San Marco of Venice, and the Cathedral of Florence. His melody resonated in the masses of Mozart, the sonatas of Beethoven, the oratorios of Handel, the fugues of Bach, and the austere beauty of Brahms. His presence encouraged solitary mystics, chased occultists, and patient seekers of truth. Through persuasion and threat, the eloquence of St. Francis and the sarcasm of Voltaire, the gentle submission of Thomas à Kempis and the raw strength of Luther, He aimed to teach and awaken, to draw people toward holiness or drive them away from evil. Over the centuries, He has worked tirelessly, and despite the heavy load of the Churches, He has never ignored or left unaided any human heart that called for His help. Now He is working to use some of the vast outpouring of Wisdom to refresh the world for the benefit of Christianity, seeking through the Churches for those who can hear that Wisdom and will respond to His call for messengers to carry it to His followers: "Here I am; send me."


Chapter 5.

THE MYTHIC CHRIST.

We have already seen the use that is made of Comparative Mythology against Religion, and some of its most destructive attacks have been levelled against the Christ. His birth of a Virgin at "Christmas," the slaughter of the Innocents, His wonder-working and His teachings, His crucifixion, resurrection, and ascension—all these events in the story of His life are pointed to in the stories of other lives, and His historical existence is challenged on the strength of these identities. So far as the wonder-working and the teachings are concerned, we may briefly dismiss these first with the acknowledgment that most great Teachers have wrought works which, on the physical plane, appear as miracles in the sight of their contemporaries, but[Pg 146] are known by occultists to be done by the exercise of powers possessed by all Initiates above a certain grade. The teachings He gave may also be acknowledged to be non-original; but where the student of Comparative Mythology thinks that he has proved that none is divinely inspired, when he shows that similar moral teachings fell from the lips of Manu, from the lips of the Buddha, from the lips of Jesus, the occultist says that certainly Jesus must have repeated the teachings of His predecessors, since He was a messenger from the same Lodge. The profound verities touching the divine and the human Spirit were as much truths twenty thousand years before Jesus was born in Palestine as after He was born; and to say that the world was left without such teaching, and that man was left in moral darkness from his beginnings to twenty centuries ago, is to say that there was a humanity without a Teacher, children without a Father, human souls crying for light into a darkness that gave them no answer—a conception as blasphemous of God as it is desperate for man, a conception contradicted[Pg 147] by the appearance of every Sage, by the mighty literature, by the noble lives, in the thousands of ages ere the Christ came forth.

We’ve already looked at how Comparative Mythology is used against Religion, with some of its most damaging criticisms aimed at Christ. His virgin birth at "Christmas," the massacre of the Innocents, His miracles and teachings, His crucifixion, resurrection, and ascension—all these events in His life are echoed in the stories of others, and His historical existence is questioned based on these similarities. Regarding the miracles and teachings, we can quickly acknowledge that many great Teachers have performed acts that seemed like miracles to their contemporaries, but[Pg 146] which occultists understand to be the result of powers that all Initiates possess beyond a certain level. The teachings He shared may also not be original; however, when the student of Comparative Mythology believes they have proven that none are divinely inspired by showing that similar moral teachings were expressed by Manu, by the Buddha, and by Jesus, the occultist argues that Jesus must have repeated the teachings of His predecessors because He was a messenger from the same Lodge. The deep truths about the divine and human Spirit were just as valid twenty thousand years before Jesus was born in Palestine as they are after His birth; to claim that the world lacked such teachings and that humanity was left in moral darkness from the beginning until twenty centuries ago is to suggest there was a humanity without a Teacher, children without a Father, human souls crying out for light into a darkness that provided no answers—a notion as blasphemous towards God as it is desperate for humanity, a concept refuted[Pg 147] by the existence of every Sage, by the rich literature, and by the noble lives throughout the thousands of years before Christ appeared.

Recognising then in Jesus the great Master of the West, the leading Messenger of the Lodge to the western world, we must face the difficulty which has made havoc of this belief in the minds of many: Why are the festivals that commemorate events in the life of Jesus found in pre-Christian religions, and in them commemorate identical events in the lives of other Teachers?

Recognizing Jesus as the great Master of the West, the main Messenger of the Lodge to the western world, we need to confront the challenge that has led many to doubt this belief: Why do the festivals that celebrate events in Jesus' life appear in pre-Christian religions, and why do they commemorate the same events in the lives of other Teachers?

Comparative Mythology, which has drawn public attention to this question in modern times, may be said to be about a century old, dating from the appearance of Dulaure's Histoire Abrégée de differens Cultes, of Dupuis' Origine de tous les Cultes, of Moor's Hindu Pantheon, and of Godfrey Higgins' Anacalypsis. These works were followed by a shoal of others, growing more scientific and rigid in their collection and comparison of facts, until it has become impossible for any educated person to even challenge the[Pg 148] identities and similarities existing in every direction. Christians are not to be found, in these days, who are prepared to contend that Christian symbols, rites, and ceremonies are unique—except, indeed, among the ignorant. There we still behold simplicity of belief hand-in-hand with ignorance of facts; but outside this class we do not find even the most devout Christians alleging that Christianity has not very much in common with faiths older than itself. But it is well known that in the first centuries "after Christ" these likenesses were on all hands admitted, and that modern Comparative Mythology is only repeating with great precision that which was universally recognised in the Early Church. Justin Martyr, for instance, crowds his pages with references to the religions of his time, and if a modern assailant of Christianity would cite a number of cases in which Christian teachings are identical with those of elder religions, he can find no better guides than the apologists of the second century. They quote Pagan teachings, stories, and symbols, pleading that the very identity of[Pg 149] the Christian with these should prevent the off-hand rejection of the latter as in themselves incredible. A curious reason is, indeed, given for this identity, one that will scarcely find many adherents in modern days. Says Justin Martyr: "Those who hand down the myths which the poets have made adduce no proof to the youths who learn them; and we proceed to demonstrate that they have been uttered by the influence of the wicked demons, to deceive and lead astray the human race. For having heard it proclaimed through the prophets that the Christ was to come, and that the ungodly among men were to be punished by fire, they put forward many to be called sons of Jupiter, under the impression that they would be able to produce in men the idea that the things which were said with regard to Christ were mere marvellous tales, like the things which were said by the poets." "And the devils, indeed, having heard this washing published by the prophet, instigated those who enter their temples, and are about to approach them with libations and burnt offerings, also to[Pg 150] sprinkle themselves; and they cause them also to wash themselves entirely as they depart." "Which [the Lord's Supper] the wicked devils have imitated in the mysteries of Mithras, commanding the same thing to be done."[175] "For I myself, when I discovered the wicked disguise which the evil spirits had thrown around the divine doctrines of the Christians, to turn aside others from joining them, laughed."[176]

Comparative Mythology, which has attracted public interest in this issue lately, can be considered about a century old, originating from the publication of Dulaure's Histoire Abrégée de differens Cultes, Dupuis' Origine de tous les Cultes, Moor's Hindu Pantheon, and Godfrey Higgins' Anacalypsis. These works were followed by a flood of others that became increasingly scientific and precise in their gathering and comparison of facts, making it impossible for any educated person to even question the[Pg 148] similarities and connections that exist in every direction. Nowadays, you won't find Christians who are willing to argue that Christian symbols, rituals, and ceremonies are unique—except among the uninformed. Among them, belief simplicity often accompanies ignorance of facts; however, outside this group, even the most devout Christians do not assert that Christianity has no significant similarities with older faiths. It is well-known that in the first centuries "after Christ," these similarities were widely acknowledged, and modern Comparative Mythology is simply reiterating what was generally recognized in the Early Church. Justin Martyr, for instance, fills his pages with references to the religions of his time. If a contemporary critic of Christianity wanted to point out instances where Christian teachings align with those of earlier religions, they could find no better examples than those provided by the apologists of the second century. They cite Pagan teachings, stories, and symbols, arguing that the very identity of[Pg 149] the Christian with these should prevent an automatic dismissal of the latter as inherently unbelievable. A rather odd reason is indeed given for this identity—one that probably won’t find many supporters today. Justin Martyr states: "Those who pass down the myths created by the poets offer no proof to the youths who learn them; and we go on to demonstrate that those myths were spoken under the influence of wicked demons, to deceive and mislead humanity. Because they heard it declared through the prophets that the Christ was to come and that the wicked among men would be punished by fire, they sent forth many to be called sons of Jupiter, thinking they could create the impression that the things said about Christ were just marvelous tales, like those told by the poets." "And the demons, indeed, having heard this proclamation from the prophet, urged those who enter their temples, and are about to approach them with offerings and sacrifices, to also sprinkle themselves; and they cause them to wash themselves completely as they leave." "Which [the Lord's Supper] the evil demons have mimicked in the mysteries of Mithras, commanding the same actions be performed."[175] "For I myself, when I uncovered the wicked disguise that the evil spirits had placed over the divine teachings of the Christians, to deter others from joining them, laughed."[176]

These identities were thus regarded as the work of devils, copies of the Christian originals, largely circulated in the pre-Christian world with the object of prejudicing the reception of the truth when it came. There is a certain difficulty in accepting the earlier statements as copies and the later as originals, but without disputing with Justin Martyr whether the copies preceded the original or the original the copies, we may be content to accept his testimony as to the existence of these identities between the faith flourishing in[Pg 151] the Roman empire of his time and the new religion he was engaged in defending.

These identities were seen as the work of devils, imitations of the Christian originals, widely spread in the pre-Christian world to undermine the acceptance of the truth when it arrived. There's a bit of a challenge in accepting the earlier statements as copies and the later ones as originals, but without arguing with Justin Martyr about whether the copies came before the original or the original before the copies, we can accept his testimony regarding the similarities between the faith thriving in[Pg 151] the Roman Empire during his time and the new religion he was defending.

Tertullian speaks equally plainly, stating the objection made in his days also to Christianity, that "the nations who are strangers to all understanding of spiritual powers, ascribe to their idols the imbuing of waters with the self-same efficacy." "So they do," he answers quite frankly, "but these cheat themselves with waters that are widowed. For washing is the channel through which they are initiated into some sacred rites of some notorious Isis or Mithra; and the Gods themselves they honour by washings.... At the Apollinarian and Eleusinian games they are baptised; and they presume that the effect of their doing that is the regeneration and the remission of the penalties due to their perjuries. Which fact, being acknowledged, we recognise here also the zeal of the devil rivalling the things of God, while we find him too practising baptism in his subjects."[177]

Tertullian expresses himself clearly, noting the criticism directed at Christianity in his time, that "nations who lack any understanding of spiritual powers attribute the same ability to their idols to transform waters." "That's true," he replies honestly, "but they deceive themselves with lifeless waters. For washing is the means by which they are initiated into certain sacred rituals of some well-known Isis or Mithra; and they honor the Gods themselves through their washings.... At the Apollinarian and Eleusinian games, they undergo baptisms; and they believe that this act brings about regeneration and forgiveness of the penalties for their lies. Acknowledging this, we also recognize the devil's zeal as rivaling God's works, as we see him practicing baptism among his followers."[177]

To solve the difficulty of these identities we must study the Mythic Christ, the[Pg 152] Christ of the solar myths or legends, these myths being the pictorial forms in which certain profound truths were given to the world.

To address the challenges of these identities, we need to explore the Mythic Christ, the[Pg 152] Christ found in solar myths or legends. These myths serve as visual representations of certain deep truths that were presented to the world.

Now a "myth" is by no means what most people imagine it to be—a mere fanciful story erected on a basis of fact, or even altogether apart from fact. A myth is far truer than a history, for a history only gives a story of the shadows, whereas a myth gives a story of the substances that cast the shadows. As above so below; and first above and then below. There are certain great principles according to which our system is built; there are certain laws by which these principles are worked out in detail; there are certain Beings who embody the principles and whose activities are the laws; there are hosts of inferior beings who act as vehicles for these activities, as agents, as instruments; there are the Egos of men intermingled with all these, performing their share of the great kosmic drama. These multifarious workers in the invisible worlds cast their shadows on physical matter, and these shadows[Pg 153] are "things"—the bodies, the objects, that make up the physical universe. These shadows give but a poor idea of the objects that cast them, just as what we call shadows down here give but a poor idea of the objects that cast them; they are mere outlines, with blank darkness in lieu of details, and have only length and breadth, no depth.

Now a "myth" isn't what most people think it is—a simple fanciful story based on fact, or something completely separate from reality. A myth is much truer than history because history only tells the story of shadows, while a myth tells the story of the actual substances that create those shadows. As above, so below; and first above and then below. There are fundamental principles that our system is built upon; there are specific laws through which these principles are expressed in detail; there are certain Beings that embody these principles and whose actions represent the laws; there are numerous lesser beings that act as vehicles for these actions, as agents, as instruments; and there are the souls of humans intertwined with all of this, playing their part in the grand cosmic drama. These diverse workers in the unseen worlds cast their shadows on physical matter, and these shadows[Pg 153] are "things"—the bodies, the objects, that make up the physical universe. These shadows give a poor representation of the objects that cast them, just as the shadows we see down here give a poor idea of the objects that create them; they are merely outlines, filled with blank darkness instead of details, and have only length and width, lacking depth.

History is an account, very imperfect and often distorted, of the dance of these shadows in the shadow-world of physical matter. Anyone who has seen a clever Shadow-Play, and has compared what goes on behind the screen on which the shadows are cast with the movements of the shadows on the screen, may have a vivid idea of the illusory nature of the shadow-actions, and may draw therefrom several not misleading analogies.[178]

History is an account, often incomplete and frequently skewed, of the movements of these shadows in the shadow-world of physical matter. Anyone who has watched an impressive shadow play and compared what happens behind the screen with the movements of the shadows on the screen may get a clear sense of the deceptive nature of these shadow actions and could derive several accurate analogies from it.[178]

Myth is an account of the movements of those who cast the shadows; and the language in which the account is given is what is called the language of symbols.[Pg 154] Just as here we have words which stand for things—as the word "table" is a symbol for a recognised article of a certain kind—so do symbols stand for objects on higher planes. They are a pictorial alphabet, used by all myth-writers, and each has its recognised meaning. A symbol is used to signify a certain object just as words are used down here to distinguish one thing from another, and so a knowledge of symbols is necessary for the reading of a myth. For the original tellers of great myths are ever Initiates, who are accustomed to use the symbolic language, and who, of course, use symbols in their fixed and accepted meanings.

Myth is a story about the actions of those who create the shadows; and the way this story is told is through what we call symbolic language.[Pg 154] Just like we have words that represent things—like the word "table," which symbolizes a recognized item of a certain kind—symbols represent objects on higher levels. They form a visual alphabet, used by all myth creators, with each symbol having its established meaning. A symbol is used to indicate a specific object just as words are used here to differentiate one thing from another, so understanding symbols is essential for interpreting a myth. The original storytellers of significant myths are always Initiates, who are familiar with using symbolic language and, of course, use symbols with their fixed and accepted meanings.

A symbol has a chief meaning, and then various subsidiary meanings related to that chief meaning. For instance, the Sun is the symbol of the Logos; that is its chief or primary significance. But it stands also for an incarnation of the Logos, or for any of the great Messengers who represent Him for the time, as an ambassador represents his King. High Initiates who are sent on special missions[Pg 155] to incarnate among men and live with them for a time as Rulers or Teachers, would be designated by the symbol of the Sun; for though it is not their symbol in an individual sense, it is theirs in virtue of their office.

A symbol has a main meaning and several related meanings that support it. For example, the Sun symbolizes the Logos; that’s its main significance. However, it also represents an incarnation of the Logos or any of the great Messengers who act on His behalf, like an ambassador represents their King. High Initiates who are sent on special missions to live among people for a time as Rulers or Teachers would be represented by the symbol of the Sun; while it may not symbolize them individually, it signifies their role.

All those who are signified by this symbol have certain characteristics, pass through certain situations, perform certain activities, during their lives on earth. The Sun is the physical shadow, or body, as it is called, of the Logos; hence its yearly course in nature reflects His activity, in the partial way in which a shadow represents the activity of the object that casts it. The Logos, "the Son of God," descending into matter, has as shadow the annual course of the Sun, and the Sun-Myth tells it. Hence, again, an incarnation of the Logos, or one of His high ambassadors, will also represent that activity, shadow-like, in His body as a man. Thus will necessarily arise identities in the life-histories of these ambassadors. In fact, the absence of such identities would at once point out that the person concerned was not a full ambassador,[Pg 156] and that his mission was of a lower order.

All those represented by this symbol have specific traits, go through certain experiences, and engage in particular activities during their lives on earth. The Sun is the physical shadow, or body, of the Logos; therefore, its yearly cycle in nature reflects His actions, in the limited way that a shadow represents the activities of the object casting it. The Logos, "the Son of God," descending into matter, has the Sun's annual course as its shadow, and the Sun-Myth tells this story. Consequently, an incarnation of the Logos, or one of His high representatives, will also reflect that activity, in a shadow-like manner, in His body as a human. This will naturally lead to similarities in the life stories of these representatives. In fact, the lack of such similarities would immediately indicate that the individual in question was not a true representative,[Pg 156] and that their mission was of a lesser nature.

The Solar Myth, then, is a story which primarily representing the activity of the Logos, or Word, in the kosmos, secondarily embodies the life of one who is an incarnation of the Logos, or is one of His ambassadors. The Hero of the myth is usually represented as a God, or Demi-God, and his life, as will be understood by what has been said above, must be outlined by the course of the Sun, as the shadow of the Logos. The part of the course lived out during the human life is that which falls between the winter solstice and the reaching of the zenith in summer. The Hero is born at the winter solstice, dies at the spring equinox, and, conquering death, rises into mid-heaven.

The Solar Myth is a story that primarily represents the activity of the Logos, or Word, in the cosmos, and secondarily embodies the life of someone who is an incarnation of the Logos, or one of His messengers. The Hero of the myth is usually depicted as a God or Demi-God, and his life, as explained above, must align with the journey of the Sun, reflecting the shadow of the Logos. The part of this journey experienced during a human life occurs between the winter solstice and the peak of summer. The Hero is born at the winter solstice, dies at the spring equinox, and, overcoming death, rises to the heavens.

The following remarks are interesting in this connection, though looking at myth in a more general way, as an allegory, picturing inner truths: "Alfred de Vigny has said that legend is frequently more true than history, because legend recounts not acts which are often incomplete and[Pg 157] abortive, but the genius itself of great men and great nations. It is pre-eminently to the Gospel that this beautiful thought is applicable, for the Gospel is not merely the narration of what has been; it is the sublime narration of what is and what always will be. Ever will the Saviour of the world be adored by the kings of intelligence, represented by the Magi; ever will He multiply the eucharistic bread, to nourish and comfort our souls; ever, when we invoke Him in the night and the tempest, will He come to us walking on the waters, ever will He stretch forth His hand and make us pass over the crests of the billows; ever will He cure our distempers and give back light to our eyes; ever will He appear to His faithful, luminous and transfigured upon Tabor, interpreting the law of Moses and moderating the zeal of Elias."[179]

The following remarks are interesting in this context, viewing myth more generally as an allegory that reveals inner truths: "Alfred de Vigny noted that legend is often more truthful than history because legend tells not of events that are often incomplete and abortive, but of the essence of great individuals and great nations. This beautiful idea is especially true for the Gospel, which is not just a recounting of past events; it is a divine narration of what is and what will always be. The Savior of the world will always be honored by the wise, represented by the Magi; He will always multiply the Eucharistic bread to nourish and comfort our souls; whenever we call on Him in the night and in the storm, He will come to us walking on the waters; He will always reach out His hand and help us traverse the peaks of the waves; He will continuously heal our ailments and restore sight to our eyes; He will forever appear to His faithful, radiant and transformed on Tabor, interpreting the law of Moses and tempering the zeal of Elijah."

We shall find that myths are very closely related to the Mysteries, for part of the Mysteries consisted in showing living pictures of the occurrences in the higher worlds that became embodied in[Pg 158] myths. In fact in the Pseudo-Mysteries, mutilated fragments of the living pictures of the true Mysteries were represented by actors who acted out a drama, and many secondary myths are these dramas put into words.

We will see that myths are closely connected to the Mysteries because part of the Mysteries involved displaying living images of events in the higher worlds that became part of the myths. In fact, in the Pseudo-Mysteries, incomplete fragments of the living images from the true Mysteries were performed by actors who acted out a drama, and many secondary myths are these dramas expressed in words.

The broad outlines of the story of the Sun-God are very clear, the eventful life of the Sun-God being spanned within the first six months of the solar year, the other six being employed in the general protecting and preserving. He is always born at the winter solstice, after the shortest day in the year, at the midnight of the 24th of December, when the sign Virgo is rising above the horizon; born as this sign is rising, he is born always of a virgin, and she remains a virgin after she has given birth to her Sun-Child, as the celestial Virgo remains unchanged and unsullied when the Sun comes forth from her in the heavens. Weak, feeble as an infant is he, born when the days are shortest and the nights are longest—we are on the north of the equatorial line—surrounded with perils in his infancy, and the reign of the darkness far longer than his in his early[Pg 159] days. But he lives through all the threatening dangers, and the day lengthens towards the spring equinox, till the time comes for the crossing over, the crucifixion, the date varying with each year. The Sun-God is sometimes found sculptured within the circle of the horizon, with the head and feet touching the circle at north and south, and the outstretched hands at east and west—"He was crucified." After this he rises triumphantly and ascends into heaven, and ripens the corn and the grape, giving his very life to them to make their substance and through them to his worshippers. The God who is born at the dawning of December 25th is ever crucified at the spring equinox, and ever gives his life as food to his worshippers—these are among the most salient marks of the Sun-God. The fixity of the birth-date and the variableness of the death-date are full of significance, when we remember that the one is a fixed and the other a variable solar position. "Easter" is a movable event, calculated by the relative positions of sun and moon, an impossible way of fixing year by year the anniversary[Pg 160] of a historical event, but a very natural and indeed inevitable way of calculating a solar festival. These changing dates do not point to the history of a man, but to the Hero of a solar myth.

The basic storyline of the Sun-God is quite clear. His eventful life covers the first six months of the solar year, while the other six months are spent in general protection and preservation. He is always born at the winter solstice, right after the year's shortest day, at midnight on December 24th, when the sign Virgo rises above the horizon. Born as this sign appears, he is always the child of a virgin, who remains a virgin even after giving birth to her Sun-Child, just as the celestial Virgo remains pure and unchanged when the Sun emerges from her in the sky. As an infant, he is weak and vulnerable, born when days are shortest and nights longest—since we are north of the equator—surrounded by dangers in his infancy, while darkness prevails far longer than his days. However, he survives all these threats, and as spring approaches, the days begin to get longer, leading up to the time of transition and crucifixion, which varies each year. The Sun-God is sometimes depicted within the horizon circle, with his head and feet touching the circle at north and south, while his outstretched hands reach east and west—"He was crucified." After this, he rises triumphantly and ascends into heaven, nourishing the corn and the grape with his essence, which is given to his worshippers. The God born at dawn on December 25th is always crucified at the spring equinox and continuously sacrifices himself as sustenance for his followers—these are key characteristics of the Sun-God. The fixed birth date and variable death date carry great significance, highlighting that the former is a constant solar position while the latter fluctuates. "Easter" is a movable feast, calculated based on the relative positions of the sun and moon, making it impossible to pinpoint the anniversary of a historical event year after year, yet it is a very natural and inevitable way to determine a solar festival. These changing dates do not refer to the history of a man but to the Hero of a solar myth.

These events are reproduced in the lives of the various Solar Gods, and antiquity teems with illustrations of them. Isis of Egypt like Mary of Bethlehem was our Immaculate Lady, Star of the Sea, Queen of Heaven, Mother of God. We see her in pictures standing on the crescent moon, star-crowned; she nurses her child Horus, and the cross appears on the back of the seat in which he sits on his mother's knee. The Virgo of the Zodiac is represented in ancient drawings as a woman suckling a child—the type of all future Madonnas with their divine Babes, showing the origin of the symbol. Devakî is likewise figured with the divine Kṛiṣhṇa in her arms, as is Mylitta, or Istar, of Babylon, also with the recurrent crown of stars, and with her child Tammuz on her knee. Mercury and Æsculapius, Bacchus and Hercules, Perseus and the Dioscuri,[Pg 161] Mithras and Zarathustra, were all of divine and human birth.

These events are reflected in the lives of different Solar Gods, and history is full of examples of them. Isis of Egypt, like Mary of Bethlehem, was our Holy Lady, Star of the Sea, Queen of Heaven, and Mother of God. We see her in pictures standing on the crescent moon, crowned with stars; she nurses her child Horus, and a cross appears on the back of the seat where he sits on her lap. The Virgo of the Zodiac is depicted in ancient drawings as a woman breastfeeding a child—the prototype of all future Madonnas with their divine infants, highlighting the origin of the symbol. Devakî is also shown with the divine Kṛiṣhṇa in her arms, just like Mylitta, or Ishtar, of Babylon, who is depicted with the recurring crown of stars and her child Tammuz on her knee. Mercury and Æsculapius, Bacchus and Hercules, Perseus and the Dioscuri, Mithras and Zarathustra, all had both divine and human origins.

The relation of the winter solstice to Jesus is also significant. The birth of Mithras was celebrated in the winter solstice with great rejoicings, and Horus was also then born: "His birth is one of the greatest mysteries of the [Egyptian] religion. Pictures representing it appeared on the walls of temples.... He was the child of Deity. At Christmas time, or that answering to our festival, his image was brought out of the sanctuary with peculiar ceremonies, as the image of the infant Bambino is still brought out and exhibited at Rome."[180]

The connection between the winter solstice and Jesus is also important. The birth of Mithras was celebrated during the winter solstice with much joy, and Horus was also born then: "His birth is one of the greatest mysteries of the [Egyptian] religion. Images depicting it were found on the temple walls.... He was the child of a Deity. At Christmas time, or the festival that corresponds to it, his image was taken out of the sanctuary with special ceremonies, just like the image of the infant Bambino is still taken out and displayed in Rome."[180]

On the fixing of the 25th December as the birthday of Jesus, Williamson has the following: "All Christians know that the 25th December is now the recognised festival of the birth of Jesus, but few are aware that this has not always been so. There have been, it is said, one hundred and thirty-six different dates fixed on by different Christian sects. Lightfoot gives[Pg 162] it as 15th September, others as in February or August. Epiphanius mentions two sects, one celebrating it in June, the other in July. The matter was finally settled by Pope Julius I., in 337 A.D., and S. Chrysostom, writing in 390, says: 'On this day [i.e. 25th December] also the birth of Christ was lately fixed at Rome, in order that while the heathen were busy with their ceremonies [the Brumalia, in honour of Bacchus] the Christians might perform their rites undisturbed.' Gibbon in his Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, writes: 'The [Christian] Romans, as ignorant as their brethren of the real date of his [Christ's birth] fixed the solemn festival to the 25th December, the Brumalia or winter solstice, when the Pagans annually celebrated the birth of the Sun.' King, in his Gnostics and their Remains, also says: 'The ancient festival held on the 25th December in honour of the birthday of the Invincible One,[181] and celebrated by the great games at the Circus, was afterwards transferred to the[Pg 163] commemoration of the birth of Christ, the precise date of which many of the Fathers confess was then unknown;' while at the present day Canon Farrar writes that 'all attempts to discover the month and day of the nativity are useless. No data whatever exist to enable us to determine them with even approximate accuracy.' From the foregoing it is apparent that the great festival of the winter solstice has been celebrated during past ages, and in widely separated lands, in honour of the birth of a God, who is almost invariably alluded to as a 'Saviour,' and whose mother is referred to as a pure virgin. The striking resemblances, too, which have been instanced not only in the birth but in the life of so many of these Saviour-Gods are far too numerous to be accounted for by any mere coincidence."[182]

On the establishment of December 25 as the birthday of Jesus, Williamson mentions: "All Christians know that December 25 is now the recognized holiday for the birth of Jesus, but few realize that this hasn't always been the case. It's said that there have been one hundred and thirty-six different dates proposed by various Christian denominations. Lightfoot states it as September 15, while others place it in February or August. Epiphanius notes two sects, one celebrating it in June and the other in July. The issue was finally resolved by Pope Julius I in 337 CE, and S. Chrysostom, writing in 390, says: 'On this day [i.e. December 25] the birth of Christ was recently established in Rome, so that while the pagans were engaged in their rituals [the Brumalia, in honor of Bacchus], the Christians could carry out their ceremonies without interruption.' Gibbon, in his Decline and Fall of the Roman Empire, writes: 'The [Christian] Romans, just as ignorant as their peers about the actual date of his [Christ's birth], set the solemn festival to December 25, the Brumalia or winter solstice, when the pagans annually celebrated the birth of the Sun.' King, in his Gnostics and their Remains, also notes: 'The ancient festival held on December 25 in honor of the birthday of the Invincible One,[181] celebrated by the grand games at the Circus, was later transferred to the[Pg 163] commemoration of the birth of Christ, the exact date of which many of the Fathers admit was then unknown;' and today Canon Farrar states that 'all efforts to determine the month and day of the nativity are futile. No information exists that allows us to pinpoint them with even approximate accuracy.' From the above, it is clear that the significant festival of the winter solstice has been celebrated throughout history and across diverse regions in honor of the birth of a God, who is consistently referred to as a 'Savior,' and whose mother is described as a pure virgin. The striking similarities found not only in the birth but in the lives of many of these Savior-Gods are far too numerous to be explained by mere coincidence."[182]

In the case of the Lord Buddha we may see how a myth attaches itself to a[Pg 164] historical personage. The story of His life is well known, and in the current Indian accounts the birth-story is simple and human. But in the Chinese account He is born of a virgin, Mâyâdevî, the archaic myth finding in Him a new Hero.

In the case of the Lord Buddha, we can see how a myth connects to a historical figure. His life story is widely known, and in current Indian accounts, his birth story is straightforward and relatable. However, in the Chinese version, he is born of a virgin named Mâyâdevî, with the ancient myth discovering a new hero in him.

Williamson also tells us that fires were and are lighted on the 25th December on the hills among Keltic peoples, and these are still known among the Irish and the Scotch Highlanders as Bheil or Baaltinne, the fires thus bearing the name of Bel, Bal, or Baal, their ancient Deity, the Sun-God, though now lighted in honour of Christ.[183]

Williamson also tells us that fires were and still are lit on December 25th on the hills among Celtic peoples, and these are still known among the Irish and the Scottish Highlanders as Bheil or Baaltinne. The fires carry the name of Bel, Bal, or Baal, their ancient deity, the Sun-God, though now they are lit in honor of Christ.[183]

Rightly considered, the Christmas festival should take on new elements of rejoicing and of sacredness, when the lovers of Christ see in it the repetition of an ancient solemnity, see it stretching all the world over, and far, far back into dim antiquity; so that the Christmas bells are ringing throughout human history, and sound musically out of the far-off night of time. Not in exclusive possession, but in[Pg 165] universal acceptance, is found the hallmark of truth.

When you think about it, the Christmas celebration should incorporate new ways to celebrate and feel sacred, as Christ’s followers recognize it as a revival of an ancient tradition that spans the globe and goes back deep into history. The Christmas bells have been ringing throughout human history, echoing beautifully from the distant past. The true hallmark of what is real isn't about exclusive ownership, but about universal acceptance.

The death-date, as said above, is not a fixed one, like the birth-date. The date of the death is calculated by the relative positions of Sun and Moon at the spring equinox, varying with each year, and the death-date of each Solar Hero is found to be celebrated in this connection. The animal adopted as the symbol of the Hero is the sign of the Zodiac in which the Sun is at the vernal equinox of his age, and this varies with the precession of the equinoxes. Oannes of Assyria had the sign of Pisces, the Fish, and is thus figured. Mithra is in Taurus, and, therefore, rides on a Bull, and Osiris was worshipped as Osiris-Apis, or Serapis, the Bull. Merodach of Babylon was worshipped as a Bull, as was Astarte of Syria. When the Sun is in the sign of Aries, the Ram or Lamb, we have Osiris again as Ram, and so also Astarte, and Jupiter Ammon, and it is this same animal that became the symbol of Jesus—the Lamb of God. The use of the Lamb as His symbol, often leaning on a cross, is common in the[Pg 166] sculptures of the catacombs. On this Williamson says: "In the course of time the Lamb was represented on the cross, but it was not until the sixth synod of Constantinople, held about the year 680, that it was ordained that instead of the ancient symbol, the figure of a man fastened to a cross should be represented. This canon was confirmed by Pope Adrian I."[184] The very ancient Pisces is also assigned to Jesus, and He is thus pictured in the catacombs.

The death date, as mentioned earlier, isn’t a set date like the birth date. The date of death is determined by the positions of the Sun and Moon at the spring equinox, changing each year, and the death date of each Solar Hero is recognized in this context. The animal symbol representing the Hero corresponds to the Zodiac sign where the Sun is during the vernal equinox of their lifetime, which shifts due to the precession of the equinoxes. Oannes from Assyria is associated with Pisces, the Fish, and is depicted as such. Mithra is linked to Taurus, riding on a Bull, and Osiris was worshipped as Osiris-Apis, or Serapis, the Bull. Merodach of Babylon was also honored as a Bull, as was Astarte from Syria. When the Sun is in Aries, the Ram or Lamb, we again see Osiris as the Ram, along with Astarte and Jupiter Ammon, and this same animal became a symbol of Jesus—the Lamb of God. The portrayal of the Lamb as His symbol, often depicted leaning on a cross, is common in the sculptures of the catacombs. Regarding this, Williamson states: "Over time, the Lamb was shown on the cross, but it wasn't until the sixth synod of Constantinople, around the year 680, that it was established that instead of the ancient symbol, a figure of a man crucified should be depicted. This canon was approved by Pope Adrian I." The ancient sign of Pisces is also attributed to Jesus, and He is therefore illustrated in the catacombs.

The death and resurrection of the Solar Hero at or about the vernal equinox is as wide-spread as his birth at the winter solstice. Osiris was then slain by Typhon, and He is pictured on the circle of the horizon, with outstretched arms, as if crucified—a posture originally of benediction, not of suffering. The death of Tammuz was annually bewailed at the spring equinox in Babylonia and Syria, as were Adonis in Syria and Greece, and Attis in Phrygia, pictured "as a man fastened with a lamb at the foot."[185][Pg 167] Mithras' death was similarly celebrated in Persia, and that of Bacchus and Dionysius—one and the same—in Greece. In Mexico the same idea re-appears, as usual accompanied with the cross.

The death and resurrection of the Solar Hero around the spring equinox is as widespread as his birth at the winter solstice. Osiris was killed by Typhon, and he is depicted on the horizon with his arms outstretched, as if crucified—a pose that originally symbolized blessing, not suffering. The death of Tammuz was mourned every year at the spring equinox in Babylonia and Syria, just like Adonis in Syria and Greece, and Attis in Phrygia, depicted "as a man fastened with a lamb at the foot."[185][Pg 167] Mithras' death was similarly commemorated in Persia, as was that of Bacchus and Dionysius—who are essentially the same deity—in Greece. In Mexico, the same concept appears again, usually accompanied by the cross.

In all these cases the mourning for the death is immediately followed by the rejoicing over the resurrection, and on this it is interesting to notice that the name of Easter has been traced to the virgin-mother of the slain Tammuz, Ishtar.[186]

In all these cases, mourning for the death is quickly followed by celebration of the resurrection. It's interesting to note that the name "Easter" is linked to Ishtar, the virgin mother of the slain Tammuz.[186]

It is interesting also to notice that the fast preceding the death at the vernal equinox,—the modern Lent—is found in Mexico, Egypt, Persia, Babylon, Assyria, Asia Minor, in some cases definitely for forty days.[187]

It’s also interesting to note that the fast before the death at the spring equinox—modern Lent—can be seen in Mexico, Egypt, Persia, Babylon, Assyria, and Asia Minor, sometimes definitely lasting for forty days.[187]

In the Pseudo-Mysteries, the Sun-God story was dramatised, and in the ancient Mysteries it was lived by the Initiate, and hence the solar "myths" and the great facts of Initiation became interwoven together. Hence when the Master Christ became the Christ of the Mysteries, the legends of the older Heroes of those[Pg 168] Mysteries gathered round Him, and the stories were again recited with the latest divine Teacher as the representative of the Logos in the Sun. Then the festival of His nativity became the immemorial date when the Sun was born of the Virgin, when the midnight sky was filled with the rejoicing hosts of the celestials, and

In the Pseudo-Mysteries, the story of the Sun-God was dramatized, and in the ancient Mysteries, it was experienced by the Initiate, which is why the solar "myths" and the significant truths of Initiation became intertwined. Therefore, when Master Christ became the Christ of the Mysteries, the legends of the earlier Heroes of those[Pg 168] Mysteries formed around Him, and the stories were retold with the newest divine Teacher as the embodiment of the Logos in the Sun. Consequently, the celebration of His birth became the timeless occasion when the Sun was born of the Virgin, when the midnight sky was filled with the joyful hosts of the heavens, and

Very early, very early, Christ was born.

Very early, very early, Christ was born.

As the great legend of the Sun gathered round Him, the sign of the Lamb became that of His crucifixion as the sign of the Virgin had become that of His birth. We have seen that the Bull was sacred to Mithras and the Fish to Oannes, and that the Lamb was sacred to Christ, and for the same reason; it was the sign of the spring equinox, at the period of history in which He crossed the great circle of the horizon, was "crucified in space."

As the legendary Sun drew people to Him, the symbol of the Lamb turned into one of His crucifixion, just as the symbol of the Virgin had represented His birth. We've observed that the Bull was sacred to Mithras and the Fish to Oannes, and similarly, the Lamb was sacred to Christ; it represented the spring equinox during the time in history when He crossed the great circle of the horizon, symbolically "crucified in space."

These Sun myths, ever recurring throughout the ages, with a different name for their Hero in each new recension, cannot pass unrecognised by the student, though they may naturally and rightly be ignored by the devotee; and when they[Pg 169] are used as a weapon to mutilate or destroy the majestic figure of the Christ, they must be met, not by denying the facts, but by understanding the deeper meaning of the stories, the spiritual truths that the legends expressed under a veil.

These Sun myths, repeating throughout history with a new name for their Hero in each version, can’t be overlooked by those studying them, even if they might be understandably ignored by the believers. When these myths are weaponized to distort or undermine the powerful image of Christ, we should respond not by denying the facts but by grasping the deeper meanings in the stories, the spiritual truths that the legends convey in a hidden way.

Why have these legends mingled with the history of Jesus, and crystallised round Him, as a historical personage? These are really the stories not of a particular individual named Jesus but of the universal Christ; of a Man who symbolised a Divine Being, and who represented a fundamental truth in nature; a Man who filled a certain office and held a certain characteristic position towards humanity; standing towards humanity in a special relationship, renewed age after age, as generation succeeded generation, as race gave way to race. Hence He was, as are all such, the "Son of Man," a peculiar and distinctive title, the title of an office, not of an individual. The Christ of the Solar Myth was the Christ of the Mysteries, and we find the secret of the mythic in the mystic Christ.

Why have these legends blended with the history of Jesus and formed around Him as a historical figure? These stories are really not about a specific individual named Jesus but about the universal Christ; a Man who symbolizes a Divine Being and represents a fundamental truth in nature; a Man who held a certain role and held a unique position towards humanity; connecting with humanity in a special way, repeated through the ages, as one generation replaced another, as one race followed another. Therefore, He was, like all such figures, the "Son of Man," a unique and distinctive title, representing a role rather than an individual. The Christ of the Solar Myth was the Christ of the Mysteries, and we find the essence of the mythic in the mystic Christ.


Chapter 6.

THE MYSTIC CHRIST.

We now approach that deeper side of the Christ story that gives it its real hold upon the hearts of men. We approach that perennial life which bubbles up from an unseen source, and so baptises its representative with its lucent flood that human hearts cling round the Christ, and feel that they could almost more readily reject the apparent facts of history than deny that which they intuitively feel to be a vital, an essential truth of the higher life. We draw near the sacred portal of the Mysteries, and lift a corner of the veil that hides the sanctuary.

We now come to the deeper aspect of the Christ story that truly resonates with people's hearts. We are approaching that eternal life that springs from an unseen source, bathing its representative in a bright light so that human hearts are drawn to Christ. They feel they could almost more easily dismiss the apparent facts of history than deny what they instinctively recognize as a vital, essential truth of a higher life. We draw closer to the sacred entrance of the Mysteries and lift a corner of the veil that conceals the sanctuary.

We have seen that, go back as far as we may into antiquity, we find everywhere recognised the existence of a hidden[Pg 171] teaching, a secret doctrine, given under strict and exacting conditions to approved candidates by the Masters of Wisdom. Such candidates were initiated into "The Mysteries"—a name that covers in antiquity, as we have seen, all that was most spiritual in religion, all that was most profound in philosophy, all that was most valuable in science. Every great Teacher of antiquity passed through the Mysteries and the greatest were the Hierophants of the Mysteries; each who came forth into the world to speak of the invisible worlds had passed through the portal of Initiation and had learned the secret of the Holy Ones from Their own lips: each who came forth came forth with the same story, and the solar myths are all versions of this story, identical in their essential features, varying only in their local colour.

We have seen that, no matter how far back we look into history, we find everywhere the recognition of a hidden[Pg 171] teaching, a secret doctrine, given under strict and demanding conditions to selected candidates by the Masters of Wisdom. These candidates were initiated into "The Mysteries"—a term that encompasses, as we have seen, everything most spiritual in religion, most profound in philosophy, and most valuable in science. Every great Teacher from ancient times went through the Mysteries, and the greatest were the Hierophants of the Mysteries; each person who emerged into the world to talk about the invisible realms had passed through the portal of Initiation and learned the secrets of the Holy Ones directly from Them: everyone who emerged shared the same story, and the solar myths are all variations of this story, identical in their core elements but differing only in their local expressions.

This story is primarily that of the descent of the Logos into matter, and the Sun-God is aptly His symbol, since the Sun is His body, and He is often described as "He that dwelleth in the Sun." In one aspect, the Christ of the Mysteries is the Logos descending into matter, and the[Pg 172] great Sun-Myth is the popular teaching of this sublime truth. As in previous cases, the Divine Teacher, who brought the Ancient Wisdom and republished it in the world, was regarded as a special manifestation of the Logos, and the Jesus of the Churches was gradually draped with the stories which belonged to this great One; thus He became identified, in Christian nomenclature, with the Second Person in the Trinity, the Logos, or Word of God,[188] and the salient events recounted in the myth of the Sun-God became the salient events of the story of Jesus, regarded as the incarnate Deity, the "mythic Christ." As in the macrocosm, the kosmos, the Christ of the Mysteries represents the Logos, the Second Person in the Trinity, so in the microcosm, man, does He represent the second aspect of the Divine Spirit in man—hence called in man "the[Pg 173] Christ."[189] The second aspect of the Christ of the Mysteries is then the life of the Initiate, the life which is entered on at the first great Initiation, at which the Christ is born in man, and after which He develops in man. To make this quite intelligible, we must consider the conditions imposed on the candidate for Initiation, and the nature of the Spirit in man.

This story mainly focuses on the descent of the Logos into the physical world, and the Sun-God serves as an appropriate symbol for Him since the Sun represents His body; He is often referred to as "He who dwells in the Sun." In one sense, the Christ of the Mysteries is the Logos coming down into matter, and the great Sun-Myth conveys this deep truth to the masses. As seen in earlier instances, the Divine Teacher who shared the Ancient Wisdom and reintroduced it to the world is viewed as a unique expression of the Logos, and over time, the figure of Jesus in the Churches was embellished with stories pertaining to this great being; thus, He became identified in Christian terms with the Second Person of the Trinity, the Logos, or Word of God, and the key events in the Sun-God myth became the central events in the life story of Jesus, seen as the incarnate Deity, the "mythic Christ." Just as in the larger universe, the kosmos, the Christ of the Mysteries represents the Logos as the Second Person in the Trinity, in the individual, man, He represents the second aspect of the Divine Spirit within, hence referred to as "the Christ." The second aspect of the Christ of the Mysteries is the life of the Initiate—a journey that begins at the first significant Initiation when Christ is born within a person and continues to grow thereafter. To fully understand this, we must examine the requirements placed on the Initiation candidate and the nature of the Spirit within humanity.

Only those could be recognised as candidates for Initiation who were already good as men count goodness, according to the strict measure of the law. Pure, holy, without defilement, clean from sin, living without transgression—such were some of the descriptive phrases used of them.[190] Intelligent also must they be, of well-developed and well-trained minds.[191] The evolution carried on in the world life after life, developing and mastering the powers of the mind, the emotions, and the moral sense, learning through exoteric religions, practising the discharge of duties, seeking to help and lift others—all this belongs to the ordinary life of an evolving[Pg 174] man. When all this is done, the man has become "a good man," the Chrêstos of the Greeks, and this he must be ere he can become the Christos, the Anointed. Having accomplished the exoteric good life, he becomes a candidate for the esoteric life, and enters on the preparation for Initiation, which consists in the fulfilment of certain conditions.

Only those who were already recognized as good by today's standards could be seen as candidates for Initiation. They needed to be pure, holy, free from defilement, and clean of sin, living without wrongdoing—these are some of the terms used to describe them.[190] They also had to be intelligent, with well-developed and well-trained minds.[191] The growth that occurs in life after life involves developing and mastering mental abilities, emotions, and moral senses, learning through mainstream religions, fulfilling duties, and striving to help and uplift others—all of this is part of the regular life of a person who is evolving [Pg 174]. Once they have achieved these aspects, they become "a good man," the Chrêstos of the Greeks, and this is necessary before becoming the Christos, the Anointed. After successfully living the good life, they become a candidate for the esoteric life and begin the preparation for Initiation, which involves meeting certain requirements.

These conditions mark out the attributes he is to acquire, and while he is labouring to create these, he is sometimes said to be treading the Probationary Path, the Path which leads up to the "Strait Gate," beyond which is the "Narrow Way," or the "Path of Holiness," the "Way of the Cross." He is not expected to develop these attributes perfectly, but he must have made some progress in all of them, ere the Christ can be born in him. He must prepare a pure home for that Divine Child who is to develop within him.

These conditions outline the qualities he needs to develop, and while he is working on these, he is often described as walking the Probationary Path, the route that leads to the "Strait Gate," beyond which lies the "Narrow Way," or the "Path of Holiness," the "Way of the Cross." He isn't expected to perfect these qualities, but he must have made some progress in all of them before Christ can be born in him. He needs to create a pure environment for that Divine Child who will grow within him.

The first of these attributes—they are all mental and moral—is Discrimination; this means that the aspirant must begin to separate in his mind the Eternal from the[Pg 175] Temporary, the Real from the Unreal, the True from the False, the Heavenly from the Earthly. "The things which are seen are temporal," says the Apostle; "but the things which are not seen are eternal."[192] Men are constantly living under the glamour of the seen, and are blinded by it to the unseen. The aspirant must learn to discriminate between them, so that what is unreal to the world may become real to him, and that which is real to the world may to him become unreal, for thus only is it possible to "walk by faith, not by sight."[193] And thus also must a man become one of those of whom the Apostle says that they "are of full age, even those who by reason of use have their senses exercised to discern both good and evil."[194] Next, this sense of unreality must breed in him Disgust with the unreal and the fleeting, the mere husks of life, unfit to satisfy hunger, save the hunger of swine.[195] This stage is described in the emphatic language of Jesus: "If any man come to me, and hate not his father, and mother,[Pg 176] and wife, and children, and brethren, and sisters, yea, and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple."[196] Truly a "hard saying," and yet out of this hatred will spring a deeper, truer, love, and the stage may not be escaped on the way to the Strait Gate. Then the aspirant must learn Control of thoughts, and this will lead to Control of actions, the thought being, to the inner eye, the same as the action: "Whosoever looketh on a woman to lust after her, hath committed adultery with her already in his heart."[197] He must acquire Endurance, for they who aspire to tread "the Way of the Cross" will have to brave long and bitter sufferings, and they must be able to endure, "as seeing Him who is invisible."[198] He must add to these Tolerance, if he would be the child of Him who "maketh His sun to rise on the evil, and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust,"[199] the disciple of Him who bade His apostles not to forbid a man to use His name because he did not follow with them.[200][Pg 177] Further, he must acquire the Faith to which nothing is impossible,[201] and the Balance which is described by the Apostle.[202] Lastly, he must seek only "those things which are above,"[203] and long to reach the beatitude of the vision of and union with God.[204] When a man has wrought these qualities into his character he is regarded as fit for Initiation, and the Guardians of the Mysteries will open for him the Strait Gate. Thus, but thus only, he becomes the prepared candidate.

The first of these attributes—they are all mental and moral—is Discrimination; this means that the aspirant must start to distinguish in his mind the Eternal from the[Pg 175] Temporary, the Real from the Unreal, the True from the False, the Heavenly from the Earthly. "The things which are seen are temporary," says the Apostle; "but the things which are not seen are eternal."[192] People often live under the illusion of the visible, and this blinds them to the unseen. The aspirant needs to learn to differentiate between them so that what is unreal to the world may become real to him, and that which is real to the world may become unreal to him, for only then is it possible to "walk by faith, not by sight."[193] In this way, a person must become one of those described by the Apostle as being "of full age, even those who by reason of use have their senses exercised to discern both good and evil."[194] Next, this sense of unreality must create in him Disgust with the unreal and the fleeting, the mere shells of life that are unfit to satisfy hunger, except for the hunger of pigs.[195] This stage is described in the strong words of Jesus: "If any man comes to me, and does not hate his father, mother, wife, children, brothers, and sisters, and even his own life, he cannot be my disciple."[196] Truly a "hard saying," yet from this hatred will blossom a deeper, truer love, and this stage cannot be avoided on the path to the Narrow Gate. Then the aspirant must learn Control of thoughts, which will lead to Control of actions, as thought, to the inner eye, is the same as action: "Whoever looks at a woman to lust after her, has committed adultery with her already in his heart."[197] He must develop Endurance, for those who aim to walk "the Way of the Cross" will face long and harsh sufferings, and they must be able to endure, "as seeing Him who is invisible."[198] He must also cultivate Tolerance if he wishes to be the child of Him who "makes His sun rise on the evil and the good, and sends rain on the just and the unjust,"[199] and the disciple of Him who instructed His apostles not to stop someone from using His name just because he wasn't following them.[200][Pg 177] Furthermore, he must obtain the Faith that believes nothing is impossible,[201] and the Balance described by the Apostle.[202] Lastly, he must seek only "those things which are above,"[203] and yearn to attain the bliss of the vision of and union with God.[204] When a person has integrated these qualities into their character, they are considered worthy of Initiation, and the Guardians of the Mysteries will open the Narrow Gate for them. Thus, and only thus, does he become the prepared candidate.

Now, the Spirit in man is the gift of the Supreme God, and contains within itself the three aspects of the Divine Life—Intelligence, Love, Will—being the Image of God. As it evolves, it first develops the aspect of Intelligence, develops the intellect, and this evolution is effected in the ordinary life in the world. To have done this to a high point, accompanying it with moral development, brings the evolving man to the condition of the candidate. The second[Pg 178] aspect of the Spirit is that of Love, and the evolution of that is the evolution of the Christ. In the true Mysteries this evolution is undergone—the disciple's life is the Mystery Drama, and the Great Initiations mark its stages. In the Mysteries performed on the physical plane these used to be dramatically represented, and the ceremonies followed in many respects "the pattern" ever shown forth "on the Mount," for they were the shadows in a deteriorating age of the mighty Realities in the spiritual world.

Now, the Spirit in each person is a gift from the Supreme God and includes the three aspects of Divine Life—Intelligence, Love, and Will—representing the Image of God. As it develops, it first nurtures the aspect of Intelligence, enhancing the intellect, and this growth takes place in everyday life. Achieving this to a high degree, while also fostering moral development, leads the evolving person to the status of a candidate. The second aspect of the Spirit is Love, and its evolution corresponds to the evolution of Christ. In the true Mysteries, this evolution is experienced—the disciple's life is the Mystery Drama, and the Great Initiations signify its stages. In the Mysteries practiced on the physical plane, these were often dramatically portrayed, and the rituals closely followed "the pattern" continually shown "on the Mount," as they were the echoes in a declining age of the profound Realities in the spiritual world.

The Mystic Christ, then, is twofold—the Logos, the Second Person of the Trinity, descending into matter, and the Love, or second, aspect of the unfolding Divine Spirit in man. The one represents kosmic processes carried on in the past and is the root of the Solar Myth; the other represents a process carried on in the individual, the concluding stage of his human evolution, and added many details in the Myth. Both of these have contributed to the Gospel story, and together form the Image of the "Mystic Christ."[Pg 179]

The Mystic Christ is twofold— the Logos, the Second Person of the Trinity, coming into the physical world, and Love, or the second aspect of the unfolding Divine Spirit within humans. The first represents cosmic processes from the past and is the basis of the Solar Myth; the second represents an ongoing process within the individual, marking the final stage of his human evolution, and adds many details to the Myth. Together, both have influenced the Gospel story and combine to form the Image of the "Mystic Christ."[Pg 179]

Let us consider first the kosmic Christ, Deity becoming enveloped in matter, the becoming incarnate of the Logos, the clothing of God in "flesh."

Let’s first think about the cosmic Christ, the divine taking on physical form, the incarnation of the Word, the embodiment of God in "flesh."

When the matter which is to form our solar system is separated off from the infinite ocean of matter which fills space, the Third Person of the Trinity—the Holy Spirit—pours His Life into this matter to vivify it, that it may presently take form. It is then drawn together, and form is given to it by the life of the Logos, the Second Person of the Trinity, who sacrifices Himself by putting on the limitations of matter, becoming the "Heavenly Man," in whose Body all forms exist, of whose Body all forms are part. This was the kosmic story, dramatically shown in the Mysteries—in the true Mysteries seen as it occurred in space, in the physical plane Mysteries represented by magical or other means, and in some parts by actors.

When the material that will make up our solar system is separated from the endless expanse of matter that fills space, the Holy Spirit— the Third Person of the Trinity— infuses this material with His Life to bring it to life so it can take shape. It is then gathered together, and the life of the Logos, the Second Person of the Trinity, gives it form. He sacrifices Himself by embracing the limits of matter, becoming the “Heavenly Man,” in whose Body all forms exist and of which all forms are a part. This was the cosmic story, vividly illustrated in the Mysteries— in the true Mysteries as it happened in space, in the physical plane Mysteries represented through magical or other methods, and in some parts by actors.

These processes are very distinctly stated in the Bible; when the "Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters" in the darkness that was "upon the face[Pg 180] of the deep,"[205] the great deep of matter showed no forms, it was void, inchoate. Form was given by the Logos, the Word, of whom it is written that "all things were made by Him; and without Him was not anything made that was made."[206] C. W. Leadbeater has well put it: "The result of this first great outpouring [the 'moving' of the Spirit] is the quickening of that wonderful and glorious vitality which pervades all matter (inert though it may seem to our dim physical eyes), so that the atoms of the various planes develop, when electrified by it, all sorts of previously latent attractions and repulsions, and enter into combinations of all kinds."[207]

These processes are clearly outlined in the Bible; when the "Spirit of God moved over the waters" in the darkness that was "over the face[Pg 180] of the deep,"[205] the great deep of matter had no forms; it was empty and undeveloped. Form was given by the Logos, the Word, of whom it is said that "all things were made by Him; and without Him, nothing was made that was made."[206] C. W. Leadbeater expressed it well: "The result of this first great outpouring [the 'moving' of the Spirit] is the awakening of that wonderful and glorious vitality that fills all matter (inert though it may seem to our limited physical eyes), so that the atoms of the various planes, when energized by it, exhibit all kinds of previously hidden attractions and repulsions, and form combinations of all types."[207]

Only when this work of the Spirit has been done can the Logos, the kosmic Mystic Christ, take on Himself the clothing of matter, entering in very truth the Virgin's womb, the womb of Matter as yet virgin, unproductive. This matter had been vivified by the Holy Spirit,[Pg 181] who, overshadowing the Virgin, poured into it His life, thus preparing it to receive the life of the Second Logos, who took this matter as the vehicle for His energies. This is the becoming incarnate of the Christ, the taking flesh—"Thou did'st not despise the Virgin's womb."

Only once this work of the Spirit is complete can the Logos, the cosmic Mystic Christ, clothe Himself in matter, truly entering the Virgin's womb—the womb of Matter that is still untouched and unproductive. This matter was brought to life by the Holy Spirit,[Pg 181] who, overshadowing the Virgin, infused it with His life, preparing it to receive the life of the Second Logos, who used this matter as the vessel for His energies. This is the incarnation of Christ, the taking on of flesh—"You did not despise the Virgin's womb."

In the Latin and English translations of the original Greek text of the Nicene Creed, the phrase which describes this phase of the descent has changed the prepositions and so changed the sense. The original ran: "and was incarnate of the Holy Ghost and the Virgin Mary," whereas the translation reads: "and was incarnate by the Holy Ghost of the Virgin Mary."[208] The Christ "takes form not of the 'Virgin' matter alone, but of matter which is already instinct and pulsating with the life of the Third Logos,[209] so that both the life and the matter surround Him as a vesture."[210]

In the Latin and English translations of the original Greek text of the Nicene Creed, the phrase describing this stage of the descent has altered the prepositions, thus changing the meaning. The original stated: "and was incarnate of the Holy Ghost and the Virgin Mary," while the translation says: "and was incarnate by the Holy Ghost of the Virgin Mary."[208] Christ "takes form not merely from the 'Virgin' matter, but from matter that is already alive and pulsating with the vitality of the Third Logos,[209] so that both life and matter envelop Him like a garment."[210]

This is the descent of the Logos into matter, described as the birth of the Christ[Pg 182] of a Virgin, and this, in the Solar Myth, becomes the birth of the Sun-God as the sign Virgo rises.

This is the transition of the Logos into physical form, described as the birth of the Christ[Pg 182] from a Virgin, and this, in the Solar Myth, represents the birth of the Sun-God as the sign Virgo rises.

Then come the early workings of the Logos in matter, aptly typified by the infancy of the myth. To all the feebleness of infancy His majestic powers bow themselves, letting but little play forth on the tender forms they ensoul. Matter imprisons, seems as though threatening to slay, its infant King, whose glory is veiled by the limitations He has assumed. Slowly He shapes it towards high ends, and lifts it into manhood, and then stretches Himself on the cross of matter that He may pour forth from that cross all the powers of His surrendered life. This is the Logos of whom Plato said that He was in the figure of a cross on the universe; this is the Heavenly Man, standing in space, with arms outstretched in blessing; this is the Christ crucified, whose death on the cross of matter fills all matter with His life. Dead He seems and buried out of sight, but He rises again clothed in the very matter in which He seemed to perish, and carries up His[Pg 183] body of now radiant matter into heaven, where it receives the downpouring life of the Father, and becomes the vehicle of man's immortal life. For it is the life of the Logos which forms the garment of the Soul in man, and He gives it that men may live through the ages and grow to the measure of His own stature. Truly are we clothed in Him, first materially and then spiritually. He sacrificed Himself to bring many sons into glory, and He is with us always, even to the end of the age.

Then come the early workings of the Logos in material form, clearly represented by the infancy of the myth. To all the vulnerability of infancy, His majestic powers bow, allowing only a little of their essence to shine through in the delicate forms they inhabit. Matter confines Him and seems to threaten the life of its infant King, whose glory is hidden by the limits He has accepted. Gradually, He shapes it toward greater purposes, maturing it into adulthood, and then He stretches Himself on the cross of matter, pouring out all the powers of His surrendered life from that cross. This is the Logos of whom Plato said was represented by a cross in the universe; this is the Heavenly Man, standing in space with arms outstretched in blessing; this is the Christ crucified, whose death on the cross of matter infuses all matter with His life. He appears dead and buried out of sight, but He rises again, wrapped in the very matter in which He seemed to die, and takes His now radiant body up into heaven, where it receives the life-giving essence of the Father, becoming the vessel for humanity's immortal existence. For it is the life of the Logos that forms the garment of the Soul in humans, enabling them to live through the ages and grow to match His own stature. We are truly clothed in Him, first in a material sense and then in a spiritual sense. He sacrificed Himself to lead many sons into glory, and He is with us always, even to the end of the age.

The crucifixion of Christ, then, is part of the great kosmic sacrifice, and the allegorical representation of this in the physical Mysteries, and the sacred symbol of the crucified man in space, became materialised into an actual death by crucifixion, and a crucifix bearing a dying human form; then this story, now the story of a man, was attached to the Divine Teacher, Jesus, and became the story of His physical death, while the birth from a Virgin, the danger-encircled infancy, the resurrection and ascension, became also incidents in His human life.[Pg 184] The Mysteries disappeared, but their grandiose and graphic representations of the kosmic work of the Logos encircled and uplifted the beloved figure of the Teacher of Judæa, and the kosmic Christ of the Mysteries, with the lineaments of the Jesus of history, thus became the central Figure of the Christian Church.

The crucifixion of Christ is part of the great cosmic sacrifice, and the symbolic representation of this in the physical Mysteries, along with the sacred symbol of the crucified man in space, turned into an actual death by crucifixion, and a cross bearing a dying human figure. This narrative, now the story of a man, was linked to the Divine Teacher, Jesus, and became the account of His physical death. Meanwhile, the birth from a Virgin, the perilous infancy, the resurrection, and the ascension also became events in His human life.[Pg 184] The Mysteries faded away, but their grand and vivid representations of the cosmic work of the Logos surrounded and elevated the beloved figure of the Teacher of Judea, and the cosmic Christ of the Mysteries, with the features of the historical Jesus, thus became the central figure of the Christian Church.

But even this was not all; the last touch of fascination is added to the Christ-story by the fact that there is another Christ of the Mysteries, close and dear to the human heart—the Christ of the human Spirit, the Christ who is in every one of us, is born and lives, is crucified, rises from the dead, and ascends into heaven, in every suffering and triumphant "Son of Man."

But that’s not all; the final element of intrigue in the Christ story comes from the existence of another Christ of the Mysteries, one that resonates deeply with the human heart—the Christ of the human Spirit, the Christ who resides in each of us, who is born and lives, who is crucified, rises from the dead, and ascends into heaven, in every suffering and victorious "Son of Man."

The life-story of every Initiate into the true, the heavenly Mysteries, is told in its salient features in the Gospel biography. For this reason, S. Paul speaks as we have seen[211] of the birth of the Christ in the disciple, and of His evolution and His full stature therein. Every man is a potential Christ, and the unfolding of the Christ-life[Pg 185] in a man follows the outline of the Gospel story in its striking incidents, which we have seen to be universal, and not particular.

The life story of every Initiate into the true, heavenly Mysteries is summarized in the key features of the Gospel biography. This is why St. Paul discusses, as we've seen[211], the birth of Christ within the disciple, as well as His development and full maturity there. Every person has the potential to embody Christ, and the unfolding of the Christ-life[Pg 185] in a person follows the pattern of the Gospel narrative in its memorable events, which we've recognized as universal rather than specific.

There are five great Initiations in the life of a Christ, each one marking a stage in the unfolding of the Life of Love. They are given now, as of old, and the last marks the final triumph of the Man who has developed into Divinity, who has transcended humanity, and has become a Saviour of the world.

There are five major Initiations in the life of a Christ, each one representing a stage in the unfolding of the Life of Love. They are offered now, just as they were in the past, and the last one signifies the ultimate triumph of the Man who has evolved into Divinity, who has surpassed humanity, and has become a Savior of the world.

Let us trace this life-story, ever newly repeated in spiritual experience, and see the Initiate living out the life of the Christ.

Let’s follow this life story, constantly expressed in spiritual experiences, and observe the Initiate living out the life of Christ.

At the first great Initiation the Christ is born in the disciple; it is then that he realises for the first time in himself the outpouring of the divine Love, and experiences that marvellous change which makes him feel himself to be one with all that lives. This is the "Second Birth," and at that birth the heavenly ones rejoice, for he is born into "the kingdom of heaven," as one of the "little ones," as "a little child"—the names ever given to the[Pg 186] new Initiates. Such is the meaning of the words of Jesus, that a man must become a little child to enter into the Kingdom.[212] It is significantly said in some of the early Christian writers that Jesus was "born in a cave"—the "stable" of the gospel narrative; the "Cave of Initiation" is a well-known ancient phrase, and the Initiate is ever born therein; over that cave "where the young child" is burns the "Star of Initiation," the Star that ever shines forth in the East when a Child-Christ is born. Every such child is surrounded by perils and menaces, strange dangers that befall not other babes; for he is anointed with the chrism of the second birth and the Dark Powers of the unseen world ever seek his undoing. Despite all trials, however, he grows into manhood, for the Christ once born can never perish, the Christ once beginning to develop can never fail in his evolution; his fair life expands and grows, ever-increasing in wisdom and in spiritual stature, until the time comes for the second great Initiation, the Baptism of the Christ[Pg 187] by Water and the Spirit, that gives him the powers necessary for the Teacher, who is to go forth and labour in the world as "the beloved Son."

At the first significant initiation, Christ is born within the disciple; it's at this moment that he experiences the outpouring of divine love for the first time within himself and undergoes a remarkable transformation that makes him feel united with all living things. This is the "Second Birth," and when this happens, the heavenly beings rejoice because he is born into "the kingdom of heaven," as one of the "little ones," like "a little child"—the terms consistently used for the[Pg 186] new initiates. This reflects the meaning of Jesus' words about needing to become like a little child to enter the Kingdom.[212] Some early Christian writers notably said that Jesus was "born in a cave"—the "stable" mentioned in the gospel story; the "Cave of Initiation" is a well-known ancient phrase, and the initiates are always born there; above that cave "where the young child" is, burns the "Star of Initiation," the Star that always shines in the East when a Child-Christ is born. Every such child faces dangers and threats, unique perils that other babies do not encounter; for he is blessed with the chrism of the second birth, and the dark powers of the unseen world constantly attempt to bring him down. Nevertheless, despite all these challenges, he matures into adulthood, for the Christ once born can never die; the Christ once beginning to develop can never fail in his growth. His beautiful life expands and flourishes, continually increasing in wisdom and spiritual stature, until the time arrives for the second significant initiation, the Baptism of the Christ[Pg 187] by Water and the Spirit, which grants him the abilities needed to be the Teacher who is to go forth and work in the world as "the beloved Son."

Then there descends upon him in rich measure the divine Spirit, and the glory of the unseen Father pours down its pure radiance on him; but from that scene of blessing is he led by the Spirit into the wilderness and is once more exposed to the ordeal of fierce temptations. For now the powers of the Spirit are unfolding themselves in him, and the Dark Ones strive to lure him from his path by these very powers, bidding him use them for his own helping instead of resting on his Father in patient trust. In the swift, sudden transitions which test his strength and faith, the whisper of the embodied Tempter follows the voice of the Father, and the burning sands of the wilderness scorch the feet erstwhile laved in the cool waters of the holy river. Conqueror over these temptations he passes into the world of men to use for their helping the powers he would not put forth for his own needs, and he who would not turn one stone to[Pg 188] bread for the stilling of his own cravings feeds "five thousand men, besides women and children," with a few loaves.

Then the divine Spirit comes down on him in abundance, and the glory of the unseen Father shines down on him with pure light; but from that moment of blessing, he is led by the Spirit into the wilderness and faces the challenge of intense temptations again. Now the powers of the Spirit are awakening within him, and the Dark Ones try to tempt him away from his path using those very powers, urging him to use them for his own benefit instead of relying on his Father in patient trust. In the quick, sudden changes that test his strength and faith, the voice of the embodied Tempter follows the voice of the Father, and the scorching sands of the wilderness burn the feet that were once refreshed in the cool waters of the holy river. Overcoming these temptations, he enters the world of men to use his powers for their benefit, powers he would not use for his own needs, and he who wouldn’t turn one stone into bread to satisfy his own hunger feeds “five thousand men, besides women and children,” with a few loaves.

Into his life of ceaseless service comes another brief period of glory, when he ascends "a high mountain apart"—the sacred Mount of Initiation. There he is transfigured and there meets some of his great Forerunners, the Mighty Ones of old who trod where he now is treading. He passes thus the third great Initiation, and then the shadow of his coming Passion falls on him, and he steadfastly sets his face to go to Jerusalem—repelling the tempting words of one of his disciples—Jerusalem, where awaits him the baptism of the Holy Ghost and of Fire. After the Birth, the attack by Herod; after the Baptism, the temptation in the wilderness; after the Transfiguration, the setting forth towards the last stage of the Way of the Cross. Thus is triumph ever followed by ordeal, until the goal is reached.

Into his life of nonstop service comes another brief moment of glory when he climbs "a high mountain apart"—the sacred Mount of Initiation. There, he is transformed and meets some of his great Forerunners, the Mighty Ones of old who walked the path he's now walking. He undergoes the third great Initiation, and then the shadow of his upcoming Passion looms over him, and he resolutely sets his face towards Jerusalem—rejecting the tempting words of one of his disciples—Jerusalem, where the baptism of the Holy Spirit and Fire awaits him. After the Birth, there's the attack by Herod; after the Baptism, the temptation in the wilderness; after the Transfiguration, the journey towards the final stage of the Way of the Cross. Thus, triumph is always followed by trial, until the goal is achieved.

Still grows the life of love, ever fuller and more perfect, the Son of Man shining forth more clearly as the Son of God, until the time draws near for his final[Pg 189] battle; and the fourth great Initiation leads him in triumph into Jerusalem, into sight of Gethsemane and Calvary. He is now the Christ ready to be offered, ready for the sacrifice on the cross. He is now to face the bitter agony in the Garden, where even his chosen ones sleep while he wrestles with his mortal anguish, and for a moment prays that the cup may pass from his lips; but the strong will triumphs and he stretches out his hand to take and drink, and in his loneliness an angel comes to him and strengthens him, as angels are wont to do when they see a Son of Man bending beneath his load of agony. The drinking of the bitter cup of betrayal, of desertion, of denial, meets him as he goes forth, and alone amid his jeering foes he passes to his last fierce trial. Scourged by physical pain, pierced by cruel thorns of suspicion, stripped of his fair garments of purity in the eyes of the world, left in the hands of his foes, deserted apparently by God and man, he endures patiently all that befalls him, wistfully looking in his last extremity for aid. Left still to suffer, crucified, to die to the[Pg 190] life of form, to surrender all life that belongs to the lower world, surrounded by triumphant foes who mock him, the last horror of great darkness envelopes him, and in the darkness he meets all the forces of evil; his inner vision is blinded, he finds himself alone, utterly alone, till the strong heart, sinking in despair, cries out to the Father who seems to have abandoned him, and the human soul faces, in uttermost loneliness, the crushing agony of apparent defeat. Yet, summoning all the strength of the "unconquerable spirit," the lower life is yielded up, its death is willingly embraced, the body of desire is abandoned, and the Initiate "descends into hell," that no region of the universe he is to help may remain untrodden by him, that none may be too outcast to be reached by his all-embracing love. And then springing upwards from the darkness, he sees the light once more, feels himself again as the Son, inseparable from the Father whose he is, rises to the life that knows no ending, radiant in the consciousness of death faced and overcome, strong to help to the uttermost[Pg 191] every child of man, able to pour out his life into every struggling soul. Among his disciples he remains awhile to teach, unveiling to them the mysteries of the spiritual worlds, preparing them also to tread the path he has trodden, until, the earth-life over, he ascends to the Father, and, in the fifth great Initiation, becomes the Master triumphant, the link between God and man.

The life of love continues to grow, becoming ever richer and more complete, with the Son of Man shining more brightly as the Son of God, until the moment approaches for his final battle. The fourth great Initiation leads him triumphantly into Jerusalem, coming into view of Gethsemane and Calvary. He is now the Christ, ready to be sacrificed on the cross. He is about to confront the deep pain in the Garden, where even his closest followers fall asleep while he struggles with his intense suffering, and for a moment he prays that he might avoid this fate; but his strong will prevails, and he reaches out to take and drink. In his solitude, an angel comes to him and gives him strength, as angels tend to do when they see a Son of Man burdened by his pain. The bitter cup of betrayal, abandonment, and denial awaits him as he steps forward, and alone among those who mock him, he approaches his final, fierce trial. Tortured by physical pain, pierced by the cruel thorns of suspicion, stripped of his purity in the eyes of the world, and seemingly abandoned by both God and man, he patiently endures everything that comes his way, desperately hoping for help in his darkest hour. Left to suffer, crucified, and facing death to the life of form, he gives up everything connected to the lower world, surrounded by triumphant enemies who taunt him. The ultimate horror of great darkness envelops him, and in the darkness, he encounters all the forces of evil; his inner vision is clouded, and he finds himself utterly alone until his strong heart, sinking into despair, cries out to the Father who appears to have forsaken him. The human soul stands in complete loneliness, confronting the crushing anguish of seeming defeat. Yet, summoning all the strength of the "unconquerable spirit," he willingly accepts the end of his lower life, abandoning the body of desire, and the Initiate "descends into hell," ensuring that no part of the universe he is meant to help remains untouched by him, that none is too lost to be reached by his all-encompassing love. Then, rising up from the darkness, he sees the light once again, feels himself as the Son, inseparable from the Father he belongs to, and ascends to a life without end, radiant in the awareness of death faced and conquered, strong enough to assist every human being, able to pour out his life into every struggling soul. He stays with his disciples for a while to teach them, revealing the mysteries of the spiritual realms, preparing them to follow the path he has walked, until, having completed his earthly life, he ascends to the Father and, in the fifth great Initiation, becomes the triumphant Master, the link between God and man.

Such was the story lived through in the true Mysteries of old and now, and dramatically pourtrayed in symbols in the physical plane Mysteries, half veiled, half shown. Such is the Christ of the Mysteries in His dual aspect, Logos and man, kosmic and individual. Is it any wonder that this story, dimly felt, even when unknown, by the mystic, has woven itself into the heart, and served as an inspiration to all noble living? The Christ of the human heart is, for the most part, Jesus seen as the mystic human Christ, struggling, suffering, dying, finally triumphant, the Man in whom humanity is seen crucified and risen, whose victory is the promise of victory to every one who,[Pg 192] like Him, is faithful through death and beyond—the Christ who can never be forgotten while He is born again and again in humanity, while the world needs Saviours, and Saviours give themselves for men.

This is the story experienced in the true Mysteries of the past and present, dramatically portrayed through symbols in the physical Mysteries, partly concealed and partly revealed. This is the Christ of the Mysteries in His dual nature, both Logos and man, cosmic and individual. Is it any surprise that this story, sensed even when unknown by the mystic, has become woven into the hearts of people and has inspired noble living? The Christ of the human heart is mostly seen as Jesus, the mystical human Christ, who struggles, suffers, dies, and ultimately triumphs—the Man in whom humanity is seen crucified and resurrected, whose victory promises victory to everyone who, like Him, remains faithful through death and beyond—the Christ who will never be forgotten as He is continually reborn in humanity, while the world needs Saviors, and Saviors dedicate themselves to others.


Chapter 7.

THE ATONEMENT.

We will now proceed to study certain aspects of the Christ-Life, as they appear among the doctrines of Christianity. In the exoteric teachings they appear as attached only to the Person of the Christ; in the esoteric they are seen as belonging indeed to Him, since in their primary, their fullest and deepest meaning they form part of the activities of the Logos, but as being only secondarily reflected in the Christ, and therefore also in every Christ-Soul that treads the way of the Cross. Thus studied they will be seen to be profoundly true, while in their exoteric form they often bewilder the intelligence and jar the emotions.[Pg 194]

We will now examine certain aspects of the Christ-Life as they show up in Christian doctrines. In the outward teachings, they seem to be linked only to the Person of Christ; in the deeper teachings, they are recognized as belonging to Him, since at their core, in their fullest and deepest meaning, they are part of the activities of the Logos, but are only reflected in Christ and, therefore, in every Christ-Soul that follows the path of the Cross. When studied this way, they will be seen as profoundly true, while in their outward form, they often confuse the mind and disturb the emotions.[Pg 194]

Among these stands prominently forward the doctrine of the Atonement; not only has it been a point of bitter attack from those outside the pale of Christianity, but it has wrung many sensitive consciences within that pale. Some of the most deeply Christian thinkers of the last half of the nineteenth century have been tortured with doubts as to the teaching of the churches on this matter, and have striven to see, and to present it, in a way that softens or explains away the cruder notions based on an unintelligent reading of a few profoundly mystical texts. Nowhere, perhaps, more than in connection with these should the warning of S. Peter be borne in mind: "Our beloved brother Paul also, according to the wisdom given unto him, hath written unto you—as also in all his epistles—speaking in them of these things; in which are some things hard to be understood, which they that are unlearned and unstable wrest, as they do also the other scriptures, unto own destruction."[213] For the texts that tell of the identity of the Christ with His[Pg 195] brother-men have been wrested into a legal substitution of Himself for them, and have thus been used as an escape from the results of sin, instead of as an inspiration to righteousness.

Among these stands out the doctrine of the Atonement; it has not only been a focal point of fierce criticism from those outside of Christianity but has also troubled the consciences of many within it. Some of the most thoughtful Christian minds of the latter half of the nineteenth century struggled with doubts about the churches' teachings on this topic and worked to interpret it in a way that softens or explains away the harsher ideas that come from a simplistic reading of a few deeply mystical texts. Nowhere, perhaps, is it more important to remember the warning of St. Peter: "Our beloved brother Paul also, according to the wisdom given to him, has written to you—as he has in all his letters—addressing these matters; in which there are some things hard to understand, which the ignorant and unstable twist, as they do the other scriptures, to their own destruction." For the texts that refer to the identity of Christ with His fellow humans have been distorted into a legal substitution of Himself for them and have thus been misused as a way to escape the consequences of sin instead of serving as a motivation for righteousness.

The general teaching in the Early Church on the doctrine of the Atonement was that Christ, as the Representative of Humanity, faced and conquered Satan, the representative of the Dark Powers, who held humanity in bondage, wrested his captive from him, and set him free. Slowly, as Christian teachers lost touch with spiritual truths, and they reflected their own increasing intolerance and harshness on the pure and loving Father of the teachings of the Christ, they represented Him as angry with man, and the Christ was made to save man from the wrath of God instead of from the bondage of evil. Then legal phrases intruded, still further materialising the once spiritual idea, and the "scheme of redemption" was forensically outlined. "The seal was set on the 'redemption scheme' by Anselm in his great work, Cur Deus Homo, and the doctrine which had been slowly growing[Pg 196] into the theology of Christendom was thenceforward stamped with the signet of the Church. Roman Catholics and Protestants, at the time of the Reformation, alike believed in the vicarious and substitutionary character of the atonement wrought by Christ. There is no dispute between them on this point. I prefer to allow the Christian divines to speak for themselves as to the character of the atonement.... Luther teaches that 'Christ did truly and effectually feel for all mankind the wrath of God, malediction, and death.' Flavel says that 'to wrath, to the wrath of an infinite God without mixture, to the very torments of hell, was Christ delivered, and that by the hand of his own father.' The Anglican homily preaches that 'sin did pluck God out of heaven to make him feel the horrors and pains of death,' and that man, being a firebrand of hell and a bondsman of the devil, 'was ransomed by the death of his only and well-beloved son'; the 'heat of his wrath,' 'his burning wrath,' could only be 'pacified' by Jesus, 'so pleasant was the sacrifice and oblation of[Pg 197] his son's death.' Edwards, being logical, saw that there was a gross injustice in sin being twice punished, and in the pains of hell, the penalty of sin, being twice inflicted, first on Jesus, the substitute of mankind, and then on the lost, a portion of mankind; so he, in common with most Calvinists, finds himself compelled to restrict the atonement to the elect, and declared that Christ bore the sins, not of the world, but of the chosen out of the world; he suffers 'not for the world, but for them whom thou hast given me.' But Edwards adheres firmly to the belief in substitution, and rejects the universal atonement for the very reason that 'to believe Christ died for all is the surest way of proving that he died for none in the sense Christians have hitherto believed.' He declares that 'Christ suffered the wrath of God for men's sins'; that 'God imposed his wrath due unto, and Christ underwent the pains of hell for,' sin. Owen regards Christ's sufferings as 'a full valuable compensation to the justice of God for all the sins' of the elect, and says that he underwent 'that same punishment[Pg 198] which ... they themselves were bound to undergo.'"[214]

The general teaching in the Early Church about the doctrine of the Atonement was that Christ, as the Representative of Humanity, faced and defeated Satan, the representative of the Dark Powers, who had humanity in bondage, rescued his captives, and set them free. Gradually, as Christian leaders became disconnected from spiritual truths and reflected their own growing intolerance and harshness onto the pure and loving Father of Christ's teachings, they portrayed Him as angry with humanity. Instead of seeing Christ as saving humanity from the bondage of evil, He was seen as saving humanity from God's wrath. Then legal phrases crept in, further materializing what was once a spiritual idea, and the "scheme of redemption" was laid out in legal terms. "The seal was put on the 'redemption scheme' by Anselm in his great work, Cur Deus Homo, and the doctrine that had been slowly developing in the theology of Christendom was thereafter marked with the Church's authority. Roman Catholics and Protestants, during the Reformation, both believed in the vicarious and substitutionary nature of the atonement achieved by Christ. There is no disagreement between them on this matter. I prefer to let Christian theologians express their views on the atonement's nature.... Luther teaches that 'Christ truly and effectively experienced God's wrath, malediction, and death for all humanity.' Flavel states that 'to wrath, to the wrath of an infinite God without mixture, to the very torments of hell, was Christ delivered, and that by the hand of his own father.' The Anglican homily teaches that 'sin plucked God out of heaven, making Him feel the horrors and pains of death,' and that man, being a firebrand of hell and a bondsman of the devil, 'was ransomed by the death of his only and beloved son'; the 'heat of his wrath,' 'his burning wrath,' could only be 'appeased' by Jesus, 'so pleasing was the sacrifice and offering of his son's death.' Edwards, being logical, recognized a gross injustice in sin being punished twice, with the pains of hell, the penalty of sin, being inflicted first on Jesus, the substitute for humanity, and then again on those lost among humanity; therefore, he, along with most Calvinists, felt compelled to limit the atonement to the elect, asserting that Christ bore the sins, not of the world, but of the chosen from the world; he suffers 'not for the world, but for those whom you have given me.' However, Edwards firmly maintains belief in substitution and rejects universal atonement precisely because 'to believe Christ died for all is the surest way of proving that he died for none in the way Christians have traditionally understood.' He claims that 'Christ suffered God's wrath for human sins'; that 'God imposed His wrath due to sin, and Christ underwent the pains of hell for,' sin. Owen regards Christ's suffering as 'a full and valuable compensation to God's justice for all the sins' of the elect and asserts that he endured 'the same punishment which ... they themselves were required to endure.'"

To show that these views were still authoritatively taught in the churches, I wrote further: "Stroud makes Christ drink 'the cup of the wrath of God.' Jenkyn says 'He suffered as one disowned and reprobated and forsaken of God.' Dwight considers that he endured God's 'hatred and contempt.' Bishop Jeune tells us that 'after man had done his worst, worse remained for Christ to bear. He had fallen into his father's hands.' Archbishop Thomson preaches that 'the clouds of God's wrath gathered thick over the whole human race: they discharged themselves on Jesus only.' He 'becomes a curse for us and a vessel of wrath.' Liddon echoes the same sentiment: 'The apostles teach that mankind are slaves, and that Christ on the cross is paying their ransom. Christ crucified is voluntarily devoted and accursed'; he even speaks of 'the precise amount of ignominy and pain needed for the redemption,' and[Pg 199] says that the 'divine victim' paid more than was absolutely necessary."[215]

To demonstrate that these beliefs were still taught with authority in churches, I wrote further: "Stroud says that Christ drinks 'the cup of God's wrath.' Jenkyn states that 'He suffered as someone who was disowned, rejected, and forsaken by God.' Dwight believes He endured God's 'hatred and contempt.' Bishop Jeune informs us that 'after humanity had done its worst, there was still worse for Christ to bear. He had fallen into His father's hands.' Archbishop Thomson preaches that 'the clouds of God's wrath gathered heavily over all humanity: they were unleashed only on Jesus.' He 'becomes a curse for us and a vessel of wrath.' Liddon reflects the same idea: 'The apostles teach that mankind are slaves, and that Christ on the cross is paying their ransom. Christ crucified is voluntarily devoted and accursed'; he even discusses 'the exact amount of disgrace and suffering needed for redemption,' and[Pg 199] says that the 'divine victim' paid more than was strictly necessary."[215]

These are the views against which the learned and deeply religious Dr. McLeod Campbell wrote his well-known work, On the Atonement, a volume containing many true and beautiful thoughts; F. D. Maurice and many other Christian men have also striven to lift from Christianity the burden of a doctrine so destructive of all true ideas as to the relations between God and man.

These are the perspectives that the knowledgeable and deeply spiritual Dr. McLeod Campbell addressed in his famous book, On the Atonement, a work filled with many insightful and beautiful ideas. F. D. Maurice and several other Christian thinkers have also worked to relieve Christianity of a doctrine that undermines the true understanding of the relationship between God and humanity.

None the less, as we look backwards over the effects produced by this doctrine, we find that belief in it, even in its legal—and to us crude exoteric—form, is connected with some of the very highest developments of Christian conduct, and that some of the noblest examples of Christian manhood and womanhood have drawn from it their strength, their inspiration, and their comfort. It would be unjust not to recognise this fact. And whenever we come upon a fact that seems to us startling and incongruous, we do well to pause upon that fact, and to endeavour[Pg 200] to understand it. For if this doctrine contained nothing more than is seen in it by its assailants inside and outside the churches, if it were in its true meaning as repellent to the conscience and the intellect as it is found to be by many thoughtful Christians, then it could not possibly have exercised over the minds and hearts of men a compelling fascination, nor could it have been the root of heroic self-surrenders, of touching and pathetic examples of self-sacrifice in the service of man. Something more there must be in it than lies on the surface, some hidden kernel of life which has nourished those who have drawn from it their inspiration. In studying it as one of the Lesser Mysteries we shall find the hidden life which these noble ones have unconsciously absorbed, these souls which were so at one with that life that the form in which it was veiled could not repel them.

Nonetheless, as we reflect on the effects of this belief, we see that faith in it, even in its legal—and to us, simplistic—form, is connected to some of the greatest advancements in Christian behavior. Some of the most admirable examples of Christian character have found their strength, inspiration, and comfort in it. It would be unfair not to acknowledge this. Whenever we encounter a fact that seems surprising and out of place, it's wise to take a moment to consider it and try to understand it. If this belief contained nothing more than what its critics, both inside and outside the churches, perceive, and if it were as off-putting to the conscience and intellect as some thoughtful Christians find it, then it couldn't possibly have had such a compelling impact on people's hearts and minds. Nor could it have inspired acts of heroic selflessness or moving examples of sacrifice for others. There must be something deeper than what appears on the surface, a hidden source of life that has inspired those who draw from it. By studying it as one of the Lesser Mysteries, we can uncover the hidden life that these noble individuals have unconsciously absorbed—those souls who were so aligned with that life that the way it was concealed didn't deter them.

When we come to study it as one of the Lesser Mysteries, we shall feel that for its understanding some spiritual development is needed, some opening of the inner eyes. To grasp it requires that its spirit should[Pg 201] be partly evolved in the life, and only those who know practically something of the meaning of self-surrender will be able to catch a glimpse of what is implied in the esoteric teaching on this doctrine, as the typical manifestation of the Law of Sacrifice. We can only understand it as applied to the Christ, when we see it as a special manifestation of the universal law, a reflection below of the Pattern above, showing us in a concrete human life what sacrifice means.

When we study this as one of the Lesser Mysteries, we’ll realize that understanding it requires some spiritual growth and an opening of our inner vision. To grasp its essence, we need to have that spirit somewhat developed in our lives, and only those who have practically experienced the meaning of self-surrender will be able to catch a glimpse of what the esoteric teaching on this doctrine entails, as it represents the typical manifestation of the Law of Sacrifice. We can only understand it in relation to Christ when we see it as a specific manifestation of the universal law, reflecting the higher Pattern here on earth, demonstrating what sacrifice truly means in a real human life.

The Law of Sacrifice underlies our system and all systems, and on it all universes are builded. It lies at the root of evolution, and alone makes it intelligible. In the doctrine of the Atonement it takes a concrete form in connection with men who have reached a certain stage in spiritual development, the stage that enables them to realise their oneness with humanity, and to become, in very deed and truth, Saviours of men.

The Law of Sacrifice is the foundation of our system and all others, and it's what all universes are built on. It is at the core of evolution and makes it understandable. In the teaching of the Atonement, it takes a tangible form with people who have reached a certain level of spiritual growth, a level that allows them to recognize their connection to humanity and to genuinely become Saviours of people.

All the great religions of the world have declared that the universe begins by an act of sacrifice, and have incorporated the idea of sacrifice into their most solemn[Pg 202] rites. In Hinduism, the dawn of manifestation is said to be by sacrifice,[216] mankind is emanated with sacrifice,[217] and it is Deity who sacrifices Himself;[218] the object of the sacrifice is manifestation; He cannot become manifest unless an act of sacrifice be performed, and inasmuch as nothing can be manifest until He manifests,[219] the act of sacrifice is called "the dawn" of creation.

All the major religions in the world say that the universe starts with an act of sacrifice and have woven the concept of sacrifice into their most important rites. In Hinduism, it's believed that the beginning of existence arises from sacrifice; humanity is created through sacrifice, and it is the Deity who sacrifices Himself; the purpose of the sacrifice is to bring about existence. He cannot become present unless a sacrifice is made, and since nothing can exist until He does, the act of sacrifice is referred to as "the dawn" of creation.

In the Zoroastrian religion it was taught that in the Existence that is boundless, unknowable, unnameable, sacrifice was performed and manifest Deity appeared; Ahura-mazdâo was born of an act of sacrifice.[220]

In the Zoroastrian religion, it was taught that in the limitless, unknowable, and unnamed existence, sacrifice was made and a visible Deity appeared; Ahura Mazda was born from an act of sacrifice.[220]

In the Christian religion the same idea is indicated in the phrase: "the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world,"[221] slain at the origin of things. These words can but refer to the important truth that there can be no founding of a world until the[Pg 203] Deity has made an act of sacrifice. This act is explained as limiting Himself in order to become manifest. "The Law of Sacrifice might perhaps more truly be called The Law of Manifestation, or the Law of Love and of Life, for throughout the universe, from the highest to the lowest, it is the cause of manifestation and life."[222]

In Christianity, the same idea is expressed in the phrase: "the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world,"[221] slain at the beginning of everything. These words point to the important truth that a world cannot be established until the[Pg 203] Deity performs an act of sacrifice. This act is described as Him limiting Himself in order to become visible. "The Law of Sacrifice might be better called The Law of Manifestation, or the Law of Love and Life, because throughout the universe, from the highest to the lowest, it is the reason for manifestation and life."[222]

"Now, if we study this physical world, as being the most available material, we find that all life in it, all growth, all progress, alike for units and for aggregates, depend on continual sacrifice and the endurance of pain. Mineral is sacrificed to vegetable, vegetable to animal, both to man, men to men, and all the higher forms again break up, and reinforce again with their separated constituents the lowest kingdom. It is a continual sequence of sacrifices from the lowest to the highest, and the very mark of progress is that the sacrifice from being involuntary and imposed becomes voluntary and self-chosen, and those who are recognised as greatest by man's intellect and loved most[Pg 204] by man's heart are the supreme sufferers, those heroic souls who wrought, endured, and died that the race might profit by their pain. If the world be the work of the Logos, and the law of the world's progress in the whole and the parts is sacrifice, then the Law of Sacrifice must point to something in the very nature of the Logos; it must have its root in the Divine Nature itself. A little further thought shows us that if there is to be a world, a universe at all, this can only be by the One Existence conditioning Itself and thus making manifestation possible, and that the very Logos is the Self-limited God; limited to become manifest; manifested to bring a universe into being; such self-limitation and manifestation can only be a supreme act of sacrifice, and what wonder that on every hand the world should show its birth-mark, and that the Law of Sacrifice should be the law of being, the law of the derived lives.

"Now, if we examine this physical world, as it's the most accessible material, we find that all life in it, all growth, and all progress, whether for individuals or groups, rely on ongoing sacrifice and the endurance of pain. Minerals are sacrificed for plants, plants for animals, both for humans, humans for humans, and all the higher forms again break down and reintegrate with their separate components in the lowest kingdom. It’s a continuous series of sacrifices from the lowest to the highest, and the true sign of progress is that the sacrifice shifts from being involuntary and imposed to being voluntary and chosen. Those recognized as the greatest by human intellect and most loved by human heart are the ultimate sufferers—those heroic souls who worked, endured, and died so that humanity could benefit from their pain. If the world is the creation of the Logos, and the law governing the world’s progress, in total and in parts, is sacrifice, then the Law of Sacrifice must reflect something in the very nature of the Logos; it must be rooted in the Divine Nature itself. A bit more reflection reveals that for a world or a universe to exist at all, it can only be through the One Existence conditioning Itself, thus making manifestation possible, and that the very Logos is the Self-limited God; limited in order to become manifest; manifested to create a universe; such self-limitation and manifestation can only be a supreme act of sacrifice. So, it's no surprise that the world displays its birthmark everywhere, and that the Law of Sacrifice is the law of existence, the law of the derived lives."

"Further, as it is an act of sacrifice in order that individuals may come into existence to share the Divine bliss, it is very truly a vicarious act—an act done for the[Pg 205] sake of others; hence the fact already noted, that progress is marked by sacrifice becoming voluntary and self-chosen, and we realise that humanity reaches its perfection in the man who gives himself for men, and by his own suffering purchases for the race some lofty good.

"Additionally, since it's an act of sacrifice for individuals to come into existence and experience Divine bliss, it truly is a vicarious act—something done for the sake of others; this highlights the observation that progress is characterized by sacrifice becoming voluntary and self-chosen. We understand that humanity achieves its highest form in a person who dedicates themselves to others and, through their own suffering, secures a greater good for the entire race."

"Here, in the highest regions, is the inmost verity of vicarious sacrifice, and however it may be degraded and distorted, this inner spiritual truth makes it indestructible, eternal, and the fount whence flows the spiritual energy which, in manifold forms and ways, redeems the world from evil and draws it home to God."[223]

"Here, in the highest places, is the deepest truth of selfless sacrifice, and no matter how much it gets misrepresented or twisted, this inner spiritual reality makes it unbreakable, timeless, and the source of the spiritual energy that, in many forms and ways, saves the world from evil and brings it back to God."[223]

When the Logos comes forth from "the bosom of the Father" in that "Day" when He is said to be "begotten,"[224] the dawn of the Day of Creation, of Manifestation, when by Him God "made the worlds,"[225] He by His own will limits Himself, making as it were a sphere enclosing the Divine Life, coming forth as[Pg 206] a radiant orb of Deity, the Divine Substance, Spirit within and limitation, or Matter, without. This is the veil of matter which makes possible the birth of the Logos, Mary, the World-Mother, necessary for the manifestation in time of the Eternal, that Deity may manifest for the building of the worlds.

When the Logos emerges from "the bosom of the Father" on that "Day" when He is described as "begotten,"[224] the beginning of the Day of Creation, of Manifestation, when through Him God "made the worlds,"[225] He, by His own will, limits Himself, creating what is essentially a sphere that contains the Divine Life, emerging as a bright orb of Deity, with the Divine Essence inside and limitation, or Matter, outside. This is the veil of matter that allows for the birth of the Logos, Mary, the World-Mother, which is essential for the temporal manifestation of the Eternal, enabling Deity to express itself for the creation of the worlds.

That circumscription, that self-limitation, is the act of sacrifice, a voluntary action done for love's sake, that other lives may be born from Him. Such a manifestation has been regarded as a death, for, in comparison with the unimaginable life of God in Himself, such circumscription in matter may truly be called death. It has been regarded, as we have seen, as a crucifixion in matter, and has been thus figured, the true origin of the symbol of the cross, whether in its so-called Greek form, wherein the vivifying of matter by the Holy Ghost is signified, or in its so-called Latin, whereby the Heavenly Man is figured, the supernal Christ.[226]

That limitation, that self-restraint, is the act of sacrifice, a voluntary choice made for the sake of love, so that other lives may come into being through Him. This kind of manifestation has been seen as a death because, compared to the indescribable life of God within Himself, such limitation in physical form can truly be called death. It has been viewed, as we've discussed, as a crucifixion in the physical world, and this imagery represents the true origin of the symbol of the cross, whether in its so-called Greek form, which signifies the life-giving of matter by the Holy Spirit, or in its so-called Latin form, which depicts the Heavenly Man, the exalted Christ.[226]

"In tracing the symbolism of the Latin cross, or rather of the crucifix, back into[Pg 207] the night of time, the investigators had expected to find the figure disappear, leaving behind what they supposed to be the earlier cross-emblem. As a matter of fact exactly the reverse took place, and they were startled to find that eventually the cross drops away, leaving only the figure with uplifted arms. No longer is there any thought of pain or sorrow connected with that figure, though still it tells of sacrifice; rather is it now the symbol of the purest joy the world can hold—the joy of freely giving—for it typifies the Divine Man standing in space with arms upraised in blessing, casting abroad His gifts to all humanity, pouring forth freely of Himself in all directions, descending into that 'dense sea' of matter, to be cribbed, cabined, and confined therein, in order that through that descent we may come into being."[227]

"In exploring the symbolism of the Latin cross, or more specifically the crucifix, back through the ages, researchers expected to see the figure fade away, leaving what they thought would be the earlier cross-emblem. However, the opposite happened, and they were surprised to discover that the cross eventually disappears, revealing only the figure with arms raised. There’s no longer any association of pain or sorrow with this figure, even though it still represents sacrifice; instead, it has become the symbol of the greatest joy the world can offer—the joy of selfless giving. It depicts the Divine Man standing with arms raised in blessing, sharing His gifts with all humanity, freely giving of Himself in every direction, descending into that 'dense sea' of matter, to be limited and confined there, so that through that descent we may come into existence."

This sacrifice is perpetual, for in every form in this universe of infinite diversity this life is enfolded, and is its very heart, the "Heart of Silence" of the Egyptian ritual, the "Hidden God." This sacrifice[Pg 208] is the secret of evolution. The Divine Life, cabined within a form, ever presses outwards in order that the form may expand, but presses gently, lest the form should break ere yet it had reached its utmost limit of expansion. With infinite patience and tact and discretion, the divine One keeps up the constant pressure that expands, without loosing a force that would disrupt. In every form, in mineral, in vegetable, in animal, in man, this expansive energy of the Logos is ceaselessly working. That is the evolutionary force, the lifting life within the forms, the rising energy that science glimpses, but knows not whence it comes. The botanist tells of an energy within the plant, that pulls ever upwards; he knows not how, he knows not why, but he gives it a name—the vis a fronte—because he finds it there, or rather finds its results. Just as it is in plant life, so is it in other forms as well, making them more and more expressive of the life within them. When the limit of any form is reached, and it can grow no further, so that nothing more can be gained through it by the soul[Pg 209] of it—that germ of Himself, which the Logos is brooding over—then He draws away His energy, and the form disintegrates—we call it death and decay. But the soul is with Him, and He shapes for it a new form, and the death of the form is the birth of the soul into fuller life. If we saw with the eyes of the Spirit instead of with the eyes of the flesh, we should not weep over a form, which is a corpse giving back the materials out of which it was builded, but we should joy over the life passing onwards into nobler form, to expand under the unchanging process the powers still latent within.

This sacrifice is ongoing, because in every aspect of this universe's endless diversity, this life is wrapped up and is its very essence, the "Heart of Silence" in the Egyptian ritual, the "Hidden God." This sacrifice[Pg 208] is the key to evolution. The Divine Life, confined within a form, constantly pushes outward so that the form can grow, but does so gently, to avoid breaking it before it reaches its maximum potential. With infinite patience, care, and discretion, the divine One maintains a steady pressure that encourages growth, without applying a force that would cause disruption. This expansive energy of the Logos is constantly at work in every form, whether in minerals, plants, animals, or humans. This is the driving force of evolution, the life force within these forms, the rising energy that science recognizes but cannot pinpoint its origin. The botanist speaks of an energy within plants that consistently pulls upward; he doesn't understand how or why, but he labels it—the vis a fronte—because he observes it, or rather its effects. Just as it occurs in plant life, so it happens in other forms too, making them increasingly reflective of the life within them. When the limits of any form are reached, and it can no longer grow, to the point where nothing more can be achieved through it by the soul[Pg 209] that is the essence of Him, which the Logos is nurturing—then He withdraws His energy, and the form breaks down—we refer to this as death and decay. But the soul remains with Him, and He creates a new form for it, so the death of the form signals the soul's birth into a fuller existence. If we looked with spiritual eyes instead of physical ones, we wouldn’t mourn a form, which is a body returning the materials it was made from, but we would rejoice over the life moving on into a more noble form, to further expand under the unchanging process of unlocking the powers still hidden within.

Through that perpetual sacrifice of the Logos all lives exist; it is the life by which the universe is ever becoming. This life is One, but it embodies itself in myriad forms, ever drawing them together and gently overcoming their resistance. Thus it is an At-one-ment, a unifying force, by which the separated lives are gradually made conscious of their unity, labouring to develop in each a self-consciousness, which shall at last know itself to be one with all others, and its root One and divine.[Pg 210]

Through the ongoing sacrifice of the Logos, all lives exist; it is the life through which the universe is continually evolving. This life is One, but it takes on countless forms, always bringing them together and gently overcoming their resistance. Thus, it is a process of at-one-ment, a unifying force, through which the separate lives gradually become aware of their unity, working to develop in each a self-awareness that ultimately realizes it is one with all others, and its source is One and divine.[Pg 210]

This is the primary and ever-continued sacrifice, and it will be seen that it is an outpouring of Life directed by Love, a voluntary and glad pouring forth of Self for the making of other Selves. This is "the joy of thy Lord"[228] into which the faithful servant enters, significantly followed by the statement that He was hungry, thirsty, naked, sick, a stranger and in prison, in the helped or neglected children of men. To the free Spirit to give itself is joy, and it feels its life the more keenly, the more it pours itself forth. And the more it gives, the more it grows, for the law of the growth of life is that it increases by pouring itself forth and not by drawing from without—by giving, not by taking. Sacrifice, then, in its primary meaning, is a thing of joy; the Logos pours Himself out to make a world, and, seeing the travail of His soul, is satisfied.[229]

This is the main and ongoing sacrifice, and it’s clear that it’s a flow of Life guided by Love, a willing and joyful outpouring of Self to create other Selves. This is "the joy of thy Lord"[228] that the faithful servant enters, notably followed by the description that He was hungry, thirsty, naked, sick, a stranger, and in prison, among the helped or neglected children of humanity. For the free Spirit, giving itself is joyful, and it feels its life more intensely the more it pours itself out. The more it gives, the more it grows, because the law of life’s growth is that it increases by pouring itself out rather than by drawing from the outside—by giving, not by taking. Sacrifice, then, in its basic sense, is a joyful act; the Logos pours Himself out to create a world and, seeing the struggle of His soul, is satisfied.[229]

But the word has come to be associated with suffering, and in all religious rites of sacrifice some suffering, if only that of a trivial loss to the sacrificer, is present. It[Pg 211] is well to understand how this change has come about, so that when the word "sacrifice" is used the instinctive connotation is one of pain.

But the word has come to be linked with suffering, and in all religious rituals of sacrifice, some form of suffering—however minor for the person making the sacrifice—is involved. It[Pg 211] is important to recognize how this shift has occurred so that when the word "sacrifice" is mentioned, the immediate association is one of pain.

The explanation is seen when we turn from the manifesting Life to the forms in which it is embodied, and look at the question of sacrifice from the side of the forms. While the life of Life is in giving, the life, or persistence, of form is in taking, for the form is wasted as it is exercised, it is diminished as it is exerted. If the form is to continue, it must draw fresh material from outside itself in order to repair its losses, else will it waste and vanish away. The form must grasp, keep, build into itself what it has grasped, else it cannot persist; and the law of growth of the form is to take and assimilate that which the wider universe supplies. As the consciousness identifies itself with the form, regarding the form as itself, sacrifice takes on a painful aspect; to give, to surrender, to lose what has been acquired, is felt to undermine the persistence of the form, and thus the Law of Sacrifice becomes a law of pain instead of a law of joy.[Pg 212]

The explanation becomes clear when we shift our focus from the life that manifests to the forms it takes, examining the concept of sacrifice from the perspective of these forms. While the essence of life thrives on giving, the essence of form relies on taking, since a form deteriorates with use and diminishes with exertion. For a form to endure, it needs to draw new material from outside itself to replenish what it has lost; otherwise, it will waste away and disappear. The form must seize, retain, and incorporate what it has taken in; if it doesn't, it cannot sustain itself. The principle of growth in a form involves taking and assimilating what the broader universe provides. When consciousness aligns itself with the form, identifying the form as part of itself, sacrifice starts to feel painful; giving up, surrendering, or losing what has been gained seems to threaten the survival of the form. As a result, the Law of Sacrifice transforms from a principle of joy into a principle of pain.[Pg 212]

Man had to learn by the constant breaking up of forms, and the pain involved in the breaking, that he must not identify himself with the wasting and changing forms, but with the growing persistent life, and he was taught his lesson not only by external nature, but by the deliberate lessons of the Teachers who gave him religions.

Man had to learn through the ongoing breakdown of forms, and the pain that came with it, that he shouldn't identify himself with these decaying and changing forms, but with the enduring and evolving life. He was taught this lesson not just by the natural world, but also by the intentional teachings of the Guides who provided him with religions.

We can trace in the religions of the world four great stages of instruction in the Law of Sacrifice. First, man was taught to sacrifice part of his material possession in order to gain increased material prosperity, and sacrifices were made in charity to men and in offerings to Deities, as we may read in the scriptures of the Hindus, the Zoroastrians, the Hebrews, indeed all the world over. The man gave up something he valued to insure future prosperity to himself, his family, his community, his nation. He sacrificed in the present to gain in the future. Secondly, came a lesson a little harder to learn; instead of physical prosperity and worldly good, the fruit to be gained by sacrifice was celestial bliss.[Pg 213] Heaven was to be won, happiness was to be enjoyed on the other side of death—such was the reward for sacrifices made during the life led on earth.

We can see four major stages of teaching about the Law of Sacrifice in the religions of the world. First, people learned to give up part of their possessions to achieve greater material wealth, making sacrifices out of charity to others and offerings to deities, as we find in the scriptures of Hindus, Zoroastrians, Hebrews, and many others around the globe. A person would give up something they cherished to ensure future prosperity for themselves, their family, their community, and their nation. They sacrificed in the present to gain benefits in the future. Second, a slightly tougher lesson came; instead of seeking physical wealth and worldly benefits, the reward for sacrifice shifted to heavenly bliss. Heaven was to be earned, and happiness would be enjoyed after death—this was the benefit of sacrifices made during life on earth.

A considerable step forward was made when a man learned to give up the things for which his body craved for the sake of a distant good which he could not see nor demonstrate. He learned to surrender the visible for the invisible, and in so doing rose in the scale of being; for so great is the fascination of the visible and the tangible, that if a man be able to surrender them for the sake of an unseen world in which he believes, he has acquired much strength and has made a long step towards the realisation of that unseen world. Over and over again martyrdom has been endured, obloquy has been faced, man has learned to stand alone, bearing all that his race could pour upon him of pain, misery, and shame, looking to that which is beyond the grave. True, there still remains in this a longing for celestial glory, but it is no small thing to be able to stand alone on earth and rest on spiritual companionship, to cling firmly[Pg 214] to the inner life when the outer is all torture.

A significant advancement occurred when a man learned to give up the things his body craved for the sake of a distant good that he couldn't see or prove. He learned to let go of the visible for the invisible, and by doing so, he elevated himself; for the draw of the visible and tangible is so strong that if a person can relinquish them for an unseen world he believes in, he gains considerable strength and takes a big step toward realizing that unseen world. Time and time again, people have endured martyrdom, faced slander, and learned to stand alone, enduring all the pain, misery, and shame that humanity can throw at them, while looking towards what lies beyond the grave. It's true that there still exists a yearning for heavenly glory, but it's no small feat to stand alone on Earth and find comfort in spiritual companionship, to hold on tightly to the inner life when the outer world is filled with suffering.

The third lesson came when a man, seeing himself as part of a greater life, was willing to sacrifice himself for the good of the whole, and so became strong enough to recognise that sacrifice was right, that a part, a fragment, a unit in the sum total of life, should subordinate the part to the whole, the fragment to the totality. Then he learned to do right, without being affected by the outcome to his own person, to do duty, without wishing for result to himself, to endure because endurance was right not because it would be crowned, to give because gifts were due to humanity not because they would be repaid by the Lord. The hero-soul thus trained was ready for the fourth lesson: that sacrifice of all the separated fragment possesses is to be offered because the Spirit is not really separate but is part of the divine Life, and knowing no difference, feeling no separation, the man pours himself forth as part of the Life Universal, and in the expression of that Life he shares the joy of his Lord.[Pg 215]

The third lesson came when a man, recognizing that he is part of something bigger, was willing to sacrifice himself for the good of the whole. He became strong enough to understand that sacrifice was necessary—that a part, a piece, an individual within the totality of life should prioritize the whole over the part. He then learned to do what was right without being affected by the outcome for himself, to fulfill his duty without seeking personal gain, to endure simply because endurance was the right thing to do, not because it would bring him recognition, to give because it was owed to humanity rather than expecting repayment from the divine. The hero who trained in this way was then ready for the fourth lesson: that the sacrifice of everything the separated individual possesses should be offered because the Spirit is not truly separate but part of the divine Life. Understanding this unity, feeling no separation, the man freely shares himself as part of the Universal Life, and in expressing that Life, he experiences the joy of his Creator.[Pg 215]

It is in the three earlier stages that the pain-aspect of sacrifice is seen. The first meets but small sufferings; in the second the physical life and all that earth has to give may be sacrificed; the third is the great time of testing, of trying, of the growth and evolution of the human soul. For in that stage duty may demand all in which life seems to consist, and the man, still identified in feeling with the form, though knowing himself theoretically to transcend it, finds that all he feels as life is demanded of him, and questions: "If I let this go, what then will remain?" It seems as though consciousness itself would cease with this surrender, for it must loose its hold on all it realises, and it sees nothing to grasp on the other side. An over-mastering conviction, an imperious voice, call on him to surrender his very life. If he shrinks back, he must go on in the life of sensation, the life of the intellect, the life of the world, and as he has the joys he dared not resign, he finds a constant dissatisfaction, a constant craving, a constant regret and lack of pleasure in the world, and he realises the[Pg 216] truth of the saying of the Christ that "he that will save his life shall lose it,"[230] and that the life that was loved and clung to is only lost at last. Whereas if he risks all in obedience to the voice that summons, if he throws away his life, then in losing it, he finds it unto life eternal,[231] and he discovers that the life he surrendered was only death in life, that all he gave up was illusion, and that he found reality. In that choice the metal of the soul is proved, and only the pure gold comes forth from the fiery furnace, where life seemed to be surrendered but where life was won. And then follows the joyous discovery that the life thus won is won for all, not for the separated self, that the abandoning of the separated self has meant the realising of the Self in man, and that the resignation of the limit which alone seemed to make life possible has meant the pouring out into myriad forms, an undreamed vividness and fulness, "the power of an endless life."[232]

It is in the first three stages that the painful side of sacrifice becomes clear. The first involves minor sufferings; in the second, one may give up their physical life and everything earthly has to offer; the third is a significant period of testing, challenge, and the growth and evolution of the human soul. During this stage, duty may require everything life seems to consist of, and the person, still emotionally tied to their form, though theoretically understanding they transcend it, realizes that all they perceive as life is being asked of them and wonders, "If I let this go, what will remain?" It feels as though consciousness itself would end with this surrender, as it has to release its grip on everything it understands, and it sees nothing to hold onto on the other side. A powerful conviction, a commanding voice, urges them to give up their very life. If they pull back, they must continue in the existence of sensation, intellect, and worldly life, and although they enjoy pleasures they were afraid to let go of, they find ongoing dissatisfaction, endless craving, constant regret, and a lack of enjoyment in the world, realizing the truth of the saying from Christ that "whoever wants to save their life will lose it," and that the life they loved and clung to ultimately slips away. However, if they risk everything in response to the voice that calls them, if they let go of their life, then in losing it, they find it for eternal life, and they realize that the life they gave up was merely death in life, that all they released was an illusion, and that they discovered reality. In that choice, the essence of the soul is tested, and only pure gold emerges from the fiery furnace, where it seemed life was given up but where life was truly gained. Then comes the joyful realization that the life gained is for all, not just the individual self, that the letting go of the individual self has led to recognizing the Self in humanity, and that the relinquishing of the limits that once seemed to make life possible has resulted in an outpouring into countless forms, an unimaginable vibrancy and fullness, "the power of an endless life."

Such is an outline of the Law of[Pg 217] Sacrifice, based on the primary Sacrifice of the Logos, that Sacrifice of which all other sacrifices are reflexions.

Such is an outline of the Law of[Pg 217] Sacrifice, based on the primary Sacrifice of the Logos, that Sacrifice of which all other sacrifices are reflections.

We have seen how the man Jesus, the Hebrew disciple, laid down His body in glad surrender that a higher Life might descend and become embodied in the form He thus willingly sacrificed, and how by that act He became a Christ of full stature, to be the Guardian of Christianity, and to pour out His life into the great religion founded by the Mighty One with whom the sacrifice had identified Him. We have seen the Christ-Soul passing through the great Initiations—born as a little child, stepping down into the river of the world's sorrows, with the waters of which he must be baptised into his active ministry, transfigured on the Mount, led to the scene of his last combat, and triumphing over death. We have now to see in what sense he is an atonement, how in the Christ-life the Law of Sacrifice finds a perfect expression.

We have seen how Jesus, the Hebrew disciple, willingly gave up His body so that a greater Life could come down and take form in the body He sacrificed. Through this act, He became a fully realized Christ, designated as the Guardian of Christianity, pouring His life into the great religion founded by the Mighty One with whom He identified through His sacrifice. We have observed the Christ-Soul going through significant Initiations—born as a small child, entering the river of the world's sorrows, needing to be baptized by its waters for His active ministry, transformed on the Mount, led to the place of His final struggle, and ultimately triumphing over death. Now, we must consider in what way He represents atonement and how the Law of Sacrifice is perfectly expressed in the Christ-life.

The beginning of what may be called the ministry of the Christ come to manhood is in that intense and permanent[Pg 218] sympathy with the world's sorrows which is typified by the stepping down into the river. From that time forward the life must be summed up in the phrase, "He went about doing good;" for those who sacrifice the separated life to be a channel of the divine Life, can have no interest in this world save the helping of others. He learns to identify himself with the consciousness of those around him, to feel as they feel, think as they think, enjoy as they enjoy, suffer as they suffer, and thus he brings into his daily waking life that sense of unity with others which he experiences in the higher realms of being. He must develop a sympathy which vibrates in perfect harmony with the many-toned chord of human life, so that he may link in himself the human and the divine lives, and become a mediator between heaven and earth.

The start of what we might call Christ's ministry as an adult is marked by a deep and lasting sympathy for the world's struggles, symbolized by His stepping into the river. From that point on, His life can be summed up with the phrase, "He went about doing good;" because those who give up a separate life to be a channel for the divine life have no interests in this world other than helping others. He learns to connect with the feelings of those around Him, to empathize with their thoughts, share in their joys, endure their sufferings, and in doing so, He brings into His daily life a sense of unity with others that He experiences in higher states of being. He must cultivate a sympathy that resonates in perfect harmony with the diverse experiences of human life, allowing Him to bridge the gap between the human and the divine, becoming a mediator between heaven and earth.

Power is now manifested in him, for the Spirit is resting on him, and he begins to stand out in the eyes of men as one of those who are able to help their younger brethren to tread the path of life. As they gather round him, they feel the power that[Pg 219] comes out from him, the divine Life in the accredited Son of the Highest. The souls that are hungry come to him and he feeds them with the bread of life; the diseased with sin approach him, and he heals them with the living word which cures the sickness and makes whole the soul; the blind with ignorance draw nigh him, and he opens their eyes by the light of his wisdom. It is the chief mark in his ministry that the lowest and the poorest, the most desperate and the most degraded, feel in approaching him no wall of separation, feel as they throng around him welcome and not repulsion; for there radiates from him a love that understands and that can therefore never wish to repel. However low the soul may be, he never feels the Christ-Soul as standing above him but rather as standing beside him, treading with human feet the ground he also treads; yet as filled with some strange uplifting power that raises him upwards and fills him also with new impulse and fresh inspiration.

Power now shines through him, because the Spirit rests on him, and he starts to stand out to people as someone who can help others find their way in life. As they gather around him, they can feel the strength that comes from him, the divine Life in the acknowledged Son of the Most High. Those who are spiritually hungry come to him, and he nourishes them with the bread of life; those troubled by sin approach him, and he heals them with the living word that cures their ailments and restores their souls; the ignorant draw near to him, and he enlightens them with his wisdom. A significant aspect of his ministry is that the least and the most vulnerable, the most desperate and the most marginalized, sense no barrier when they come to him; instead, as they crowd around him, they feel welcome and accepted rather than pushed away, because a love radiates from him that understands and never seeks to reject. No matter how low a person may be, he perceives the Christ-Soul not as above him but alongside him, walking with human feet on the same ground, yet filled with a unique uplifting power that elevates him and inspires new energy and fresh ideas.

Thus he lives and labours, a true Saviour of men, until the time comes when he[Pg 220] must learn another lesson, losing for awhile his consciousness of that divine Life of which his own has been becoming ever more and more the expression. And this lesson is that the true centre of divine Life lies within and not without. The Self has its centre within each human soul—truly is "the centre everywhere," for Christ is in all, and God in Christ—and no embodied life, nothing "out of the Eternal"[233] can help him in his direst need. He has to learn that the true unity of Father and Son is to be found within and not without, and this lesson can only come in uttermost isolation, when he feels forsaken by the God outside himself. As this trial approaches, he cries out to those who are nearest to him to watch with him through his hour of darkness; and then, by the breaking of every human sympathy, the failing of every human love, he finds himself thrown back on the life of the divine Spirit, and cries out to his Father, feeling himself in conscious union with Him, that the cup may pass away. Having stood alone, save for that divine[Pg 221] Helper, he is worthy to face the last ordeal, where the God without him vanishes, and only the God within is left. "My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?" rings out the bitter cry of startled love and fear. The last loneliness descends on him, and he feels himself forsaken and alone. Yet never is the Father nearer to the Son than at the moment when the Christ-Soul feels himself forsaken, for as he thus touches the lowest depth of sorrow, the hour of his triumph begins to dawn. For now he learns that he must himself become the God to whom he cries, and by feeling the last pang of separation he finds the eternal unity, he feels the fount of life is within, and knows himself eternal.

So he lives and works, a true Savior of humanity, until the time comes when he[Pg 220] must learn another lesson, temporarily losing his awareness of that divine Life, which he has increasingly expressed. This lesson is that the true core of divine Life is found within, not outside. The Self has its center within each human soul—truly is "the center everywhere," for Christ is in all, and God in Christ—and no physical existence, nothing "out of the Eternal"[233] can support him in his deepest need. He must learn that the true unity of Father and Son is found within, not without, and this lesson can only come in complete isolation, when he feels abandoned by the God outside himself. As this trial nears, he cries out to those closest to him to stay with him through his time of darkness; and then, through the breaking of every human connection and the waning of every human love, he finds himself relying solely on the divine Spirit, and cries out to his Father, feeling a conscious connection with Him, asking that the cup may be taken away. Having stood alone, except for that divine[Pg 221] Helper, he is ready to face the final trial, where the God outside him disappears, and only the God within remains. "My God, my God, why have You forsaken me?" resonates the painful cry of startled love and fear. The final loneliness falls upon him, and he feels abandoned and isolated. Yet the Father is never closer to the Son than in the moment when the Christ-Soul feels forsaken, for as he hits the lowest point of sorrow, the hour of his triumph begins to rise. For now he learns that he must become the God to whom he cries, and by experiencing the last pang of separation, he discovers the eternal unity, senses that the source of life is within, and knows himself to be eternal.

None can become fully a Saviour of men nor sympathise perfectly with all human suffering, unless he has faced and conquered pain and fear and death unaided, save by the aid he draws from the God within him. It is easy to suffer when there is unbroken consciousness between the higher and the lower; nay, suffering is not, while that consciousness remains[Pg 222] unbroken, for the light of the higher makes darkness in the lower impossible, and pain is not pain when borne in the smile of God. There is a suffering that men have to face, that every Saviour of man must face, where darkness is on the human consciousness, and never a glimmer of light comes through; he must know the pang of the despair felt by the human soul when there is darkness on every side, and the groping consciousness cannot find a hand to clasp. Into that darkness every Son of Man goes down, ere he rises triumphant; that bitterest experience is tasted by every Christ, ere he is "able to save them to the uttermost"[234] who seek the Divine through him.

No one can fully become a Savior of humanity or perfectly empathize with all human suffering unless they have faced and overcome pain, fear, and death on their own, relying only on the strength from the God within them. It's easy to endure suffering when there’s a clear connection between the higher self and the lower self; in fact, suffering doesn't exist as long as that connection remains intact, because the light from the higher self makes darkness in the lower self impossible, and pain doesn't feel like pain when experienced in the presence of God. There is a suffering that everyone must confront, and every Savior of humanity must confront, where darkness shrouds human consciousness, leaving no hint of light; they must feel the deep despair in the human soul when surrounded by darkness and find no hand to hold. Every Son of Man must descend into that darkness before rising victorious; that harshest experience is faced by every Christ before they become "able to save them to the uttermost" who seek the Divine through them.

Such a one has become truly divine, a Saviour of men, and he takes up the world-work for which all this has been the preparation. Into him must pour all the forces that make against man, in order that in him they may be changed into forces that help. Thus he becomes one of the Peace-centres of the world, which transmute the forces of combat that would[Pg 223] otherwise crush man. For the Christs of the world are these Peace-centres into which pour all warring forces, to be changed within them and then poured out as forces that work for harmony.

Such a person has become truly divine, a Savior of humanity, and he takes on the global mission for which all this has been preparation. All the forces that oppose humanity must flow into him so that they can be transformed into forces that support. This way, he becomes one of the Peace centers of the world, converting the combat forces that would otherwise overwhelm humanity. The Christs of the world are these Peace centers where all conflicting forces converge, are transformed within them, and then released as forces that promote harmony.

Part of the sufferings of the Christ not yet perfect lies in this harmonising of the discord-making forces in the world. Although a Son, he yet learns by suffering and is thus "made perfect."[235] Humanity would be far more full of combat and rent with strife were it not for the Christ-disciples living in its midst, and harmonising many of the warring forces into peace.

Part of the sufferings of Christ that are not yet complete involves bringing together the conflicting forces in the world. Even though he is a Son, he still learns through suffering and is "made perfect." Humanity would be much more conflicted and torn apart by strife if it weren't for the Christ-followers living among us, who help to unite many of these warring forces into peace.[235]

When it is said that the Christ suffers "for men," that His strength replaces their weakness, His purity their sin, His wisdom their ignorance, a truth is spoken; for the Christ so becomes one with men that they share with Him and He with them. There is no substitution of Him for them, but the taking of their lives into His, and the pouring of His life into theirs. For, having risen to the plane of unity, He is able to share all He has gained, to give[Pg 224] all He has won. Standing above the plane of separateness and looking down at the souls immersed in separateness, He can reach each while they cannot reach each other. Water can flow from above into many pipes, open to the reservoir though closed as regards each other, and so He can send His life into each soul. Only one condition is needed in order that a Christ may share His strength with a younger brother: that in the separated life the human consciousness will open itself to the divine, will show itself receptive of the offered life, and take the freely outpoured gift. For so reverent is God to that Spirit which is Himself in man, that He will not even pour into the human soul a flood of strength and life unless that soul is willing to receive it. There must be an opening from below as well as an outpouring from above, the receptiveness of the lower nature as well as the willingness of the higher to give. That is the link between the Christ and the man; that is what the churches have called the outpouring of "divine grace"; that is what is meant by the "faith" necessary to make the grace[Pg 225] effective. As Giordano Bruno once put it—the human soul has windows, and can shut those windows close. The sun outside is shining, the light is unchanging; let the windows be opened and the sunlight must stream in. The light of God is beating against the windows of every human soul, and when the windows are thrown open, the soul becomes illuminated. There is no change in God, but there is a change in man; and man's will may not be forced, else were the divine Life in him blocked in its due evolution.

When we say that Christ suffers "for humanity," that His strength takes the place of their weakness, His purity replaces their sin, and His wisdom counters their ignorance, we speak a truth; Christ becomes so connected with humanity that they share in Him and He in them. It’s not about Him substituting Himself for them, but about embracing their lives into His and pouring His life into theirs. Having ascended to a state of unity, He is able to share everything He’s gained, giving all He has won. From a higher perspective, He looks down at souls caught in separateness and can reach each one individually, even when they can’t reach one another. Water can flow from above into multiple pipes; while they might be sealed off from each other, they are open to the source, and similarly, He can send His life into each soul. There's only one condition needed for Christ to share His strength with someone seeking it: that in the separated state, a person’s consciousness must open itself to the divine, show it’s receptive to the offered life, and accept the freely given gift. God respects the spirit of Himself within humanity so deeply that He won’t pour a flood of strength and life into a human soul unless that soul is open to receive it. There needs to be an opening from below, as well as an outpouring from above—the lower nature must be receptive and the higher willing to give. This is the connection between Christ and humanity; this is what churches refer to as the outpouring of "divine grace"; this is what is meant by the "faith" necessary to make grace effective. As Giordano Bruno once put it—the human soul has windows that can be shut tight. The sun shines outside, and its light doesn’t change; if the windows are opened, sunlight will come in. The light of God knocks against the windows of every human soul, and when those windows are thrown open, the soul becomes illuminated. There’s no change in God, but there is change in humanity; and the will of man cannot be forced, or else the divine life within him will be hindered in its natural evolution.

Thus in every Christ that rises, all humanity is lifted a step higher, and by His wisdom the ignorance of the whole world is lessened. Each man is less weak because of His strength, which pours out over all humanity and enters the separated soul. Out of that doctrine, seen narrowly, and therefore mis-seen, grew the idea of the vicarious Atonement as a legal transaction between God and man, in which Jesus took the place of the sinner. It was not understood that One who had touched that height was verily one with all His brethren; identity of nature was[Pg 226] mistaken for a personal substitution, and thus the spiritual truth was lost in the harshness of a judicial exchange.

So, with every Christ that rises, all of humanity is lifted a little higher, and through His wisdom, the ignorance of the entire world is diminished. Each person becomes less weak because of His strength, which flows out to all of humanity and reaches the separate soul. From that narrow understanding of the doctrine, which was therefore misunderstood, the concept of vicarious Atonement emerged as a legal transaction between God and humanity, where Jesus took the place of the sinner. It wasn't realized that One who reached that height was truly one with all His siblings; the identity of nature was mistaken for a personal substitution, and as a result, the spiritual truth was lost in the rigidity of a judicial exchange.

"Then he comes to a knowledge of his place in the world, of his function in nature—to be a Saviour and to make atonement for the sins of the people. He stands in the inner Heart of the world, the Holy of Holies, as a High Priest of Humanity. He is one with all his brethren, not by a vicarious substitution, but by the unity of a common life. Is any sinful? he is sinful in them, that his purity may purge them. Is any sorrowful? in them he is the man of sorrows; every broken heart breaks his, in every pierced heart his heart is pierced. Is any glad? in them he is joyous, and pours out his bliss. Is any craving? in them he is feeling want that he may fill them with his utter satisfaction. He has everything, and because it is his it is theirs. He is perfect; then they are perfect with him. He is strong; who then can be weak, since he is in them? He climbed to his high place that he might pour out to all below him, and he lives in order that all may share his life. He lifts[Pg 227] the whole world with him as he rises, the path is easier for all men, because he has trodden it.

"Then he realizes his role in the world and his purpose in nature—to be a Savior and to make amends for the people's sins. He stands in the inner Heart of the world, the Holy of Holies, as a High Priest of Humanity. He is one with all his brothers and sisters, not by stepping in for them, but through the shared experience of life. If someone has sinned, he feels that sin to cleanse them. If someone is sorrowful, he embodies their sorrow; every broken heart breaks his, and every pierced heart pierces his. If someone is joyful, he shares in their joy and spreads his happiness. If someone feels a craving, he experiences that need so he can fill them with his complete satisfaction. He possesses everything, and because it belongs to him, it belongs to them too. He is perfect; therefore, they are perfect alongside him. He is strong; so who can be weak, since he is within them? He ascended to his high position to share with everyone below him, and he lives so all can share in his life. He lifts the entire world with him as he rises, making the path easier for all people because he has walked it."

"Every son of man may become such a manifested Son of God, such a Saviour of the world. In each such Son is 'God manifest in the flesh,'[236] the atonement that aids all mankind, the living power that makes all things new. Only one thing is needed to bring that power into manifested activity in any individual soul; the soul must open the door and let Him in. Even He, all-permeating, cannot force His way against His brother's will; the human will can hold its own alike against God and man, and by the law of evolution it must voluntarily associate itself with divine action, and not be broken into sullen submission. Let the will throw open the door, and the life will flood the soul. While the door is closed it will only gently breathe through it its unutterable fragrance, that the sweetness of that fragrance may win, where the barrier may not be forced by strength.

Every person can become a true Son of God, a Savior of the world. In each of these individuals is 'God manifest in the flesh,'[236] the atonement that supports all humanity, the living power that makes everything new. To bring that power into action within any single soul, only one thing is needed: the soul must open the door and let Him in. Even He, who is everywhere, cannot push His way past someone's will; the human will can stand firm against both God and man, and by the law of evolution, it must willingly join with divine action, rather than being forced into reluctant submission. If the will opens the door, life will pour into the soul. While the door remains closed, it will only softly breathe its indescribable fragrance through it, so that the sweetness of that fragrance may persuade, where strength cannot break through the barrier.

"This it is, in part, to be a Christ; but[Pg 228] how can mortal pen mirror the immortal, or mortal words tell of that which is beyond the power of speech? Tongue may not utter, the unillumined mind may not grasp, that mystery of the Son who has become one with the Father, carrying in His bosom the sons of men."[237]

"This is part of what it means to be a Christ; but[Pg 228] how can a human pen capture the eternal, or human words describe what is beyond expression? The tongue cannot speak, and the unseeing mind cannot comprehend, the mystery of the Son who has become one with the Father, carrying in His heart the children of humanity."[237]

Those who would prepare to rise to such a life in the future must begin even now to tread in the lower life the path of the Shadow of the Cross. Nor should they doubt their power to rise, for to do so is to doubt the God within them. "Have faith in yourself," is one of the lessons that comes from the higher view of man, for that faith is really in the God within. There is a way by which the shadow of the Christ-life may fall on the common life of man, and that is by doing every act as a sacrifice, not for what it will bring to the doer but for what it will bring to others, and, in the daily common life of small duties, petty actions, narrow interests, by changing the motive and thus changing all. Not one thing in the outer life need[Pg 229] necessarily be varied; in any life sacrifice may be offered, amid any surroundings God may be served. Evolving spirituality is marked not by what a man does, but by how he does it; not in the circumstances, but in the attitude of a man towards them, lies the opportunity of growth. "And indeed this symbol of the cross may be to us as a touchstone to distinguish the good from the evil in many of the difficulties of life. 'Only those actions through which shines the light of the cross are worthy of the life of the disciple,' says one of the verses in a book of occult maxims; and it is interpreted to mean that all that the aspirant does should be prompted by the fervour of self-sacrificing love. The same thought appears in a later verse: 'When one enters the path, he lays his heart upon the cross; when the cross and the heart have become one, then hath he reached the goal.' So, perchance, we may measure our progress by watching whether selfishness or self-sacrifice is dominant in our lives."[238][Pg 230]

Those who want to prepare for this kind of life in the future must start now by following the path of the Shadow of the Cross in their current lives. They shouldn't doubt their ability to rise, because doubting is to doubt the God within them. "Have faith in yourself," is one of the lessons that comes from a higher perspective on humanity, as that faith is truly faith in the God within. There is a way for the shadow of the Christ-life to touch the everyday lives of people, and that is by performing every action as a sacrifice—not for what it will bring to the doer but for what it will bring to others. In the daily routine of small duties, minor actions, and narrow interests, changing the motive changes everything. Nothing in the outer life needs to change; sacrifices can be offered and God can be served in any situation. Growing spiritually is defined not by what a person does, but by how they do it; the opportunity for growth lies not in the circumstances, but in a person's attitude towards them. "This symbol of the cross can serve as a touchstone to distinguish good from evil in many of life's challenges. 'Only those actions illuminated by the light of the cross are worthy of a disciple's life,' says one of the verses in a book of occult maxims, meaning that everything the seeker does should be driven by self-sacrificing love. The same idea is echoed in a later verse: 'When one embarks on the path, they lay their heart upon the cross; when the cross and the heart become one, then they have reached the goal.' So perhaps we can gauge our progress by observing whether selfishness or self-sacrifice predominates in our lives."[238][Pg 230]

Every life which begins thus to shape itself is preparing the cave in which the Child-Christ shall be born, and the life shall become a constant at-one-ment, bringing the divine more and more into the human. Every such life shall grow into the life of a "beloved Son," and shall have in it the glory of the Christ. Every man may work in that direction by making every act and power a sacrifice, until the gold is purged from the dross, and only the pure ore remains.

Every life that starts to take shape this way is creating the space where the Child-Christ will be born, allowing for a continuous connection that brings the divine closer to the human. Each of these lives will evolve into the life of a "beloved Son" and will carry the glory of Christ within it. Anyone can move in that direction by turning every action and ability into a sacrifice, until the gold is separated from the impurities, leaving only the pure metal behind.


Chapter 8.

RESURRECTION AND ASCENSION.

The doctrines of the Resurrection and Ascension of Christ also form part of the Lesser Mysteries, being integral portions of "The Solar Myth," and of the life-story of the Christ in man.

The beliefs in the Resurrection and Ascension of Christ are also part of the Lesser Mysteries, being essential parts of "The Solar Myth" and the life story of Christ within each individual.

As regards Christ Himself they have their historical basis in the facts of His continuing to teach His apostles after His physical death, and of His appearance in the Greater Mysteries as Hierophant after His direct instructions had ceased, until Jesus took His place. In the mythic tales the resurrection of the hero and his glorification invariably formed the conclusion of his death-story; and in the Mysteries, the body of the candidate was always thrown into a death-like trance, during which he, as a liberated soul,[Pg 232] travelled through the invisible world, returning and reviving the body after three days. And in the life-story of the individual, who is becoming a Christ, we shall find, as we study it, that the dramas of the Resurrection and Ascension are repeated.

As for Christ Himself, their historical basis lies in the facts of His continuing to teach His apostles after His physical death, and His appearance in the Greater Mysteries as Hierophant after His direct teachings had ended, until Jesus took over. In the mythic stories, the hero's resurrection and glorification always marked the end of his death story; and in the Mysteries, the candidate's body was always put into a death-like trance, during which he, as a liberated soul, traveled through the unseen world, returning and reviving the body after three days. In the life story of the individual who is becoming a Christ, we will find, as we study it, that the dramas of Resurrection and Ascension are repeated.

But before we can intelligently follow that story, we must master the outlines of the human constitution, and understand the natural and spiritual bodies of man. "There is a natural body, and there is a spiritual body."[239]

But before we can fully grasp that story, we need to understand the basics of human nature and the physical and spiritual aspects of a person. "There is a natural body, and there is a spiritual body."[239]

There are still some uninstructed people who regard man as a mere duality, made up of "soul" and "body." Such people use the words "soul" and "spirit" as synonyms, and speak indifferently of "soul and body" or "spirit and body," meaning that man is composed of two constituents, one of which perishes at death, while the other survives. For the very simple and ignorant this rough division is sufficient, but it will not enable us to understand the mysteries of the Resurrection and Ascension.[Pg 233]

Some people still see humans as just two parts: "soul" and "body." They use "soul" and "spirit" interchangeably and casually refer to "soul and body" or "spirit and body," suggesting that a person is made up of two parts—one that dies and one that lives on. For those who are very simple or uninformed, this basic division is enough, but it won't help us grasp the deeper meanings of the Resurrection and Ascension.[Pg 233]

Every Christian who has made even a superficial study of the human constitution recognises in it three distinct constituents—Spirit, Soul, and Body. This division is sound, though needing further subdivision for more profound study, and it has been used by S. Paul in his prayer that "your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless."[240] That threefold division is accepted in Christian Theology.

Every Christian who has done even a basic study of human nature recognizes three distinct parts: Spirit, Soul, and Body. This division is solid, though it requires further breakdown for deeper exploration, and it has been referenced by St. Paul in his prayer that "your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless."[240] This threefold division is acknowledged in Christian Theology.

The Spirit itself is really a Trinity, the reflexion and image of the Supreme Trinity, and this we shall study in the following chapter.[241] The true man, the immortal, who is the Spirit, is the Trinity in man. This is life, consciousness, and to this the spiritual body belongs, each aspect of the Trinity having its own Body. The Soul is dual, and comprises the mind and the emotional nature, with its appropriate garments. And the Body is the material instrument of Spirit and Soul. In one Christian view of man he is a twelve-fold being, six modifications forming the spiritual man, and six the natural man; according to another, he[Pg 234] is divisible into fourteen, seven modifications of consciousness and seven corresponding types of form. This latter view is practically identical with that studied by Mystics, and it is usually spoken of as seven-fold, because there are really seven divisions, each being two-fold, having a life-side and a form-side.

The Spirit itself is essentially a Trinity, reflecting and embodying the Supreme Trinity, which we will explore in the next chapter.[241] The true man, the immortal being who is the Spirit, represents the Trinity in humanity. This is life, consciousness, and the spiritual body fits into this framework, with each aspect of the Trinity having its own Body. The Soul is dual, consisting of the mind and emotional nature, along with its corresponding garments. The Body serves as the physical instrument of both Spirit and Soul. In one Christian perspective, a person is a twelve-fold being, with six elements forming the spiritual man and six forming the natural man; in another view, he[Pg 234] can be divided into fourteen, consisting of seven types of consciousness and seven corresponding forms. This latter perspective aligns closely with what Mystics study, often referred to as seven-fold, since there are indeed seven divisions, each with a life-side and a form-side.

These divisions and sub-divisions are somewhat confusing and perplexing to the dull, and hence Origen and Clement, as we have seen,[242] laid great stress on the need for intelligence on the part of all who desired to become Gnostics. After all, those who find them troublesome can leave them on one side, without grudging them to the earnest student, who finds them not only illuminative, but absolutely necessary to any clear understanding of the Mysteries of Life and Man.

These divisions and sub-divisions can be pretty confusing and complicated for those who aren't sharp, which is why Origen and Clement, as we’ve noted,[242] emphasized the importance of intelligence for anyone wanting to be a Gnostic. After all, those who find these concepts annoying are free to ignore them, without holding it against the dedicated student who sees them as not just enlightening but essential for truly understanding the Mysteries of Life and Humanity.

The word Body means a vehicle of consciousness, or an instrument of consciousness; that in which consciousness is carried about, as in a vehicle, or which consciousness uses to contact the external world, as a mechanic uses an instrument.[Pg 235] Or, we may liken it to a vessel, in which consciousness is held, as a jar holds liquid. It is a form used by a life, and we know nothing of consciousness save as connected with such forms. The form may be of rarest, subtlest, materials, may be so diaphanous that we are only conscious of the indwelling life; still it is there, and it is composed of Matter. It may be so dense, that it hides the indwelling life, and we are conscious only of the form; still the life is there, and it is composed of the opposite of Matter—Spirit. The student must study and re-study this fundamental fact—the duality of all manifested existence, the inseparable co-existence of Spirit and Matter in a grain of dust, in the Logos, the God manifested. The idea must become part of him; else must he give up the study of the Lesser Mysteries. The Christ, as God and Man, only shows out on the kosmic scale the same fact of duality that is repeated everywhere in nature. On that original duality everything in the universe is formed.

The word Body refers to a vehicle for consciousness or a tool for consciousness; it’s what consciousness uses to navigate the external world, similar to how a mechanic uses an instrument. Or, we could think of it as a container that holds consciousness, much like a jar holds liquid. It’s a form that life takes, and we only know consciousness in relation to these forms. The form can be made of the rarest, most subtle materials, so transparent that we’re only aware of the life within; yet it’s still there, composed of Matter. It can also be so solid that it conceals the life within, leaving us only aware of the form; yet the life is still present, made of the opposite of Matter—Spirit. The student must study and repeatedly revisit this fundamental fact—the dual nature of all manifested existence, the inseparable coexistence of Spirit and Matter in a grain of dust, in the Logos, the manifested God. This idea must become part of their understanding; otherwise, they should abandon the study of the Lesser Mysteries. Christ, as both God and Man, illustrates this same duality on a cosmic scale, which is reflected everywhere in nature. Everything in the universe is shaped by that original duality.

Man has a "natural body," and this is[Pg 236] made up of four different and separable portions, and is subject to death. Two of these are composed of physical matter, and are never completely separated from each other until death, though a partial separation may be caused by anæsthetics, or by disease. These two may be classed together as the Physical Body. In this the man carries on his conscious activities while he is awake; speaking technically, it is his vehicle of consciousness in the physical world.

Man has a "natural body," and this is[Pg 236] made up of four different and separable parts, which are subject to death. Two of these are made of physical matter and are never completely separated from each other until death, although partial separation can occur due to anesthetics or illness. These two can be grouped together as the Physical Body. In this body, a person carries out their conscious activities while awake; technically speaking, it serves as their vehicle of consciousness in the physical world.

The third portion is the Desire Body, so called because man's feeling and passional nature finds in this its special vehicle. In sleep, the man leaves the physical body, and carries on his conscious activities in this, which functions in the invisible world closest to our visible earth. It is therefore his vehicle of consciousness in the lowest of the super-physical worlds, which is also the first world into which men pass at death.

The third part is the Desire Body, named for the way people's feelings and emotions find their expression here. When someone sleeps, they leave their physical body and continue their conscious activities in this body, which operates in the invisible world nearest to our visible earth. Thus, it serves as their consciousness vehicle in the lowest of the super-physical worlds, which is also the first world that people enter after death.

The fourth portion is the Mental Body, so called because man's intellectual nature, so far as it deals with the concrete, functions in this. It is his vehicle of[Pg 237] consciousness in the second of the super-physical worlds, which is also the second, or lower heavenly world, into which men pass after death, when freed from the world alluded to in the preceding paragraph.

The fourth part is the Mental Body, named for its connection to a person's intellectual nature, as it relates to the concrete. This is the medium of consciousness in the second of the super-physical worlds, which is also the second, or lower heavenly world, that people enter after death, once they are released from the world mentioned in the previous paragraph.

These four portions of his encircling form, made up of the dual physical body, the desire body, and the mental body, form the natural body of which S. Paul speaks.

These four parts of his surrounding form, consisting of the physical body, the desire body, and the mental body, make up the natural body that S. Paul talks about.

This scientific analysis has fallen out of the ordinary Christian teaching, which is vague and confused on this matter. It is not that the churches have never possessed it; on the contrary, this knowledge of the constitution of man formed part of the teachings in the Lesser Mysteries; the simple division into Spirit, Soul, and Body was exoteric, the first rough and ready division given as a foundation. The subdivision as regards the "Body" was made in the course of later instruction, as a preliminary to the training by which the instructor enabled his pupil to separate one vehicle from another, and to use each as a vehicle of consciousness in its appropriate region.[Pg 238]

This scientific analysis has strayed from traditional Christian teaching, which is unclear and muddled on this topic. It's not that the churches have never understood it; on the contrary, this knowledge about the structure of humanity was part of the teachings in the Lesser Mysteries. The basic concept of Spirit, Soul, and Body was publicly taught, serving as a foundational framework. The further breakdown regarding the "Body" came later in the instruction, as an introduction to the training through which the instructor helped the student distinguish between different aspects and use each as a means of consciousness in its specific area.[Pg 238]

This conception should be readily enough grasped. If a man wants to travel on the solid earth, he uses as his vehicle a carriage or a train. If he wants to travel on the liquid seas, he changes his vehicle, and takes a ship. If he wants to travel in the air, he changes his vehicle again and uses a balloon. He is the same man throughout, but he is using three different vehicles, according to the kind of matter he wants to travel in. The analogy is rough and inadequate, but it is not misleading. When a man is busy in the physical world, his vehicle is the physical body, and his consciousness works in and through that body. When he passes into the world beyond the physical, in sleep and at death, his vehicle is the desire body, and he may learn to use this consciously, as he uses the physical consciously. He already uses it unconsciously every day of his life when he is feeling and desiring, as well as every night of his life. When he goes on into the heavenly world after death, his vehicle is the mental body, and this also he is daily using, when he is thinking, and there[Pg 239] would be no thought in the brain were there none in the mental body.

This idea should be easy to understand. If a person wants to travel on solid ground, they use a vehicle like a car or a train. If they want to travel on water, they switch to a boat. If they want to fly, they change their vehicle again and use an airplane. The person remains the same, but they’re using three different types of vehicles based on the medium they want to travel in. The comparison may not be perfect, but it’s clear enough. When someone is active in the physical world, their vehicle is their physical body, and their awareness operates through that body. When they move into a realm beyond the physical, in sleep or after death, their vehicle is the desire body, which they can learn to use intentionally, just as they use their physical body. They unconsciously use it every day through feelings and desires, and all through the night as well. After death, when they enter the spiritual realm, their vehicle becomes the mental body, which they are also using daily when they think; there would be no thoughts in the brain if there weren't any in the mental body.

Man has further "a spiritual body." This is made up of three separable portions, each portion belonging to one of, and separating off, the three Persons in the Trinity of the human Spirit. S. Paul speaks of being "caught up to the third heaven," and of there hearing "unspeakable words which it is not lawful for a man to utter."[243] These different regions of the invisible supernal worlds are known to Initiates, and they are well aware that those who pass beyond the first heaven need the truly spiritual body as their vehicle, and that according to the development of its three divisions is the heaven into which they can penetrate.

Man also has "a spiritual body." This consists of three distinct parts, each part associated with one of the three Persons in the Trinity of the human Spirit. St. Paul mentions being "caught up to the third heaven" and hearing "unspeakable words which it is not lawful for a man to utter."[243] These different areas of the invisible higher worlds are known to those who are initiated, and they understand that individuals who move beyond the first heaven need the truly spiritual body as their means of travel, and that the level of development of its three parts determines which heaven they can access.

The lowest of these three divisions is usually called the Causal Body, for a reason that will be only fully assimilable by those who have studied the teaching of Reincarnation—taught in the Early Church—and who understand that human evolution needs very many successive lives on earth, ere the germinal soul of the[Pg 240] savage can become the perfected soul of the Christ, and then, becoming perfect as the Father in Heaven,[244] can realise the union of the Son with the Father.[245] It is a body that lasts from life to life, and in it all memory of the past is stored. From it come forth the causes that build up the lower bodies. It is the receptacle of human experience, the treasure-house in which all we gather in our lives is stored up, the seat of Conscience, the wielder of the Will.

The lowest of these three divisions is usually called the Causal Body, a name that will only make complete sense to those who have studied the teachings of Reincarnation—taught in the Early Church—and who understand that human evolution requires many successive lives on earth before the primitive soul of the savage can evolve into the perfected soul of Christ, and then, becoming perfect like the Father in Heaven, can realize the union of the Son with the Father. It is a body that persists from life to life, and within it is stored all memory of the past. From it come the causes that form the lower bodies. It is the storehouse of human experience, the treasury in which everything we gather in our lives is kept, the seat of Conscience, and the source of Will.

The second of the three divisions of the spiritual body is spoken of by S. Paul in the significant words: "We have a building of God, an house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens."[246] That is the Bliss Body, the glorified body of the Christ, "the Resurrection Body." It is not a body which is "made with hands," by the working of consciousness in the the lower vehicles; it is not formed by experience, not builded out of the materials gathered by man in his long pilgrimage. It is a body which belongs to the Christ-life,[Pg 241] the life of Initiation; to the divine unfoldment in man; it is builded of God, by the activity of the Spirit, and grows during the whole life or lives of the Initiate, only reaching its perfection at "the Resurrection."

The second of the three parts of the spiritual body is referred to by St. Paul in the meaningful words: "We have a building from God, a house not made by human hands, eternal in the heavens."[246] That is the Bliss Body, the glorified body of Christ, "the Resurrection Body." It is not a body that is "made by human hands," created by the workings of consciousness in the lower forms; it is not shaped by experience, nor is it built from the materials gathered by humans in their long journey. It is a body that belongs to the Christ life,[Pg 241] the life of Initiation; to the divine development in people; it is constructed by God, through the activity of the Spirit, and grows throughout the entire life or lives of the Initiate, only reaching its full form at "the Resurrection."

The third division of the spiritual body is the fine film of subtle matter that separates off the individual Spirit as a Being, and yet permits the interpenetration of all by all, and is thus the expression of the fundamental unity. In the day when the Son Himself shall "be subject unto Him that put all things under Him, that God may be all in all,"[247] this film will be transcended, but for us it remains the highest division of the spiritual body, in which we ascend to the Father, and are united with Him.

The third part of the spiritual body is the thin layer of subtle matter that distinguishes the individual Spirit as a Being, while still allowing for the intermingling of all with each other, thus representing the fundamental unity. On the day when the Son Himself will "be subject to Him who put all things under Him, so that God may be all in all,"[247] this layer will be transcended, but for us, it remains the highest part of the spiritual body, where we rise to the Father and become unified with Him.

Christianity has always recognised the existence of three worlds, or regions, through which a man passes; first, the physical world; secondly, an intermediate state into which he passes at death; thirdly, the heavenly world. These three worlds are universally believed in by[Pg 242] educated Christians; only the uninstructed imagine that a man passes from his death-bed into the final state of beatitude. But there is some difference of opinion as to the nature of the intermediate world. The Roman Catholic names it Purgatory, and believes that every soul passes into it, save that of the Saint, the man who has reached perfection, or that of a man who has died in "mortal sin." The great mass of humanity pass into a purifying region, wherein a man remains for a period varying in length according to the sins he has committed, only passing out of it into the heavenly world when he has become pure. The various communities that are called Protestant vary in their teachings as to details, and mostly repudiate the idea of post mortem purification; but they agree broadly that there is an intermediate state, sometimes spoken of as "Paradise," or as a "waiting period." The heavenly world is almost universally, in modern Christendom, regarded as a final state, with no very definite or general idea as to its nature, or as to the progress or stationary condition of those attaining[Pg 243] to it. In early Christianity this heaven was considered to be, as it really is, a stage in the progress of the soul, re-incarnation in one form or another, the pre-existence of the soul, being then very generally taught. The result was, of course, that the heavenly state was a temporary condition, though often a very prolonged one, lasting for "an age"—as stated in the Greek of the New Testament, the age being ended by the return of the man for the next stage of his continuing life and progress—and not "everlasting," as in the mistranslation of the English authorised version.[248]

Christianity has always recognized the existence of three realms, or stages, that a person goes through: first, the physical world; second, an intermediate state they enter at death; and third, the heavenly realm. Educated Christians universally believe in these three stages; only those who are uninformed think that a person goes straight from their deathbed to eternal bliss. However, there are different opinions about what the intermediate state is like. Roman Catholics call it Purgatory and believe that every soul, except for that of a saint—someone who has achieved perfection—or a person who dies in "mortal sin," goes there. The vast majority of people enter this purifying place, where they stay for varying lengths of time based on the sins they've committed, exiting only once they have become pure and can enter the heavenly realm. Various Protestant communities differ in their detailed teachings and mostly reject the idea of post-mortem purification, but they broadly agree that there is an intermediate state, sometimes referred to as "Paradise" or a "waiting period." The heavenly realm is generally viewed in modern Christianity as a final state, with no clear or widely accepted understanding of its nature, or whether those who reach it continue to progress or remain stationary. In early Christianity, heaven was thought of, as it truly is, as a stage in the soul's journey, with ideas of reincarnation and the pre-existence of the soul being common. As a result, the heavenly state was considered a temporary condition, although often a long one, lasting for "an age"—as noted in the Greek New Testament—ending with the return of the individual for the next phase of their ongoing life and development, and not "everlasting," as mistranslated in the English authorized version.

In order to complete the outline necessary for the understanding of the Resurrection and Ascension, we must see how these various bodies are developed in the higher evolution.

To fully grasp the outline needed for understanding the Resurrection and Ascension, we need to examine how these different aspects are developed in the higher evolution.

The physical body is in a constant[Pg 244] state of flux, its minute particles being continually renewed, so that it is ever building; and as it is composed of the food we eat, the liquids we drink, the air we breathe, and particles drawn from our physical surroundings, both people and things, we can steadily purify it, by choosing its materials well, and thus make it an ever purer vehicle through which to act, receptive of subtler vibrations, responsive to purer desires, to nobler and more elevated thoughts. For this reason all who aspired to attain to the Mysteries were subjected to rules of diet, ablution, &c., and were desired to be very careful as to the people with whom they associated, and the places to which they went.

The physical body is constantly changing, its tiny particles being continuously renewed, so it's always building itself; and since it's made up of the food we eat, the drinks we consume, the air we breathe, and particles from our surroundings, including other people and objects, we can continually purify it by choosing our materials wisely. This way, we make it a clearer vessel to act through, more open to subtle vibrations, and responsive to purer desires and more elevated thoughts. For this reason, everyone who aimed to understand the Mysteries had to follow dietary rules, practice cleanliness, and be very careful about the people they associated with and the places they visited.

The desire body also changes, in similar fashion, but the materials for it are expelled and drawn in by the play of the desires, arising from the feelings, passions, and emotions. If these are coarse, the materials built into the desire body are also coarse, while as these are purified, the desire body grows subtle and becomes very sensitive to the higher influences. In proportion as a man dominates his[Pg 245] lower nature, and becomes unselfish in his wishes, feelings, and emotions, as he makes his love for those around him less selfish and grasping, he is purifying this higher vehicle of consciousness; the result is that when out of the body in sleep he has higher, purer, and more instructive experiences, and when he leaves the physical body at death, he passes swiftly through the intermediate state, the desire body disintegrating with great rapidity, and not delaying him in his onward journey.

The desire body also changes in a similar way, but the materials for it are pushed out and drawn in by the play of desires, which come from feelings, passions, and emotions. If these are rough, the materials that make up the desire body are also rough, while as they become refined, the desire body becomes more delicate and very sensitive to higher influences. As a person gains control over their lower nature and becomes selfless in their wishes, feelings, and emotions, making their love for those around them less selfish and greedy, they are purifying this higher vehicle of consciousness; the result is that when they are out of the body in sleep, they have higher, purer, and more enlightening experiences, and when they leave the physical body at death, they pass quickly through the intermediate state, with the desire body breaking down rapidly, not holding them back in their onward journey.

The mental body is similarly being built now, in this case by thoughts. It will be the vehicle of consciousness in the heavenly world, but is being built now by aspirations, by imagination, reason, judgment, artistic faculties, by the use of all the mental powers. Such as the man makes it, so must he wear it, and the length and richness of his heavenly state depend on the kind of mental body he has built during his life on earth.

The mental body is currently being formed, this time through thoughts. It will serve as the vehicle of consciousness in the spiritual realm, but it's being created now through aspirations, imagination, reason, judgment, artistic abilities, and the use of all mental powers. Just as a person shapes it, they must also embody it, and the depth and richness of their spiritual existence depends on the kind of mental body they have built during their life on earth.

As a man enters the higher evolution, this body comes into independent activity on this side of death, and he gradually[Pg 246] becomes conscious of his heavenly life, even amid the whirl of mundane existence. Then he becomes "the Son of man which is in heaven,"[249] who can speak with the authority of knowledge on heavenly things. When the man begins to live the life of the Son, having passed on to the Path of Holiness, he lives in heaven while remaining on earth, coming into conscious possession and use of this heavenly body. And inasmuch as heaven is not far away from us, but surrounds us on every side, and we are only shut out from it by our incapacity to feel its vibrations, not by their absence; inasmuch as those vibrations are playing upon us at every moment of our lives; all that is needed to be in Heaven is to become conscious of those vibrations. We become conscious of them with the vitalising, the organising, the evolution of this heavenly body, which, being builded out of the heavenly materials, answers to the vibrations of the matter of the heavenly world. Hence the "Son of man" is ever in heaven. But we know that the "Son of man" is a[Pg 247] term applied to the Initiate, not to the Christ risen and glorified but to the Son while he is yet "being made perfect."[250]

As a person evolves to a higher state, their body starts to act independently even before death, and they gradually become aware of their celestial existence, despite the chaos of daily life. They become "the Son of man who is in heaven," able to speak with the authority that comes from understanding heavenly matters. When someone begins to live the life of the Son, having moved on to the Path of Holiness, they inhabit heaven while still on earth, becoming consciously aware and able to utilize this heavenly body. Since heaven isn't far away from us, but surrounds us completely, and we're only kept from it by our inability to sense its vibrations—not because they don't exist; since those vibrations are affecting us at every moment of our lives—what it takes to be in Heaven is simply to recognize those vibrations. We become aware of them through the energizing, organizing, and evolution of this heavenly body, which, made from heavenly materials, resonates with the vibrations of the heavenly realm. Therefore, the "Son of man" is always in heaven. But we understand that the term "Son of man" refers to the Initiate, not to the Christ who is risen and glorified, but to the Son while he is still "being made perfect."

During the stages of evolution that lead up to and include the Probationary Path, the first division of the spiritual body—the Causal Body—develops rapidly, and enables the man, after death, to rise into the second heaven. After the Second Birth, the birth of the Christ in man, begins the building of the Bliss Body "in the heavens." This is the body of the Christ, developing during the days of His service on earth, and, as it develops, the consciousness of the "Son of God" becomes more and more marked, and the coming union with the Father illuminates the unfolding Spirit.

During the stages of evolution that lead up to and include the Probationary Path, the first part of the spiritual body—the Causal Body—grows quickly, allowing a person to ascend to the second heaven after death. The Second Birth, which is the birth of the Christ within a person, marks the beginning of constructing the Bliss Body "in the heavens." This is the body of the Christ, formed during His time on earth, and as it develops, the awareness of the "Son of God" becomes increasingly prominent, with the upcoming union with the Father shining light on the evolving Spirit.

In the Christian Mysteries—as in the ancient Egyptian, Chaldean, and others—there was an outer symbolism which expressed the stages through which the man was passing. He was brought into the chamber of Initiation, and was stretched on the ground with his arms extended, sometimes on a cross of wood,[Pg 248] sometimes merely on the stone floor, in the posture of a crucified man. He was then touched with the thyrsus on the heart—the "spear" of the crucifixion—and, leaving the body, he passed into the worlds beyond, the body falling into a deep trance, the death of the crucified. The body was placed in a sarcophagus of stone, and there left, carefully guarded. Meanwhile the man himself was treading first the strange obscure regions called "the heart of the earth," and thereafter the heavenly mount, where he put on the perfected bliss body, now fully organised as a vehicle of consciousness. In that he returned to the body of flesh, to re-animate it. The cross bearing that body, or the entranced and rigid body, if no cross had been used, was lifted out of the sarcophagus and placed on a sloping surface, facing the east, ready for the rising of the sun on the third day. At the moment that the rays of the sun touched the face, the Christ, the perfected Initiate or Master, re-entered the body, glorifying it by the bliss body He was wearing, changing the body of[Pg 249] flesh by contact with the body of bliss, giving it new properties, new powers, new capacities, transmuting it into His own likeness. That was the Resurrection of the Christ, and thereafter the body of flesh itself was changed, and took on a new nature.

In the Christian Mysteries—as in ancient Egyptian, Chaldean, and other traditions—there was a visible symbolism that represented the stages a person went through. They were taken into the Initiation chamber, laid on the ground with their arms outstretched, sometimes on a wooden cross,[Pg 248] sometimes just on the stone floor, in the position of a crucified person. They were then touched with the thyrsus on the heart—the "spear" of the crucifixion—and, leaving their body, they entered the worlds beyond, while the body fell into a deep trance, representing the death of the crucified. The body was placed in a stone sarcophagus and left there, carefully guarded. Meanwhile, the person was first navigating the strange, obscure regions known as "the heart of the earth," and then the heavenly mountain, where they donned the perfected bliss body, now fully formed as a means of consciousness. In that state, they returned to the physical body to breathe life back into it. The cross bearing that body, or the entranced and rigid body if no cross was used, was lifted out of the sarcophagus and placed on an inclined surface, facing east, in preparation for the sunrise on the third day. The moment the sun's rays touched the face, the Christ, the perfected Initiate or Master, re-entered the body, glorifying it with the bliss body He wore, transforming the physical body by contact with the body of bliss, giving it new properties, new powers, new capacities, and changing it into His own likeness. That was the Resurrection of the Christ, and from then on, the physical body itself was transformed and took on a new nature.

This is why the sun has ever been taken as the symbol of the rising Christ, and why, in Easter hymns, there is constant reference to the rising of the Sun of Righteousness. So also is it written of the triumphant Christ: "I am He that liveth and was dead; and behold, I am alive for evermore, Amen; and have the keys of hell and of death."[251] All the powers of the lower worlds have been taken under the dominion of the Son, who has triumphed gloriously; over Him death no more has power, "He holdeth life and death in His strong hand."[252] He is the risen Christ, the Christ triumphant.

This is why the sun has always been seen as a symbol of the rising Christ, and why, in Easter hymns, there is a constant reference to the rising of the Sun of Righteousness. It is also written about the triumphant Christ: "I am He that liveth and was dead; and behold, I am alive forevermore, Amen; and have the keys of hell and of death."[251] All the powers of the lower worlds are under the control of the Son, who has triumphed gloriously; over Him, death no longer has power, "He holdeth life and death in His strong hand."[252] He is the risen Christ, the triumphant Christ.

The Ascension of the Christ was the Mystery of the third part of the spiritual[Pg 250] body, the putting on of the Vesture of Glory, preparatory to the union of the Son with the Father, of man with God, when the Spirit re-entered the glory it had "before the world was."[253] Then the triple Spirit becomes one, knows itself eternal, and the Hidden God is found. That is imaged in the doctrine of the Ascension, so far as the individual is concerned.

The Ascension of Christ was the Mystery of the third part of the spiritual body, the putting on of the Vesture of Glory, preparing for the union of the Son with the Father, and humanity with God, when the Spirit re-entered the glory it had "before the world was." Then the triple Spirit becomes one, recognizes itself as eternal, and the Hidden God is revealed. This is illustrated in the teaching of the Ascension, particularly in relation to the individual.

The Ascension for humanity is when the whole race has attained the Christ condition, the state of the Son, and that Son becomes one with the Father, and God is all in all. That is the goal, prefigured in the triumph of the Initiate, but reached only when the human race is perfected, and when "the great orphan Humanity" is no longer an orphan, but consciously recognises itself as the Son of God.

The Ascension for humanity is when the entire human race has achieved the Christ state, becoming one with the Father, with God being everything in everyone. That is the goal, foreshadowed in the victory of the Initiate, but only realized when humanity is perfected, and when "the great orphan Humanity" no longer feels like an orphan, but consciously recognizes itself as the Son of God.

Thus studying the doctrines of the Atonement, the Resurrection, and the Ascension, we reach the truths unfolded concerning them in the Lesser Mysteries, and we begin to understand the full truth of the apostolic teaching that Christ was[Pg 251] not a unique personality, but "the first fruits of them that slept,"[254] and that every man was to become a Christ. Not then was the Christ regarded as an external Saviour, by whose imputed righteousness men were to be saved from divine wrath. There was current in the Church the glorious and inspiring teaching that He was but the first fruits of humanity, the model that every man should reproduce in himself, the life that all should share. The Initiates have ever been regarded as these first fruits, the promise of a race made perfect. To the early Christian, Christ was the living symbol of his own divinity, the glorious fruit of the seed he bore in his own heart. Not to be saved by an external Christ, but to be glorified into an inner Christ, was the teaching of esoteric Christianity, of the Lesser Mysteries. The stage of discipleship was to pass into that of Sonship. The life of the Son was to be lived among men till it was closed by the Resurrection, and the glorified Christ became one of the perfected Saviours of the world.[Pg 252]

By studying the concepts of the Atonement, the Resurrection, and the Ascension, we uncover the truths revealed in the Lesser Mysteries, and we start to grasp the full meaning of the apostolic teaching that Christ was not just a unique figure, but "the first fruits of those who have died," and that every person is meant to become a Christ. At that time, Christ was not seen as an external Savior who saves people from divine wrath through his righteousness. Instead, the Church taught that He was merely the first fruits of humanity, the model that every person should emulate, the life that everyone should embody. The Initiates were always viewed as these first fruits, representing the promise of a perfected humanity. For the early Christian, Christ was a living symbol of their own divine nature, the glorious result of the seed they carried in their hearts. The goal wasn’t to be saved by an external Christ, but to become glorified as an inner Christ, which was the teaching of esoteric Christianity and the Lesser Mysteries. The path of discipleship was meant to evolve into the path of Sonship. The life of the Son was to be lived among people until it culminated in the Resurrection, and the glorified Christ became one of the perfected Saviors of the world.

How far greater a Gospel than the one of modern days! Placed beside that grandiose ideal of esoteric Christianity, the exoteric teaching of the churches seems narrow and poor indeed.

How much greater is the Gospel than the one we have today! When compared to that magnificent ideal of esoteric Christianity, the outward teachings of the churches seem narrow and lacking.


Chapter 9.

THE TRINITY.

All fruitful study of the Divine Existence must start from the affirmation that it is One. All the Sages have thus proclaimed It; every religion has thus affirmed It; every philosophy thus posits It—"One only without a second."[255] "Hear, O Israel!" cried Moses, "The Lord our God is one Lord."[256] "To us there is but one God,"[257] declares S. Paul. "There is no God but God," affirms the founder of Islâm, and makes the phrase the symbol of his faith. One Existence unbounded, known in Its fulness only to Itself—the word It seems more reverent and inclusive than He, and is therefore used. That is the Eternal Darkness, out of which is born the Light.[Pg 254]

All meaningful study of the Divine must begin with the belief that it is One. All the Sages have declared this; every religion confirms it; every philosophy asserts it—"One only without a second." [255] "Listen, O Israel!" Moses exclaimed, "The Lord our God is one Lord." [256] "For us, there is only one God," [257] states S. Paul. "There is no God but God," asserts the founder of Islam, making this phrase the symbol of his faith. One infinite Existence, known in Its entirety only to Itself—the term "It" feels more respectful and inclusive than "He," and is therefore used. That represents the Eternal Darkness, from which Light is born.[Pg 254]

But as the Manifested God, the One appears as Three. A Trinity of Divine Beings, One as God, Three as manifested Powers. This also has ever been declared, and the truth is so vital in its relation to man and his evolution that it is one which ever forms an essential part of the Lesser Mysteries.

But as the Manifested God, the One appears as Three. A Trinity of Divine Beings, One as God, Three as manifested Powers. This has always been stated, and the truth is so important in its connection to humanity and its evolution that it is always a crucial part of the Lesser Mysteries.

Among the Hebrews, in consequence of their anthropomorphising tendencies, the doctrine was kept secret, but the Rabbis studied and worshipped the Ancient of Days, from whom came forth the Wisdom, from whom the Understanding—Kether, Chochmah, Binah, these formed the Supreme Trinity, the shining forth in time of the One beyond time. The Book of the Wisdom of Solomon refers to this teaching, making Wisdom a Being. "According to Maurice, 'The first Sephira, who is denominated Kether the Crown, Kadmon the pure Light, and En Soph the Infinite,[258] is the omnipotent[Pg 255] Father of the universe.... The second is the Chochmah, whom we have sufficiently proved, both from sacred and Rabbinical writings, to be the creative Wisdom. The third is the Binah, or heavenly Intelligence, whence the Egyptians had their Cneph, and Plato his Nous Demiurgos. He is the Holy Spirit who ... pervades, animates, and governs this boundless universe.'"[259]

Among the Hebrews, due to their tendency to attribute human characteristics to God, the doctrine was kept secret. However, the Rabbis studied and revered the Ancient of Days, from whom Wisdom emerged, and from whom Understanding came—Kether, Chochmah, Binah; these formed the Supreme Trinity, the manifestation in time of the One who exists beyond time. The Book of the Wisdom of Solomon refers to this teaching, depicting Wisdom as a Being. "According to Maurice, 'The first Sephira, known as Kether the Crown, Kadmon the pure Light, and En Soph the Infinite,[258] is the all-powerful[Pg 255] Father of the universe.... The second is the Chochmah, which we have adequately demonstrated, from both sacred and Rabbinical texts, to be the creative Wisdom. The third is the Binah, or heavenly Intelligence, from which the Egyptians derived their Cneph, and Plato his Nous Demiurgos. He is the Holy Spirit who ... pervades, animates, and governs this limitless universe.'"[259]

The bearing of this doctrine on Christian teaching is indicated by Dean Milman in his History of Christianity. He says: "This Being [the Word or the Wisdom] was more or less distinctly impersonated, according to the more popular or more philosophic, the more material or the more abstract, notions of the age or people. This was the doctrine from the Ganges, or even the shores of the Yellow Sea, to the Ilissus; it was the fundamental principle of the Indian religion and the Indian philosophy; it was the basis of Zoroastrianism; it was pure Platonism; it was the Platonic Judaism of the[Pg 256] Alexandrian school. Many fine passages might be quoted from Philo on the impossibility that the first self-existing Being should become cognisable to the sense of man; and even in Palestine, no doubt, John the Baptist and our Lord Himself spoke no new doctrine, but rather the common sentiment of the more enlightened, when they declared 'that no man had seen God at any time.' In conformity with this principle the Jews, in the interpretation of the older Scriptures, instead of direct and sensible communication from the one great Deity, had interposed either one or more intermediate beings as the channels of communication. According to one accredited tradition alluded to by S. Stephen, the law was delivered 'by the disposition of angels'; according to another this office was delegated to a single angel, sometimes called the Angel of the Law (see Gal. iii. 19); at others the Metatron. But the more ordinary representative, as it were, of God, to the sense and mind of man, was the Memra, or the Divine Word; and it is remarkable that the same appellation[Pg 257] is found in the Indian, the Persian, the Platonic, and the Alexandrian systems. By the Targumists, the earliest Jewish commentators on the Scriptures, this term had been already applied to the Messiah; nor is it necessary to observe the manner in which it has been sanctified by its introduction into the Christian scheme."[260]

The significance of this doctrine in Christian teaching is highlighted by Dean Milman in his History of Christianity. He states: "This Being [the Word or the Wisdom] was represented more or less clearly, based on the more popular or philosophical, more concrete or more abstract, ideas of the time or culture. This was the doctrine that spread from the Ganges to the shores of the Yellow Sea, and to the Ilissus; it was the foundational principle of Indian religion and philosophy; it was the basis of Zoroastrianism; it was pure Platonism; it was the Platonic Judaism of the [Pg 256] Alexandrian school. Numerous insightful passages could be cited from Philo regarding the impossibility of the first self-existing Being being known through human senses; and even in Palestine, John the Baptist and our Lord spoke not of a new doctrine, but rather the shared understanding of the more enlightened people when they claimed 'that no man had seen God at any time.' Following this principle, the Jews, when interpreting older Scriptures, instead of having direct and tangible communication from the one great Deity, introduced one or more intermediary beings as the means of communication. According to a respected tradition mentioned by S. Stephen, the law was given 'by the arrangement of angels'; in another tradition, this role was assigned to a single angel, sometimes referred to as the Angel of the Law (see Gal. iii. 19); at other times as the Metatron. However, the most common representation of God, to human senses and minds, was the Memra, or the Divine Word; notably, the same term [Pg 257] appears in Indian, Persian, Platonic, and Alexandrian systems. The Targumists, the earliest Jewish commentators on the Scriptures, had already used this term for the Messiah; and it's worth noting how it has been sanctified through its incorporation into the Christian framework."[260]

As above said by the learned Dean, the idea of the Word, the Logos, was universal, and it formed part of the idea of a Trinity. Among the Hindus, the philosophers speak of the manifested Brahman as Sat-Chit-Ananda, Existence, Intelligence, and Bliss. Popularly, the Manifested God is a Trinity; Shiva, the Beginning and the End; Vishnu, the Preserver; Brahmâ, the Creator of the Universe. The Zoroastrian faith presents a similar Trinity; Ahuramazdao, the Great One, the First; then "the twins," the dual Second Person—for the Second Person in a Trinity is ever dual, deteriorated in modern days into an opposing God and Devil—and the[Pg 258] Universal Wisdom, Armaiti. In Northern Buddhism we find Amitâbha, the boundless Light; Avalokiteshvara, the source of incarnations, and the Universal Mind, Mandjusri. In Southern Buddhism the idea of God has faded away, but with significant tenacity the triplicity re-appears as that in which the Southern Buddhist takes his refuge—the Buddha, the Dharma (the Doctrine), the Sangha (the Order). But the Buddha Himself is sometimes worshipped as a Trinity; on a stone in Buddha Gaya is inscribed a salutation to Him as an incarnation of the Eternal One, and it is said: "Om! Thou art Brahmâ, Vishnu, and Mahesha (Shiva) ... I adore Thee, who art celebrated by a thousand names and under various forms, in the shape of Buddha, the God of Mercy."[261]

As mentioned by the knowledgeable Dean, the concept of the Word, or Logos, was universal and was part of the idea of a Trinity. Among the Hindus, philosophers talk about the manifested Brahman as Sat-Chit-Ananda, which means Existence, Intelligence, and Bliss. Commonly, the Manifested God is seen as a Trinity: Shiva, the Beginning and the End; Vishnu, the Preserver; and Brahmâ, the Creator of the Universe. The Zoroastrian faith offers a similar Trinity: Ahuramazdao, the Great One, the First; then "the twins," the dual Second Person—for the Second Person in a Trinity is always dual, which has somewhat decayed in modern times into a conflicting God and Devil—and the Universal Wisdom, Armaiti. In Northern Buddhism, we find Amitâbha, the boundless Light; Avalokiteshvara, the source of incarnations, and the Universal Mind, Mandjusri. In Southern Buddhism, the concept of God has mostly faded, but with notable persistence, the triplicity shows up again in what the Southern Buddhist takes refuge in—the Buddha, the Dharma (the Doctrine), and the Sangha (the Order). However, the Buddha Himself is sometimes worshipped as a Trinity; on a stone in Buddha Gaya, there’s an inscription greeting Him as an incarnation of the Eternal One, saying: "Om! You are Brahmâ, Vishnu, and Mahesha (Shiva)... I honor You, who are celebrated by a thousand names and various forms, in the shape of Buddha, the God of Mercy."

In extinct religions the same idea of a Trinity is found. In Egypt it dominated all religious worship. "We have a hieoroglyphical inscription in the British Museum as early as the reign of Senechus of the eighth century before the Christian[Pg 259] era, showing that the doctrine of Trinity in Unity already formed part of their religion."[262] This is true of a far earlier date. Râ, Osiris, and Horus formed one widely worshipped Trinity; Osiris, Isis, and Horus were worshipped at Abydos; other names are given in different cities, and the triangle is the frequently used symbol of the Triune God. The idea which underlay these Trinities, however named, is shown in a passage quoted from Marutho, in which an oracle, rebuking the pride of Alexander the Great, speaks of: "First God, then the Word, and with Them the Spirit."[263]

In ancient religions, the concept of a Trinity appears as well. In Egypt, it was central to all religious practices. "We have a hieroglyphic inscription in the British Museum dating back to the reign of Senechus in the eighth century before the Christian era, indicating that the doctrine of Trinity in Unity was already part of their faith." This actually goes back even further. Râ, Osiris, and Horus made up one well-known Trinity; Osiris, Isis, and Horus were worshipped at Abydos. Different names were used in other cities, and the triangle was often used as a symbol for the Triune God. The underlying idea behind these Trinities, regardless of their names, is reflected in a passage from Marutho, where an oracle, criticizing the pride of Alexander the Great, mentions: "First God, then the Word, and with Them the Spirit."

In Chaldæa, Anu, Ea, and Bel were the Supreme Trinity, Anu being the Origin of all, Ea the Wisdom, and Bel the creative Spirit. Of China Williamson remarks: "In ancient China the emperors used to sacrifice every third year to 'Him who is one and three.' There was a Chinese saying, 'Fo is one person but has three forms.' ... In the lofty philosophical[Pg 260] system known in China as Taoism, a trinity also figures: 'Eternal Reason produced One, One produced Two, Two produced Three, and Three produced all things,' which, as Le Compte goes on to say, 'seems to show as if they had some knowledge of the Trinity.'"[264]

In Chaldæa, Anu, Ea, and Bel were the Supreme Trinity, with Anu being the Origin of all, Ea representing Wisdom, and Bel embodying the creative Spirit. Regarding China, Williamson notes: "In ancient China, emperors used to sacrifice every third year to 'Him who is one and three.' There was a Chinese saying, 'Fo is one person but has three forms.' ... In the elevated philosophical system known as Taoism, a trinity also appears: 'Eternal Reason produced One, One produced Two, Two produced Three, and Three produced all things,' which, as Le Compte further observes, 'seems to indicate that they had some knowledge of the Trinity.'"[Pg 260]

In the Christian doctrine of the Trinity we find a complete agreement with other faiths as to the functions of the three Divine Persons, the word Person coming from persona, a mask, that which covers something, the mask of the One Existence, Its Self-revelation under a form. The Father is the Origin and End of all; the Son is dual in His nature, and is the Word, or the Wisdom; the Holy Spirit is the creative Intelligence, that brooding over the chaos of primeval matter organises it into the materials out of which forms can be constructed.

In the Christian belief of the Trinity, there is a complete agreement with other religions regarding the roles of the three Divine Persons. The term Person comes from persona, meaning a mask, which represents the covering of the One Existence, revealing itself in a certain form. The Father is the Source and the Ultimate Goal of everything; the Son has a dual nature and is the Word or the Wisdom; the Holy Spirit is the creative Intelligence that, by hovering over the chaos of primal matter, organizes it into the materials from which forms can be created.

It is this identity of functions under so many varying names which shows that we have here not a mere outer likeness, but an expression of an inner truth. There is something of which this triplicity[Pg 261] is a manifestation, something that can be traced in nature and in evolution, and which, being recognised, will render intelligible the growth of man, the stages of his evolving life. Further, we find that in the universal language of symbolism the Persons are distinguished by certain emblems, and may be recognised by these under diversity of forms and names.

It’s this shared function across so many different names that shows we’re not just looking at a surface similarity, but an expression of a deeper truth. There’s something that this triplicity[Pg 261] represents, something that can be found in nature and in evolution, and once we recognize it, it will help us understand human growth and the stages of life. Additionally, we see that in the universal language of symbolism, the Persons are marked by specific emblems, which allow us to identify them even in different forms and names.

But there is one other point that must be remembered ere we leave the exoteric statement of the Trinity—that in connection with all these Trinities there is a fourth fundamental manifestation, the Power of the God, and this has always a feminine form. In Hinduism each Person in the Trinity has His manifested Power, the One and these six aspects making up the sacred Seven. With many of the Trinities one feminine form appears, then ever specially connected with the Second Person, and then there is the sacred Quaternary.

But there’s one more thing to keep in mind before we move on from the basic explanation of the Trinity—that alongside all these Trinities, there’s a fourth fundamental manifestation, the Power of God, which always takes a feminine form. In Hinduism, each Person in the Trinity has His manifested Power, with the One and these six aspects combined making up the sacred Seven. In many of the Trinities, one feminine form appears, often specifically linked to the Second Person, and then there is the sacred Quaternary.

Let us now see the inner truth.

Let’s take a look at the inner truth now.

The One becomes manifest as the First Being, the Self-Existent Lord, the Root of all, the Supreme Father; the word[Pg 262] Will, or Power, seems best to express this primary Self-revealing, since until there is Will to manifest there can be no manifestation, and until there is Will manifested, impulse is lacking for further unfoldment. The universe may be said to be rooted in the divine Will. Then follows the second aspect of the One—Wisdom; Power is guided by Wisdom, and therefore it is written that "without Him was not anything made that is made;"[265] Wisdom is dual in its nature, as will presently be seen. When the aspects of Will and Wisdom are revealed, a third aspect must follow to make them effective—Creative Intelligence, the divine mind in Action. A Jewish prophet writes: "He hath made the earth by His Power, He hath established the world by His Wisdom; and hath stretched out the heaven by His Understanding,"[266] the reference to the three functions being very clear.[267] These Three are inseparable, indivisible, three aspects of One. Their functions may be thought of separately, for the sake of[Pg 263] clearness, but cannot be disjoined. Each is necessary to each, and each is present in each. In the First Being, Will, Power, is seen as predominant, as characteristic, but Wisdom and Creative Action are also present; in the Second Being, Wisdom is seen as predominant, but Power and Creative Action are none the less inherent in Him; in the Third Being, Creative Action is seen as predominant, but Power and Wisdom are ever also to be seen. And though the words First, Second, Third are used, because the Beings are thus manifested in Time, in the order of Self-unfolding, yet in Eternity they are known as interdependent and co-equal, "None is greater or less than Another."[268]

The One shows itself as the First Being, the Self-Existent Lord, the Root of everything, the Supreme Father; the term Will, or Power, seems to best capture this initial Self-revealing. Until there is the Will to manifest, there can be no manifestation, and without the manifested Will, there’s no impulse for further development. The universe can be said to be grounded in the divine Will. Next comes the second aspect of the One—Wisdom; Power is directed by Wisdom, and that's why it’s stated that "without Him was not anything made that is made;" Wisdom has a dual nature, as will soon be demonstrated. When the aspects of Will and Wisdom are revealed, a third aspect must emerge to make them effective—Creative Intelligence, the divine mind in Action. A Jewish prophet states: "He hath made the earth by His Power, He hath established the world by His Wisdom; and hath stretched out the heaven by His Understanding," the reference to these three roles being very clear. These Three are inseparable and indivisible, three aspects of One. Their functions can be considered separately for clarity, but they cannot be separated. Each is necessary to the others, and each is present in all. In the First Being, Will, Power appears as dominant and characteristic, but Wisdom and Creative Action are also present; in the Second Being, Wisdom appears as dominant, but Power and Creative Action are still inherent in Him; in the Third Being, Creative Action is seen as dominant, yet Power and Wisdom are always evident. Although the terms First, Second, and Third are used because the Beings are expressed in Time, in the order of Self-unfolding, in Eternity they are recognized as interdependent and co-equal, "None is greater or less than Another."

This Trinity is the divine Self, the divine Spirit, the Manifested God, He that "was and is and is to come,"[269] and He is the root of the fundamental triplicity in life, in consciousness.

This Trinity is the divine Self, the divine Spirit, the Manifested God, He who "was, is, and is to come,"[269] and He is the source of the essential triplicity in life and consciousness.

But we saw that there was a Fourth Person, or in some religions a second Trinity, feminine, the Mother. This is That which makes manifestation possible,[Pg 264] That which eternally in the One is the root of limitation and division, and which, when manifested, is called Matter. This is the divine Not-Self, the divine Matter, the manifested Nature. Regarded as One, She is the Fourth, making possible the activity of the Three, the Field of Their operations by virtue of Her infinite divisibility, at once the "Handmaid of the Lord,"[270] and also His Mother, yielding of Her substance to form His Body, the universe, when overshadowed by His power.[271] Regarded carefully She is seen to be triple also, existing in three inseparable aspects, without which She could not be. These are Stability—Inertia or Resistance—Motion, and Rhythm; the fundamental or essential qualities of Matter, these are called. They alone render Spirit effective, and have therefore been regarded as the manifested Powers of the Trinity. Stability or Inertia affords a basis, the fulcrum for the lever; Motion is then rendered manifest, but could make only chaos, then Rhythm is imposed, and there is Matter in vibration, capable of being[Pg 265] shaped and moulded. When the three qualities are in equilibrium, there is the One, the Virgin Matter, unproductive. When the power of the Highest overshadows Her, and the breath of the Spirit comes upon Her, the qualities are thrown out of equilibrium, and She becomes the divine Mother of the worlds.

But we noticed that there was a Fourth Person, or in some religions, a second Trinity—feminine, the Mother. This is what makes manifestation possible, [Pg 264] what is eternally in the One as the root of limitation and division, and when manifested, is called Matter. This is the divine Not-Self, the divine Matter, the manifested Nature. When seen as One, She is the Fourth, enabling the activity of the Three, the Field of Their operations through Her infinite divisibility, both the "Handmaid of the Lord,"[270] and also His Mother, offering Her substance to create His Body, the universe, when overshadowed by His power.[271] When viewed carefully, She is also seen to be triple, existing in three inseparable aspects, without which She could not exist. These are Stability—Inertia or Resistance—Motion, and Rhythm; the fundamental or essential qualities of Matter, as they are called. They alone make Spirit effective and have thus been regarded as the manifested Powers of the Trinity. Stability or Inertia provides a basis, the fulcrum for the lever; then Motion becomes manifest, but it could only result in chaos, until Rhythm is imposed, bringing Matter into vibration, capable of being [Pg 265] shaped and molded. When the three qualities are in balance, there is the One, the Virgin Matter, unproductive. When the power of the Highest overshadows Her and the breath of the Spirit comes upon Her, the qualities are thrown out of balance, and She becomes the divine Mother of the worlds.

The first interaction is between Her and the Third Person of the Trinity; by His action She becomes capable of giving birth to form. Then is revealed the Second Person, who clothes Himself in the material thus provided, and thus become the Mediator, linking in His own Person Spirit and Matter, the Archetype of all forms. Only through Him does the First Person become revealed, as the Father of all Spirits.

The first interaction is between Her and the Third Person of the Trinity; through His action, She becomes able to give birth to form. Then, the Second Person is revealed, who takes on the material provided, and thus becomes the Mediator, connecting Spirit and Matter in His own Person, the Archetype of all forms. Only through Him does the First Person become known, as the Father of all Spirits.

It is now possible to see why the Second Person of the Trinity of Spirit is ever dual; He is the One who clothes Himself in Matter, in whom the twin-halves of Deity appear in union, not as one. Hence also is He Wisdom; for Wisdom on the side of Spirit is the Pure Reason that knows itself as the One Self[Pg 266] and knows all things in that Self, and on the side of Matter it is Love, drawing the infinite diversity of forms together, and making each form a unit, not a mere heap of particles—the principle of attraction which holds the worlds and all in them in a perfect order and balance. This is the Wisdom which is spoken of as "mightily and sweetly ordering all things,"[272] which sustains and preserves the universe.

It is now clear why the Second Person of the Trinity of Spirit is always dual; He is the One who wraps Himself in Matter, where the twin aspects of Deity come together in union, not as one. This is also why He embodies Wisdom; for Wisdom, in terms of Spirit, is the Pure Reason that knows itself as the One Self[Pg 266] and understands everything within that Self, and in terms of Matter, it is Love, which brings the infinite variety of forms together, making each form a whole, not just a random collection of particles—the principle of attraction that keeps the worlds and everything in them in perfect order and balance. This is the Wisdom described as "mightily and sweetly ordering all things,"[272] which supports and maintains the universe.

In the world-symbols, found in every religion, the Point—that which has position only—has been taken as a symbol of the First Person in the Trinity. On this symbol St. Clement of Alexandria remarks that we abstract from a body its properties, then depth, then breadth, then length; "the point which remains is a unit, so to speak, having position; from which if we abstract position, there is the conception of unity."[273] He shines out, as it were, from the infinite Darkness, a Point of Light, the centre of a future universe,[Pg 267] a Unit, in whom all exists inseparate; the matter which is to form the universe, the field of His work, is marked out by the backward and forward vibration of the Point in every direction, a vast sphere, limited by His Will, His Power. This is the making of "the earth by His Power," spoken of by Jeremiah.[274] Thus the full symbol is a Point within a sphere, represented usually as a Point within a circle. The Second Person is represented by a Line, a diameter of this circle, a single complete vibration of the Point, and this Line is equally in every direction within the sphere; this Line dividing the circle in twain signifies also His duality, that in Him Matter and Spirit—a unity in the First Person—are visibly two, though in union. The Third Person is represented by a Cross formed by two diameters at right angles to each other within the circle, the second line of the Cross separating the upper part of the circle from the lower. This is the Greek Cross.[275]

In the world of symbols found in every religion, the Point—something that has only a position—has been seen as a representation of the First Person in the Trinity. St. Clement of Alexandria notes that we take away a body’s properties, then its depth, then its breadth, and then its length; "the point that remains is a unit, so to speak, that has a position; if we take away position, we reach the concept of unity." He shines forth, as it were, from the infinite Darkness, a Point of Light, the center of a future universe, a Unit in which everything exists inseparably; the matter that will create the universe, the area of His work, is defined by the back-and-forth vibration of the Point in every direction, a vast sphere limited by His Will and His Power. This is the creation of "the earth by His Power," as mentioned by Jeremiah. Thus, the complete symbol is a Point within a sphere, usually depicted as a Point within a circle. The Second Person is shown by a Line, the diameter of this circle, a single complete vibration of the Point, and this Line exists equally in every direction within the sphere; this Line divides the circle in half, which also signifies His duality—that in Him, Matter and Spirit—a unity in the First Person—are visibly two, though united. The Third Person is represented by a Cross made by two diameters at right angles to each other within the circle, with the second line of the Cross separating the upper part of the circle from the lower. This is the Greek Cross.

When the Trinity is represented as a Unity, the Triangle is used, either[Pg 268] inscribed within a circle, or free. The universe is symbolised by two triangles interlaced, the Trinity of Spirit with the apex of the triangle upward, the Trinity of Matter with the apex of the triangle downward, and if colours are used, the first is white, yellow, golden or flame-coloured, and the second black, or some dark shade.

When the Trinity is shown as a Unity, a Triangle is used, either[Pg 268] inscribed within a circle or on its own. The universe is symbolized by two interwoven triangles, with the Triangle of Spirit having the apex pointing up and the Triangle of Matter having the apex pointing down. If colors are involved, the first is white, yellow, gold, or flame-colored, and the second is black or some dark shade.

The kosmic process can now be readily followed. The One has become Two, and the Two Three, and the Trinity is revealed. The Matter of the universe is marked out and awaits the action of Spirit. This is the "in the beginning" of Genesis, when "God created the heaven and the earth,"[276] a statement further elucidated by the repeated phrases that He "laid the foundations of the earth;"[277] we have here the marking out of the material, but a mere chaos, "without form and void."[278]

The cosmic process can now be easily understood. The One has become Two, and the Two have become Three, revealing the Trinity. The matter of the universe is defined and awaits the action of Spirit. This corresponds to the "in the beginning" of Genesis, when "God created the heaven and the earth,"[276] which is further clarified by the repeated statements that He "laid the foundations of the earth;"[277] marking out the material, but it is just a chaos, "without form and void."[278]

On this begins the action of the Creative Intelligence, the Holy Spirit, who "moved upon the face of the[Pg 269] waters,"[279] the vast ocean of matter. Thus His was the first activity, though He was the Third Person—a point of great importance.

On this begins the action of Creative Intelligence, the Holy Spirit, who "moved upon the face of the[Pg 269] waters,"[279] the vast ocean of matter. So His was the first action, even though He was the Third Person—which is a significant point.

In the Mysteries this work was shown in its detail as the preparation of the matter of the universe, the formation of atoms, the drawing of these together into aggregates, and the grouping of these together into elements, and of these again into gaseous, liquid, and solid compounds. This work includes not only the kind of matter called physical, but also all the subtle states of matter in the invisible worlds. He further as the "Spirit of Understanding" conceived the forms into which the prepared matter should be shaped, not building the forms, but by the action of the Creative Intelligence producing the Ideas of them, the heavenly prototypes, as they are often called. This is the work referred to when it is written, He "stretched out the heaven by His Understanding."[280]

In the Mysteries, this work was detailed as the process of creating the universe, forming atoms, bringing them together into groups, and combining these into elements, which then form gaseous, liquid, and solid compounds. This work includes not just physical matter, but also all the subtle forms of matter in the invisible realms. Additionally, as the "Spirit of Understanding," he envisioned the shapes that the prepared matter should take—not by constructing the forms directly, but by the influence of Creative Intelligence producing their Ideas, often referred to as the heavenly prototypes. This is the work mentioned when it says, He "stretched out the heaven by His Understanding."[280]

The work of the Second Person follows that of the Third. He by virtue of His[Pg 270] Wisdom "established the world,"[281] building all globes and all things upon them, "all things were made by Him."[282] He is the organising Life of the worlds, and all beings are rooted in Him.[283] The life of the Son thus manifested in the matter prepared by the Holy Spirit—again the great "Myth" of the Incarnation—is the life that builds up, preserves, and maintains all forms, for He is the Love, the attracting power, that gives cohesion to forms, enabling them to grow without falling apart, the Preserver, the Supporter, the Saviour. That is why all must be subject to the Son,[284] all must be gathered up in Him, and why "no man cometh unto the Father but by" Him.[285]

The work of the Second Person comes after that of the Third. He, by His Wisdom, "established the world," building all celestial bodies and everything on them; "all things were made by Him." He is the organizing Life of the worlds, and all beings are rooted in Him. The life of the Son, manifested in the matter prepared by the Holy Spirit—again, the great "Myth" of the Incarnation—is the life that forms, preserves, and maintains all structures, for He is the Love, the attracting force that gives cohesion to forms, allowing them to grow without falling apart—the Preserver, the Supporter, the Savior. That's why everyone must be subject to the Son, all must be gathered in Him, and why "no man cometh unto the Father but by" Him.

For the work of the First Person follows that of the Second, as that of the Second follows that of the Third. He is spoken of as "the Father of Spirits,"[286] the "God of the Spirits of all flesh,"[287] and His is the[Pg 271] gift of the divine Spirit, the true Self in man. The human Spirit is the outpoured divine Life of the Father, poured into the vessel prepared by the Son, out of the materials vivified by the Spirit. And this Spirit in man, being from the Father—from whom came forth the Son and the Holy Spirit—is a Unity like Himself, with the three aspects in One, and man is thus truly made "in our image, after our likeness,"[288] and is able to become "perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect."[289]

For the work of the First Person comes after that of the Second, just as the work of the Second comes after that of the Third. He is referred to as "the Father of Spirits,"[286] the "God of the Spirits of all flesh,"[287] and His is the[Pg 271] gift of the divine Spirit, the true Self in humanity. The human Spirit is the outpoured divine Life of the Father, poured into the vessel prepared by the Son, using the materials enlivened by the Spirit. This Spirit in humanity, coming from the Father—from whom the Son and the Holy Spirit originated—is a Unity like Himself, with three aspects in One, and humanity is thus truly made "in our image, after our likeness,"[288] and is capable of becoming "perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect."[289]

Such is the kosmic process, and in human evolution it is repeated; "as above, so below."

Such is the cosmic process, and it's repeated in human evolution; "as above, so below."

The Trinity of the Spirit in man, being in the divine likeness, must show out the divine characteristics, and thus we find in him Power, which, whether in its higher form of Will or its lower form of Desire, gives the impulse to his evolution. We find also in him Wisdom, the Pure Reason, which has Love as its expression in the world of forms, and lastly Intelligence, or Mind, the active shaping energy. And in[Pg 272] man also we find that the manifestation of these in his evolution is from the third to the second, and from the second to the first. The mass of humanity is unfolding the mind, evolving the intelligence, and we can see its separative action everywhere, isolating, as it were, the human atoms and developing each severally, so that they may be fit materials for building up a divine Humanity. To this point only has the race arrived, and here it is still working.

The Trinity of the Spirit in humans, resembling the divine, must reflect divine qualities. In this, we see Power, which manifests as either Will in its higher form or Desire in its lower form, driving human growth. We also see Wisdom, or Pure Reason, which expresses Love in the physical world, and finally Intelligence, or Mind, which is the active shaping force. And in[Pg 272] humans, the way these qualities show up in their development goes from the third to the second, and then from the second to the first. Humanity is expanding its mind and evolving its intelligence, and we can observe how this separates individuals, almost isolating human beings and developing each one independently, so they can become suitable foundations for building a divine humanity. This is as far as our species has come, and it is still actively working at this point.

As we study a small minority of our race, we see that the second aspect of the divine Spirit in man is appearing, and we speak of it in Christendom as the Christ in man. Its evolution lies, as we have seen, beyond the first of the Great Initiations, and Wisdom and Love are the marks of the Initiate, shining out more and more as he develops this aspect of the Spirit. Here again is it true that "no man cometh to the Father but by Me," for only when the life of the Son is touching on completion can He pray: "Now, O Father, glorify Thou Me with Thine own Self, with the glory which I[Pg 273] had with Thee before the world was."[290] Then the Son ascends to the Father and becomes one with Him in the divine glory; He manifests self-existence, the existence inherent in his divine nature, unfolded from seed to flower, for "as the Father hath life in Himself, so hath He given to the Son to have life in Himself."[291] He becomes a living self-conscious Centre in the Life of God, a Centre able to exist as such, no longer bound by the limitations of his earlier life, expanding to divine consciousness, while keeping the identity of his life unshaken, a living, fiery Centre in the divine Flame.

As we look at a small part of our race, we see the second aspect of the divine Spirit in humans emerging, which we refer to in Christianity as the Christ in man. Its development, as we’ve seen, goes beyond the first of the Great Initiations, and Wisdom and Love are the hallmarks of the Initiate, shining brighter as they develop this aspect of the Spirit. It is also true that "no one comes to the Father except through Me," for only when the life of the Son is nearing completion can He pray: "Now, O Father, glorify Me with Your own Self, with the glory which I had with You before the world was." Then the Son ascends to the Father and becomes one with Him in divine glory; He shows self-existence, the existence inherent in His divine nature, unfolding from seed to flower, for "as the Father has life in Himself, so He has granted the Son to have life in Himself." He becomes a living, self-aware Center in the Life of God, a Center that can exist as such, no longer confined by the limitations of His earlier life, expanding to divine consciousness while maintaining His identity unshaken, a living, fiery Center in the divine Flame.

In this evolution now lies the possibility of divine Incarnations in the future, as this evolution in the past has rendered possible divine Incarnations in our own world. These living Centres do not lose Their identity, nor the memory of Their past, of aught that They have experienced in the long climb upwards; and such a Self-conscious Being can come forth from the Bosom of the Father, and reveal Himself for the helping of the world. He[Pg 274] has maintained the union in Himself of Spirit and Matter, the duality of the Second Person—all divine Incarnations in all religions are therefore connected with the Second Person in the Trinity—and hence can readily re-clothe Himself for physical manifestation, and again become Man. This nature of the Mediator He has retained, and is thus a link between the celestial and terrestrial Trinities, "God with us"[292] He has ever been called.

In this evolution lies the potential for divine incarnations in the future, as this evolution in the past has made divine incarnations in our own world possible. These living centers do not lose their identity or the memory of their past, nor anything they have experienced during their long journey upwards; and such a self-conscious being can come forth from the Father and reveal Himself to help the world. He[Pg 274] has maintained the union of Spirit and Matter within Himself, the duality of the Second Person—all divine incarnations across all religions are therefore linked to the Second Person in the Trinity—and so can easily take on physical form again and become Man. This role of the Mediator He has retained, making Him a link between the celestial and earthly Trinities, "God with us" [292] He has always been called.

Such a Being, the glorious fruit of a past universe, can come into the present world with all the perfection of His divine Wisdom and Love, with all the memory of His past, able by virtue of that memory to be the perfect Helper of every living Being, knowing every stage because He has lived it, able to help at every point because He has experienced all. "In that He Himself hath suffered being tempted, He is able to succour them that are tempted."[293]

Such a Being, the amazing result of a past universe, can enter the present world with all the perfection of His divine Wisdom and Love, carrying all the memories of His past. Because of that memory, He can be the perfect Helper for every living Being, understanding every stage because He has lived it, and able to assist at every point because He has experienced it all. "In that He Himself has suffered being tempted, He is able to help those who are tempted."[293]

It is in the humanity behind Him that lies this possibility of divine Incarnation; He comes down, having climbed up, in[Pg 275] order to help others to climb the ladder. And as we understand these truths, and something of the meaning of the Trinity, above and below, what was once a mere hard unintelligible dogma becomes a living and vivifying truth. Only by the existence of the Trinity in man is human evolution intelligible, and we see how man evolves the life of the intellect, and then the life of the Christ. On that fact mysticism is based, and our sure hope that we shall know God. Thus have the Sages taught, and as we tread the Path they show, we find that their testimony is true.

It is in the humanity behind Him that this possibility of divine Incarnation exists; He comes down after having ascended, in order to help others climb the ladder. As we grasp these truths and gain insight into the meaning of the Trinity, both the higher and lower aspects, what was once just a difficult and confusing dogma transforms into a living and energizing truth. Only through the presence of the Trinity within humanity can we make sense of human evolution, seeing how humans develop intellectual life and then the life of Christ. This fact forms the basis of mysticism and our unwavering hope that we will come to know God. This is what the Sages have taught, and as we walk the Path they have outlined, we discover that their testimony holds true.


Chapter X.

PRAYER.[294]

What is sometimes called "the modern spirit" is exceedingly antagonistic to prayer, failing to see any causal nexus between the uttering of a petition and the happening of an event, whereas the religious spirit is as strongly attached to it, and finds its very life in prayer. Yet even the religious man sometimes feels uneasy as to the rationale of prayer; is he teaching the All-wise, is he urging beneficence on the All-Good, is he altering the will of Him in "whom is no variableness, neither shadow of turning?"[295] Yet he finds in his own experience and in that of others "answers to prayer," a definite sequence of a request and a fulfilment.

What people sometimes refer to as "the modern spirit" is extremely opposed to prayer, not seeing any connection between making a request and something happening. In contrast, the religious spirit is deeply committed to prayer and finds its essence in it. However, even the religious person sometimes feels uncertain about the reasoning behind prayer; is he teaching the All-wise, is he convincing the All-Good to be kind, or is he changing the will of the One "in whom is no variableness, neither shadow of turning?"[295] Still, he finds in his own experiences and in those of others "answers to prayer," a clear link between a request and its fulfillment.

Many of these do not refer to subjective[Pg 277] experiences, but to hard facts of the so-called objective world. A man has prayed for money, and the post has brought him the required amount; a woman has prayed for food, and food has been brought to her door. In connection with charitable undertakings, especially, there is plenty of evidence of help prayed for in urgent need, and of speedy and liberal response. On the other hand, there is also plenty of evidence of prayers left unanswered; of the hungry starving to death, of the child snatched from its mother's arms by disease, despite the most passionate appeals to God. Any true view of prayer must take into account all these facts.

Many of these examples don’t refer to personal experiences, but to hard facts about the so-called objective world. A man prayed for money, and the mail brought him what he needed; a woman prayed for food, and food was delivered to her door. Especially in connection with charitable efforts, there is a lot of evidence of help requested in critical times, along with quick and generous responses. On the flip side, there is also plenty of evidence of prayers that went unanswered; of the hungry dying from starvation, of a child being taken from its mother by illness, despite the most heartfelt prayers to God. Any accurate understanding of prayer needs to consider all these facts.

Nor is this all. There are many facts in this experience which are strange and puzzling. A prayer that perhaps is trivial meets with an answer, while another on an important matter fails; a passing trouble is relieved, while a prayer poured out to save a passionately beloved life finds no response. It seems almost impossible for the ordinary student to discover the law according to which a prayer is or is not productive.[Pg 278]

Nor is this all. There are many facts in this experience that are strange and puzzling. A prayer that might seem trivial gets answered, while another about something important does not; a small problem is resolved, while a heartfelt plea to save a deeply loved life goes unanswered. It almost feels impossible for the average person to figure out the rule that determines whether a prayer is successful or not.[Pg 278]

The first thing necessary in seeking to understand this law is to analyse prayer itself, for the word is used to cover various activities of the consciousness, and prayers cannot be dealt with as though they formed a simple whole. There are prayers which are petitions for definite worldly advantages, for the supply of physical necessities—prayers for food, clothing, money, employment, success in business, recovery from illness, &c. These may be grouped together as class A. Then we have prayers for help in moral and intellectual difficulties and for spiritual growth—for the overcoming of temptations, for strength, for insight, for enlightenment. These may be grouped as Class B. Lastly, there are the prayers that ask for nothing, that consist in meditation on and adoration of the divine Perfection, in intense aspiration for union with God—the ecstasy of the mystic, the meditation of the sage, the soaring rapture of the saint. This is the true "communion between the Divine and the human," when the man pours himself out in love and veneration for THAT[Pg 279] which is inherently attractive, that compels the love of the heart. These we will call Class C.

The first thing needed to understand this law is to analyze prayer itself, as the term is used to describe various activities of consciousness, and prayers cannot be seen as a simple whole. There are prayers that request specific worldly benefits, such as food, clothing, money, employment, success in business, recovery from illness, etc. These can be grouped as Class A. Then we have prayers for help with moral and intellectual challenges and for spiritual growth—prayers for overcoming temptations, for strength, for insight, and for enlightenment. These can be grouped as Class B. Finally, there are prayers that ask for nothing; they involve meditation on and worship of divine Perfection, a deep yearning for union with God—the ecstasy of the mystic, the meditation of the sage, the uplifting joy of the saint. This represents the true "communion between the Divine and the human," where a person expresses love and reverence for THAT which is inherently attractive, that inspires love in the heart. We will call these Class C.

In the invisible worlds there exist many kinds of Intelligences, which come into relationship with man, a veritable Jacob's ladder, on which the Angels of God ascend and descend, and above which stands the Lord Himself.[296] Some of these Intelligences are mighty spiritual Powers, others are exceedingly limited beings, inferior in consciousness to man. This occult side of Nature—of which more will presently be said[297]—is a fact, recognised by all religions. All the world is filled with living things, invisible to fleshly eyes. The invisible worlds interpenetrate the visible, and crowds of intelligent beings throng round us on every side. Some of these are accessible to human requests, and others are amenable to the human will. Christianity recognises the existence of the higher classes of Intelligences under the general name of Angels, and teaches that they are "ministering spirits, sent forth to[Pg 280] minister;"[298] but what is their ministry, what the nature of their work, what their relationship to human beings, all that was part of the instruction given in the Lesser Mysteries, as the actual communication with them was enjoyed in the Greater, but in modern days these truths have sunk into the background, except the little that is taught in the Greek and Roman communions. For the Protestant, "the ministry of angels" is little more than a phrase. In addition to all these, man is himself a constant creator of invisible beings, for the vibrations of his thoughts and desires create forms of subtle matter the only life of which is the thought or the desire which ensouls them; he thus creates an army of invisible servants, who range through the invisible worlds seeking to do his will. Yet, again, there are in these worlds human helpers, who work there in their subtle bodies while their physical bodies are sleeping, whose attentive ear may catch a cry for help. And to crown all, there is the ever-present, ever-conscious Life of[Pg 281] God Himself, potent and responsive at every point of His realm, of Him without whose knowledge not a sparrow falleth to the ground,[299] not a dumb creature thrills in joy or pain, not a child laughs or sobs—that all-pervading, all-embracing, all-sustaining Life and Love, in which we live and move.[300] As nought that can give pleasure or pain can touch the human body without the sensory nerves carrying the message of its impact to the brain-centres, and as there thrills down from those centres through the motor nerves the answer that welcomes or repels, so does every vibration in the universe, which is His body, touch the consciousness of God, and draw thence responsive action. Nerve-cells, nerve-threads, and muscular fibres may be the agents of feeling and moving, but it is the man that feels and acts; so may myriads of Intelligences be the agents, but it is God who knows and answers. Nothing can be so small as not to affect that delicate omnipresent consciousness, nothing so vast as to transcend it. We are so limited that[Pg 282] the very idea of such an all-embracing consciousness staggers and confounds us; yet perhaps a gnat might be as hard bestead if he tried to measure the consciousness of Pythagoras. Professor Huxley, in a remarkable passage, has imagined the possibility of the existence of beings rising higher and higher in intelligence, the consciousness ever expanding, and the reaching of a stage as much above the human as the human is above that of the blackbeetle.[301] That is not a flight of the scientific imagination, but a description of a fact. There is a Being whose consciousness is present at every point of His universe, and therefore can be affected from any point. That consciousness is not only vast in its field, but inconceivably acute, not diminished in delicate capacity to respond because it stretches its vast area in every direction, but is more responsive than a more limited consciousness, more perfect in understanding than the more restricted. So far from it being the case that the[Pg 283] more exalted the Being the more difficult would it be to reach His consciousness, the very reverse is true. The more exalted the Being, the more easily is His consciousness affected.

In the invisible realms, there are many types of Intelligences that interact with humans, resembling a true Jacob's ladder where God's Angels come and go, and above which stands the Lord Himself.[296] Some of these Intelligences are powerful spiritual beings, while others are lesser entities with a consciousness lower than that of humans. This hidden aspect of Nature—more about which will be discussed soon[297]—is acknowledged by all religions. The world is full of living beings that are invisible to our physical eyes. The invisible worlds overlap with the visible one, and many intelligent beings surround us. Some of these are open to human requests, while others respond to human will. Christianity acknowledges the existence of higher Intelligences under the general term Angels and teaches that they are "ministering spirits, sent forth to[Pg 280] minister;"[298] but their ministry, the nature of their work, and their relationship with humans were all part of the teachings given in the Lesser Mysteries, while direct communication with them was experienced in the Greater Mysteries. However, in modern times, these truths have faded away, except for the little that is taught in the Greek and Roman traditions. For Protestants, "the ministry of angels" is little more than a saying. Additionally, humans are constantly creating invisible beings themselves because the vibrations of their thoughts and desires shape forms of subtle matter that only live through the thoughts or desires that give them life; thus, they create an army of invisible helpers that roam the invisible worlds trying to fulfill their will. Moreover, there are human helpers in these worlds, who work in their subtle bodies while their physical bodies are asleep, and who can hear cries for assistance. And ultimately, there is the always-present, all-aware Life of[Pg 281] God Himself, powerful and responsive at every point of His realm, without whom not a sparrow falls to the ground,[299] not a silent creature experiences joy or pain, not a child laughs or cries—that all-encompassing, all-sustaining Life and Love in which we exist and move.[300] Just as nothing that can bring pleasure or pain can affect the human body without the sensory nerves sending messages of its impact to the brain, and as responses flow back to welcome or repel through motor nerves, so does every vibration in the universe, which is His body, touch God's consciousness and elicit a response from Him. Nerve cells, nerve fibers, and muscle tissues may be the means of feeling and movement, but it is the person that feels and acts; similarly, countless Intelligences may serve as agents, but it is God who knows and responds. No matter how small, nothing can go unnoticed by that delicate, omnipresent consciousness, and nothing is too vast to exceed it. We are so limited that the very notion of such an all-encompassing consciousness overwhelms and confounds us; yet a gnat might struggle just as much if it tried to gauge the consciousness of Pythagoras. Professor Huxley, in an impressive passage, suggested the possibility of beings ascending higher and higher in intelligence, their consciousness expanding, reaching a level far above humanity, as humanity is above a black beetle.[301] This isn't just a flight of scientific imagination, but a description of fact. There is a Being whose consciousness is present at every point of His universe, making Him susceptible to influence from any location. That consciousness is not only vast but also incredibly sharp; it doesn't lose its capacity to respond just because it extends in all directions; in fact, it is more responsive than a more limited consciousness, more profound in understanding than the more restricted. Contrary to the belief that the more exalted a Being is, the harder it is to reach His consciousness, the opposite holds true. The more exalted the Being, the easier it is for His consciousness to be affected.

Now this all-pervading Life is everywhere utilising as channels all the embodied lives to which He has given birth, and any one of them may be used as an agent of that all-conscious Will. In order that that Will may express itself in the outer world, a means of expression must be found, and these beings, in proportion to their receptivity, offer the necessary channels, and become the intermediary workers between one point of the kosmos and another. They act as the motor nerves of His body, and bring about the required action.

Now this all-encompassing Life is everywhere using all the living beings it has created as channels, and any of them can serve as an agent of that all-knowing Will. For that Will to express itself in the external world, a way of expression must be discovered, and these beings, depending on how receptive they are, provide the necessary channels, becoming the intermediaries between different points of the universe. They function like the motor nerves of His body, facilitating the required actions.

Let us now take the classes into which we have divided prayers, and see the methods by which they will be answered.

Let’s now look at the categories we’ve divided prayers into and see how they will be responded to.

When a man utters a prayer of Class A there are several means by which his prayer may be answered. Such a man is simple in his nature, with a conception of God natural, inevitable, at the stage[Pg 284] of evolution in which he is; he regards Him as the supplier of his own needs, in close and immediate touch with his daily necessities, and he turns to Him for his daily bread as naturally as a child turns to his father or mother. A typical instance of this is the case of George Müller, of Bristol, before he was known to the world as a philanthropist, when he was beginning his charitable work, and was without friends or money. He prayed for food for the children who had no resource save his bounty, and money always came sufficient for the immediate needs. What had happened? His prayer was a strong, energetic desire, and that desire creates a form, of which it is the life and directing energy. That vibrating, living creature has but one idea, the idea that ensouls it—help is wanted, food is wanted; and it ranges the subtle world, seeking. A charitable man desires to give help to the needy, is seeking opportunity to give. As the magnet to soft iron, so is such a person to the desire-form, and it is attracted to him. It rouses in his brain vibrations identical with its[Pg 285] own—George Müller, his orphanage, its needs—and he sees the outlet for his charitable impulse, draws a cheque, and sends it. Quite naturally, George Müller would say that God put it into the heart of such a one to give the needed help. In the deepest sense of the words that is true, since there is no life, no energy, in His universe that does not come from God; but the intermediate agency, according to the divine laws, is the desire-form created by the prayer.

When a person says a Class A prayer, there are various ways their prayer can be answered. This person is straightforward in their nature, with a natural and instinctive understanding of God, fitting the stage of evolution they are in; they see Him as the provider of their needs, closely connected to their daily requirements, and they turn to Him for their daily bread just as naturally as a child would look to their parents. A classic example of this is George Müller from Bristol, before he became widely recognized as a philanthropist, when he was just starting his charitable work and had no friends or money. He prayed for food for the children who depended solely on his generosity, and money always arrived just in time to meet those immediate needs. What occurred? His prayer was a powerful, passionate desire, and that desire formed a shape, which was its life and driving force. That vibrant, living entity has only one focus, the idea that drives it—help is needed, food is needed; and it navigates the subtle realm, searching. A compassionate person wants to assist those in need and is looking for opportunities to give. Just as a magnet attracts soft iron, such a person attracts the desire-form, pulling it towards themselves. It creates in their mind vibrations similar to its own—George Müller, his orphanage, its needs—and he recognizes the opportunity to act on his charitable intentions, writes a check, and sends it off. Naturally, George Müller would say that God inspired that individual to provide the necessary assistance. In the truest sense of the words, that is accurate since there is no life or energy in God's universe that doesn’t originate from Him; however, the intermediary, according to divine principles, is the desire-form created by the prayer.

The result could be obtained equally well by a deliberate exercise of the will, without any prayer, by a person who understood the mechanism concerned, and the way to put it in motion. Such a man would think clearly of what he needed, would draw to him the kind of subtle matter best suited to his purpose to clothe the thought, and by a deliberate exercise of his will would either send it to a definite person to represent his need, or to range his neighbourhood and be attracted by a charitably disposed person. There is here no prayer, but a conscious exercise of will and knowledge.[Pg 286]

The same outcome could be achieved just as effectively through a conscious effort of will, without any prayer, by someone who understood how it all worked and how to set it in motion. This person would clearly visualize what they needed, attract the kind of subtle energy best suited for their purpose to shape that thought, and through a focused exercise of their will, either send it to a specific person to address their need, or connect with someone nearby who was in a charitable mood. There’s no prayer involved here, just a deliberate use of will and knowledge.[Pg 286]

In the case of most people, however, ignorant of the forces of the invisible worlds and unaccustomed to exercise their wills, the concentration of mind and the earnest desire which are necessary for successful action are far more easily reached by prayer than by a deliberate mental effort to put forth their own strength. They would doubt their own power, even if they understood the theory, and doubt is fatal to the exercise of the will. That the person who prays does not understand the machinery he sets going in no wise affects the result. A child who stretches out his hand and grasps an object need not understand anything of the working of the muscles, nor of the electrical and chemical changes set up by the movement in muscles and nerves, nor need he elaborately calculate the distance of the object by measuring the angle made by the optic axes; he wills to take hold of the thing he wants, and the apparatus of his body obeys his will though he does not even know of its existence. So is it with the man who prays, unknowing of the creative[Pg 287] force of his thought, of the living creature he has sent out to do his bidding. He acts as unconsciously as the child, and like the child grasps what he wants. In both cases God is equally the primal Agent, all power being from Him; in both cases the actual work is done by the apparatus provided by His laws.

In most cases, people who are unaware of the forces of the invisible worlds and not used to exercising their wills find it much easier to focus their minds and cultivate a genuine desire for successful action through prayer rather than trying to summon their own strength through deliberate mental effort. They would doubt their own abilities, even if they understood the theory, and doubt is detrimental to willpower. The fact that someone praying doesn’t understand the mechanics at play doesn’t change the outcome. A child who reaches out and grabs something doesn’t need to know how muscles work, the electrical and chemical changes happening in them, or even how to calculate the distance to the object based on the angle of sight; they simply want to grasp what they desire, and their body obeys their will without them even being aware of it. It's the same for the person praying, who is unaware of the creative force behind their thoughts or the living manifestation they have sent out to fulfill their wishes. They act as unconsciously as the child does and, like the child, obtain what they seek. In both situations, God is the ultimate source of power, with all ability coming from Him; in both cases, the actual work is carried out by the mechanisms established by His laws.

But this is not the only way in which prayers of this class are answered. Some one temporarily out of the physical body and at work in the invisible worlds, or a passing Angel, may hear the cry for help, and may then put the thought of sending the required aid into the brain of some charitable person. "The thought of so-and-so came into my head this morning," such a person will say. "I daresay a cheque would be useful to him." Very many prayers are answered in this way, the link between the need and the supply being some invisible Intelligence. Herein is part of the ministry of the lower Angels, and they will thus supply personal necessities, as well as bring aid to charitable undertakings.

But this isn't the only way prayers like these are answered. Someone who is temporarily out of their physical body and working in the invisible worlds, or a passing angel, might hear the call for help and then inspire someone compassionate to provide the needed aid. "I thought of so-and-so this morning," that person might say. "I bet a check would be helpful for him." Many prayers are answered this way, with some unseen intelligence linking the need to the supply. This is part of the role of the lower angels, who provide for personal needs and support charitable efforts.

The failure of prayers of this class is[Pg 288] due to another hidden cause. Every man has contracted debts which have to be paid; his wrong thoughts, wrong desires, and wrong actions have built up obstacles in his way, and sometimes even hem him in as the walls of a prison-house. A debt of wrong is discharged by a payment of suffering; a man must bear the consequences of the wrongs he has wrought. A man condemned to die of starvation by his own wrong-doing in the past, may hurl his prayers against that destiny in vain. The desire-form he creates will seek but will not find; it will be met and thrown back by the current of past wrong. Here, as everywhere, we are living in a realm of law, and forces may be modified or entirely frustrated by the play of other forces with which they come into contact. Two exactly similar forces might be applied to two exactly similar balls; in one case, no other force might be applied to the ball, and it might strike the mark aimed at; in the other, a second force might strike the ball and send it entirely out of its course. And so with two similar prayers; one may go on its way unopposed and effect its[Pg 289] object; the other may be flung aside by the far stronger force of a past wrong. One prayer is answered, the other unanswered; but in both cases the result is by law.

The failure of prayers like this is[Pg 288] caused by another hidden reason. Everyone has debts that must be settled; their negative thoughts, desires, and actions have created barriers, sometimes trapping them like walls of a prison. A debt of wrongdoing is paid through suffering; a person must face the consequences of their actions. Someone who is doomed to die from hunger due to their past mistakes might throw prayers at that fate in vain. The desires they create will seek but not find; they will be met and pushed back by the weight of past wrongs. Here, as everywhere else, we live in a system of laws, where forces can be altered or completely defeated by the interactions they have with other forces. Two identical forces might be applied to two identical balls; in one scenario, no other force interferes, and it hits the target; in the other, a second force hits the ball and sends it completely off course. The same goes for two similar prayers; one might move forward without opposition and achieve its[Pg 289] goal; the other could be cast aside by the much stronger force of a past wrong. One prayer gets answered, while the other does not; but in both cases, the outcome follows the law.

Let us consider Class B. Prayers for help in moral and intellectual difficulties have a double result; they act directly to attract help, and they react on the person who prays. They draw the attention of the Angels, of the disciples working outside the body, who are ever seeking to help the bewildered mind, and counsel, encouragement, illumination, are thrown into the brain-consciousness, thus giving the answer to prayer in the most direct way. "And he kneeled down and prayed ... and there appeared an Angel unto Him from heaven, strengthening Him."[302] Ideas are suggested which clear away an intellectual difficulty, or throw light on an obscure moral problem, or the sweetest comfort is poured into the distressed heart, soothing its perturbations and calming its anxieties. And truly if no Angel were passing that way, the cry[Pg 290] of the distressed would reach the "Hidden Heart of Heaven," and a messenger would be sent to carry comfort, some Angel, ever ready to fly swiftly on feeling the impulse, bearing the divine will to help.

Let’s look at Class B. Prayers for help with moral and intellectual challenges have two effects; they directly attract assistance and they also impact the person praying. They capture the attention of Angels and the disciples who are working beyond the physical realm, always eager to help those who are confused. Guidance, encouragement, and insight are infused into the person's mind, providing answers to their prayers in the most straightforward way. "And he kneeled down and prayed ... and there appeared an Angel unto Him from heaven, strengthening Him."[302] Ideas arise that resolve intellectual struggles or illuminate unclear moral dilemmas, or the deepest comfort is poured into the troubled heart, easing its turmoil and calming its worries. And truly, even if no Angel happened to be nearby, the cry of the distressed would reach the "Hidden Heart of Heaven," prompting a messenger to be sent for comfort, an Angel always ready to act swiftly upon feeling the urge, carrying the divine intent to assist.

There is also what is sometimes called a subjective answer to such prayers, the re-action of the prayer on the utterer. His prayer places his heart and mind in the receptive attitude, and this stills the lower nature, and thus allows the strength and illuminative power of the higher to stream into it unchecked. The currents of energy which normally flow downwards, or outwards, from the Inner Man, are, as a rule, directed to the external world, and are utilised in the ordinary affairs of life by the brain-consciousness, for the carrying on of its daily activities. But when this brain-consciousness turns away from the outer world, and shutting its outward-going doors, directs its gaze inwards; when it deliberately closes itself to the outer and opens itself to the inner; then it becomes a vessel able to receive and to hold, instead of a mere conduit-pipe between the interior and exterior worlds.[Pg 291] In the silence obtained by the cessation of the noises of external activities, the "still small voice" of the Spirit can make itself heard, and the concentrated attention of the expectant mind enables it to catch the soft whisper of the Inner Self.

There’s also what some people refer to as a subjective response to such prayers, which is the effect of the prayer on the person saying it. Their prayer opens their heart and mind to being receptive, calming their lower nature, which lets the strength and enlightening power of the higher self flow in freely. The currents of energy that usually move downward or outward from the Inner Self are typically directed towards the outside world and are used in everyday life by the conscious mind to carry out its daily tasks. However, when this conscious mind turns away from the outside world, shuts its outward doors, and focuses inward; when it intentionally closes itself off from the external and opens itself up to the internal; it then becomes a vessel that can receive and hold, rather than just a simple pipeline between the inner and outer worlds. In the silence achieved from stopping the distractions of external activities, the "still small voice" of the Spirit can be heard, and the focused attention of an expectant mind allows it to catch the gentle whisper of the Inner Self.

Even more markedly does help come from without and from within, when the prayer is for spiritual enlightenment, for spiritual growth. Not only do all helpers, angelic and human, most eagerly seek to forward spiritual progress, seizing on every opportunity offered by the upward-aspiring soul; but the longing for such growth liberates energy of a high kind, the spiritual longing calling forth an answer from the spiritual realm. Once more the law of sympathetic vibrations asserts itself, and the note of lofty aspiration is answered by a note of its own order, by a liberation of energy of its own kind, by a vibration synchronous with itself. The divine Life is ever pressing from above against the limits that bind it, and when the upward-rising force strikes against those limits from below, the separating wall is broken through, and the divine Life floods the[Pg 292] Soul. When a man feels that inflow of spiritual life, he cries: "My prayer has been answered, and God has sent down His Spirit into my heart." Truly so; yet he rarely understands that that Spirit is ever seeking entrance, but that coming to His own, His own receive Him not.[303] "Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear my voice, and open the door, I will come in to him."[304]

Help comes both from outside and from within, especially when the prayer is for spiritual enlightenment and growth. Not only do all helpers, both angelic and human, eagerly seek to support spiritual progress, seizing every opportunity offered by the soul that aspires upward; but the desire for such growth releases a powerful energy, with spiritual longing evoking a response from the spiritual realm. Once again, the law of sympathetic vibrations takes effect, and the note of high aspiration is met by a corresponding note, by a release of its own kind of energy, a vibration in sync with itself. The divine Life continually presses from above against the boundaries that confine it, and when the upward force strikes those limits from below, the separating wall is broken, allowing the divine Life to flood the[Pg 292] Soul. When a person feels that inflow of spiritual life, he exclaims: "My prayer has been answered, and God has sent His Spirit into my heart." Truly, but he rarely realizes that the Spirit is always seeking entry, yet when He comes to His own, His own do not accept Him.[303] "Look, I stand at the door and knock: if anyone hears my voice and opens the door, I will come in to him."[304]

The general principle with regard to all prayers of this class is that just in proportion to the submergence of the personality and the intensity of the upward aspiration will be the answer from the wider life within and without us. We separate ourselves. If we cease the separation and make ourselves one with the greater, we find that light and life and strength flow into us. When the separate will is turned away from its own objects and set to serve the divine purpose, then the strength of the Divine pours into it. As a man swims against the stream, he makes slow progress; but with it, he is carried on by all the force of the current. In[Pg 293] every department of Nature the divine energies are working, and everything that a man does he does by means of the energies that are working in the line along which he desires to do; his greatest achievements are wrought, not by his own energies, but by the skill with which he selects and combines the forces that aid him, and neutralises those that oppose him by those that are favourable. Forces that would whirl us away as straws in the wind become our most effective servants when we work with them. Is it then any wonder that in prayer, as in everything else, the divine energies become associated with the man who, by his prayer, seeks to work as part of the Divine?

The main idea behind all prayers of this kind is that the more we let go of our individuality and focus on our higher aspirations, the more we will receive answers from the larger life around and within us. We create separation. If we stop this separation and become one with the greater whole, we discover that light, life, and strength come flowing into us. When our separate will shifts from focusing on our own desires to serving a divine purpose, then the strength of the Divine fills us up. Just like a person swimming upstream makes little progress, when we go with the flow, we are propelled forward by the full force of the current. In every aspect of Nature, divine energies are at work, and everything we do is made possible by the energy we tap into in the direction we want to go; our greatest accomplishments are achieved not by our own efforts but by how skillfully we choose and combine helpful forces while neutralizing those that hinder us. Forces that could easily sweep us away become our most powerful allies when we align with them. So, is it any surprise that in prayer, as in all things, divine energies connect with the person who, through prayer, seeks to act as part of the Divine?

This highest form of prayer in Class B merges almost imperceptibly into Class C, where prayer loses its petitionary character, and becomes either a meditation on, or a worship of, God. Meditation is the steady quiet fixing of the mind on God, whereby the lower mind is stilled and presently left vacant, so that the Spirit, escaping from it, rises into contemplation of the divine Perfection, and reflects within himself the[Pg 294] divine Image. "Meditation is silent or unuttered prayer, or as Plato expressed it: 'the ardent turning of the Soul towards the Divine; not to ask any particular good (as in the common meaning of prayer), but for good itself, for the Universal Supreme Good.'"[305]

This highest form of prayer in Class B flows almost seamlessly into Class C, where prayer shifts from asking for things to becoming either a meditation on or a worship of God. Meditation is the focused, quiet concentration on God, where the lower mind quiets down and is left open, allowing the Spirit to rise into a contemplation of divine Perfection and reflect the[Pg 294] divine Image within itself. "Meditation is silent or unuttered prayer, or as Plato put it: 'the passionate turning of the Soul towards the Divine; not to request any specific good (as in the usual sense of prayer), but for goodness itself, for the Universal Supreme Good.'"[305]

This is the prayer that, by thus liberating the Spirit, is the means of union between man and God. By the working of the laws of thought a man becomes that which he thinks, and when he meditates on the divine perfections he gradually reproduces in himself that on which his mind is fixed. Such a mind, shaped to the higher and not the lower, cannot bind the Spirit, and the freed Spirit leaping upward to his source, prayer is lost in union and separateness is left behind.

This is the prayer that, by freeing the Spirit, connects man and God. Through the way thoughts work, a person becomes what they think, and when they focus on divine qualities, they slowly embody what they are concentrating on. A mind oriented toward the higher, rather than the lower, can't restrict the Spirit, and the liberated Spirit soars back to its source; in prayer, connection is achieved, and separateness fades away.

Worship also, the rapt adoration from which all petition is absent, and which seeks to pour itself forth in sheer love of the Perfect, dimly sensed, is a means—the easiest means—of union with God. In this the consciousness, limited by the brain, contemplates in mute exstasy the[Pg 295] Image it creates of Him whom it knows to be beyond imagining, and oft, rapt by the intensity of his love beyond the limits of the intellect, the man as a free Spirit soars upwards into realms where these limits are transcended, and feels and knows far more than on his return he can tell in words or clothe in form.

Worship, a deep devotion that asks for nothing in return and is driven purely by the love for the Perfect, which is only vaguely understood, is a way—the simplest way—to connect with God. In this state, the mind, restricted by the brain, silently contemplates the image of Him, whom it knows is beyond description. Often, overwhelmed by the depth of His love that surpasses intellectual understanding, a person as a free Spirit rises to places where those limitations dissolve, experiencing and knowing much more than they can express or describe when they return.

Thus the Mystic gazes on the Beatific Vision; thus the Sage rests in the calm of the Wisdom that is beyond knowledge; thus the Saint reaches the purity wherein God is seen. Such prayer irradiates the worshipper, and from the mount of such high communion descending to the plains of earth, the very face of flesh shines with supernal glory, translucent to the flame that burns within. Happy they who know the reality which no words may convey to those who know it not. Those whose eyes have seen "the King in His beauty"[306] will remember, and they will understand.

Thus, the Mystic gazes upon the Beatific Vision; the Sage finds peace in the kind of Wisdom that goes beyond knowledge; the Saint achieves the purity in which God is seen. Such prayer lights up the worshipper, and as they descend from that extraordinary communion back to the ordinary world, their very face glows with a divine radiance, reflecting the inner flame that burns within. Blessed are those who grasp the truth that no words can express to those who have yet to know it. Those whose eyes have seen "the King in His beauty"[306] will remember, and they will understand.

When prayer is thus understood, its perennial necessity for all who believe in religion will be patent, and we see why its[Pg 296] practice has been so much advocated by all who study the higher life. For the student of the Lesser Mysteries prayer should be of the kinds grouped under Class B, and he should endeavour to rise to the pure meditation and worship of the last class, eschewing altogether the lower kinds. For him the teaching of Iamblichus on this subject is useful. Iamblichus says that prayers "produce an indissoluble and sacred communion with the Gods," and then proceeds to give some interesting details on prayer, as considered by the practical Occultist. "For this is of itself a thing worthy to be known, and renders more perfect the science concerning the Gods. I say, therefore, that the first species of prayer is Collective; and that it is also the leader of contact with, and a knowledge of, divinity. The second species is the bond of concordant Communion, calling forth, prior to the energy of speech, the gifts imparted by the Gods, and perfecting the whole of our operations prior to our intellectual conceptions. And the third and most perfect species of prayer is the seal of ineffable Union with the[Pg 297] divinities, in whom it establishes all the power and authority of prayer; and thus causes the soul to repose in the Gods, as in a never failing port. But from these three terms, in which all the divine measures are contained, suppliant adoration not only conciliates to us the friendship of the Gods, but supernally extends to us three fruits, being as it were three Hesperian apples of gold. The first of these pertains to illumination; the second to a communion of operation; but through the energy of the third we receive a perfect plenitude of divine fire.... No operation, however, in sacred concerns, can succeed without the intervention of prayer. Lastly, the continual exercise of prayer nourishes the vigour of our intellect, and renders the receptacle of the soul far more capacious for the communications of the Gods. It likewise is the divine key, which opens to men the penetralia of the Gods; accustoms us to the splendid rivers of supernal light; in a short time perfects our inmost recesses, and disposes them for the ineffable embrace and contact of the Gods; and does not desist till it raises us[Pg 298] to the summit of all. It also gradually and silently draws upward the manners of our soul, by divesting them of everything foreign to a divine nature, and clothes us with the perfections of the Gods. Besides this, it produces an indissoluble communion and friendship with divinity, nourishes a divine love, and inflames the divine part of the soul. Whatever is of an opposing and contrary nature in the soul, it expiates and purifies; expels whatever is prone to generation and retains anything of the dregs of mortality in its ethereal and splendid spirit; perfects a good hope and faith concerning the reception of divine light; and in one word, renders those by whom it is employed the familiars and domestics of the Gods."[307]

When prayer is understood this way, its ongoing necessity for everyone who believes in a higher power becomes clear, and we see why it's been so strongly encouraged by those who study a higher way of living. For someone studying the Lesser Mysteries, prayer should fall under Class B, and they should aim to reach the pure meditation and worship of the last category, completely avoiding the lower forms. The teachings of Iamblichus on this topic are helpful. Iamblichus states that prayers "create an unbreakable and sacred connection with the Gods," and then provides some interesting insights on prayer from a practical occult perspective. "This is something worth knowing and enhances our understanding of the divine. I assert that the first type of prayer is Collective; it serves as a gateway to understanding and connecting with divinity. The second type is the bond of harmonious Communion, awakening, before we even speak, the gifts granted by the Gods, and refining all our efforts before we even conceive them intellectually. The third and most complete type of prayer is the mark of profound Union with the divine beings, establishing all the power and authority of prayer; it allows the soul to rest in the Gods, like finding a safe harbor. From these three forms, which encompass all divine measures, humble adoration not only earns us the favor of the Gods but also grants us three extraordinary benefits, akin to three golden apples of Hesperides. The first relates to enlightenment; the second to collaborative action; but through the strength of the third, we obtain a full abundance of divine energy.... However, no sacred undertaking can succeed without the practice of prayer. Moreover, consistent prayer strengthens our intellect and makes our soul more receptive to divine communication. It also acts as a divine key, unlocking the sacred realms of the Gods; it familiarizes us with the brilliant streams of celestial light; swiftly perfects our innermost being, preparing it for the profound embrace of the Gods; and persistently elevates us to the highest point. It gradually and quietly uplifts our soul's qualities, stripping away anything unworthy of the divine nature and adorning us with divine attributes. Additionally, it fosters an unbreakable bond and friendship with divinity, nurtures divine love, and ignites the divine aspect of our soul. It cleanses and purifies anything opposing or contrary within us; expels anything susceptible to worldly entanglements, leaving us with the pure essence of our celestial spirit; fosters a strong hope and faith in receiving divine light; and ultimately, makes those who engage with it familiar and close to the Gods.[307]

Out of such study and practice one inevitable result arises, as a man begins to understand, and as the wider range of human life unfolds before him. He sees that by knowledge his strength is much increased, that there are forces around him that he can understand and control, and that in proportion to his knowledge is his[Pg 299] power. Then he learns that Divinity lies hidden within himself, and that nothing that is fleeting can satisfy that God within; that only union with the One, the Perfect, can still his cravings. Then there gradually arises within him the will to set himself at one with the Divine; he ceases to vehemently seek to change circumstances, and to throw fresh causes into the stream of effects. He recognises himself as an agent rather than an actor, a channel rather than a source, a servant rather than a master, and seeks to discover the divine purposes and to work in harmony therewith.

From such study and practice, one unavoidable outcome emerges. As a person starts to understand and as the broader spectrum of human experience opens up to him, he realizes that knowledge significantly boosts his strength. He recognizes that there are forces around him that he can comprehend and control, and that his power grows in proportion to his knowledge. He then discovers that divinity is hidden within himself and that nothing temporary can satisfy that divine spark within; only a connection with the One, the Perfect, can fulfill his desires. Gradually, the desire emerges within him to align himself with the Divine; he stops desperately trying to change his circumstances or introduce new causes into the chain of effects. He sees himself as an agent rather than an actor, a channel rather than a source, a servant rather than a master, and seeks to uncover the divine purposes and align his actions with them.

When a man has reached that point, he has risen above all prayer, save that which is meditation and worship; he has nothing to ask for, in this world or in any other; he remains in a steadfast serenity, seeking but to serve God. That is the state of Sonship, where the will of the Son is one with the will of the Father, where the one calm surrender is made, "Lo, I come to do Thy will, O God. I am content to do it; yea, Thy law is within my heart."[308][Pg 300] Then all prayer is seen to be unnecessary; all asking is felt as an impertinence; nothing can be longed for that is not already in the purposes of that Will, and all will be brought into active manifestation as the agents of that Will perfect themselves in the work.

When a person gets to that point, they've moved beyond all prayer except for meditation and worship; they don't have anything to ask for, either in this world or any other; they remain in a steady calm, just looking to serve God. This is the state of being a Son, where the will of the Son aligns with the will of the Father, where the one calm surrender happens, "Here I am to do Your will, O God. I'm happy to do it; yes, Your law is in my heart." [308][Pg 300] At that point, all prayer is seen as unnecessary; all requests feel like an imposition; nothing can be desired that isn't already part of that Will's intentions, and everything will come into active manifestation as the agents of that Will perfect their work.


Chapter 11.

THE FORGIVENESS OF SINS.

"I believe in ... the forgiveness of sins." "I acknowledge one baptism for the remission of sins." The words fall facilely from the lips of worshippers in every Christian church throughout the world, as they repeat the familiar creeds called those of the Apostles and the Nicene. Among the sayings of Jesus the words frequently recur: "Thy sins are forgiven thee," and it is noteworthy that this phrase constantly accompanies the exercise of His healing powers, the release from physical and moral disease being thus marked as simultaneous. In fact, on one occasion He pointed to the healing of a palsy-stricken man as a sign that he had a right to declare to a man[Pg 302] that his sins were forgiven.[309] So also of one woman it was said: "Her sins, which are many, are forgiven, for she loved much."[310] In the famous Gnostic treatise, the Pistis Sophia, the very purpose of the Mysteries is said to be the remission of sins. "Should they have been sinners, should they have been in all the sins and all the iniquities of the world, of which I have spoken unto you, nevertheless if they turn themselves and repent, and have made the renunciation which I have just described unto you, give ye unto them the mysteries of the kingdom of light; hide them not from them at all. It is because of sin that I have brought these mysteries into the world, for the remission of all the sins which they have committed from the beginning. Wherefore have I said unto you aforetime, 'I came not to call the righteous.' Now, therefore, I have brought the mysteries, that the sins of all men may be remitted, and they be brought into the kingdom of light. For these mysteries are the boon of the first mystery[Pg 303] of the destruction of the sins and iniquities of all sinners."[311]

"I believe in ... the forgiveness of sins." "I acknowledge one baptism for the remission of sins." These words roll easily off the tongues of worshippers in every Christian church around the world as they recite the familiar creeds known as the Apostles’ and Nicene Creeds. Among Jesus' sayings, the phrase "Your sins are forgiven" appears often, and it's significant that this statement frequently accompanies His healing acts, suggesting that physical and moral healing occur simultaneously. In fact, there was a moment when He pointed to the healing of a man with paralysis as evidence that He had the authority to tell him that his sins were forgiven.[Pg 302] A woman was similarly described: "Her sins, which are many, are forgiven, for she loved much." In the well-known Gnostic text, the Pistis Sophia, the very purpose of the Mysteries is said to be the forgiveness of sins. "Even if they are sinners, even if they are caught up in all the sins and all the wrongdoings of the world that I have mentioned, if they turn and repent, and renounce what I have just described to you, then give them the mysteries of the kingdom of light; do not hide them from them at all. It is because of sin that I brought these mysteries into the world, for the forgiveness of all the sins they have committed from the beginning. That’s why I previously told you, 'I did not come to call the righteous.' Now, I have brought the mysteries so that the sins of all people may be forgiven, and they may enter the kingdom of light. For these mysteries are the gift of the first mystery[Pg 303] of destroying the sins and wrongdoings of all sinners."

In these Mysteries, the remission of sin is by baptism, as in the acknowledgment in the Nicene Creed. Jesus says: "Hearken, again, that I may tell you the word in truth, of what type is the mystery of baptism which remitteth sins.... When a man receiveth the mysteries of the baptisms, those mysteries become a mighty fire, exceedingly fierce, wise, which burneth up all sins; they enter into the soul occultly, and devour all the sins which the spiritual counterfeit hath implanted in it." And after describing further the process of purification, Jesus adds: "This is the way in which the mysteries of the baptisms remit sins and every iniquity."[312]

In these Mysteries, the forgiveness of sin comes through baptism, as stated in the Nicene Creed. Jesus says: "Listen carefully so I can share with you the truth about the mystery of baptism that forgives sins... When a person receives the mysteries of baptism, these mysteries become a powerful, intense, and wise fire that burns away all sins; they secretly enter the soul and consume all the sins that the spiritual imposter has planted in it." After explaining further the process of purification, Jesus adds: "This is how the mysteries of baptism forgive sins and every wrongdoing."[312]

In one form or another the "forgiveness of sins" appears in most, if not in all, religions; and wherever this consensus of opinion is found, we may safely conclude, according to the principle already laid down, that some fact in nature underlies it.[Pg 304] Moreover, there is a response in human nature to this idea that sins are forgiven; we notice that people suffer under a consciousness of wrong-doing, and that when they shake themselves clear of their past, and free themselves from the shackling fetters of remorse, they go forward with glad heart and sunlit eyes, though erstwhile enclouded by darkness. They feel as though a burden were lifted off them, a clog removed. The "sense of sin" has disappeared, and with it the gnawing pain. They know the springtime of the soul, the word of power which makes all things new. A song of gratitude wells up as the natural outburst of the heart, the time for the singing of birds is come, there is "joy among the Angels." This not uncommon experience is one that becomes puzzling, when the person experiencing it, or seeing it in another, begins to ask himself what has really taken place, what has brought about the change in consciousness, the effects of which are so manifest.

In various ways, the "forgiveness of sins" is present in most, if not all, religions; and wherever this shared belief exists, we can confidently conclude, based on the principle we've already established, that some underlying truth in nature supports it.[Pg 304] Furthermore, there is a natural reaction in people to the notion that sins can be forgiven; we observe that individuals feel burdened by their sense of wrongdoing, and when they manage to move past their past mistakes and break free from the heavy chains of guilt, they move forward with a happy heart and bright eyes, previously clouded by sadness. They experience a feeling as if a weight has been lifted from them, a hindrance has been removed. The "sense of sin" has vanished, along with the persistent pain. They come to understand the renewal of the spirit, the empowering word that makes everything fresh. A song of gratitude emerges from the heart, like nature’s response, and the time for the singing of birds has arrived, bringing "joy among the Angels." This common experience can become confusing when the person going through it, or observing it in someone else, starts to wonder what has truly happened and what caused the change in awareness that is so evident.

Modern thinkers, who have thoroughly assimilated the idea of changeless laws[Pg 305] underlying all phenomena, and who have studied the workings of these laws, are at first apt to reject any and every theory of the forgiveness of sins as being inconsistent with that fundamental truth, just as the scientist, penetrated with the idea of the inviolability of law, repels all thought which is inconsistent with it. And both are right in founding themselves on the unfaltering working of law, for law is but the expression of the divine Nature, in which there is no variableness, neither shadow of turning. Any view of the forgiveness of sins that we may adopt must not clash with this fundamental idea, as necessary to ethical as to physical science. "The bottom would fall out of everything" if we could not rest securely in the everlasting arms of the Good Law.

Modern thinkers, who have fully embraced the idea of unchanging laws[Pg 305] that govern all phenomena and who have examined how these laws operate, typically tend to dismiss any theories of sin forgiveness as inconsistent with that fundamental truth, just like scientists who are deeply convinced of the rigidity of laws reject any ideas that contradict it. Both are justified in relying on the unwavering nature of law, as law represents the divine Nature, which is free from change or fluctuation. Any perspective on sin forgiveness that we adopt must align with this core principle, which is essential to both ethical and physical sciences. "Everything would fall apart" if we couldn't trust in the unchanging principles of the Good Law.

But in pursuing our investigations, we are struck with the fact that the very Teachers who are most insistent on the changeless working of law are also those who emphatically proclaim the forgiveness of sins. At one time Jesus is saying: "That every idle word that men shall speak, they shall give account[Pg 306] thereof in the day of judgment,"[313] and at another: "Son, be of good cheer, thy sins be forgiven thee."[314] So in the Bhagavad Gîtâ we read constantly of the bonds of action, that "the world is bound by action,"[315] and that a man "recovereth the characteristics of his former body;"[316] and yet it is said that "even if the most sinful worship me, with undivided heart, he, too, must be accounted righteous."[317] It would seem, then, that whatever may have been intended in the world's Scriptures by the phrase, "the forgiveness of sins," it was not thought, by Those who best know the law, to clash with the inviolable sequence of cause and effect.

But as we explore this topic, we notice that the very teachers who strongly insist on the unchanging nature of laws are also the ones who firmly declare the forgiveness of sins. At one point, Jesus says, "People will have to account for every careless word they speak on the day of judgment,"[Pg 306] and at another, he says, "Son, be cheerful, your sins are forgiven." So, in the Bhagavad Gîtâ, we constantly read about the bonds of action, that "the world is bound by action,"[315] and that a person "regains the traits of their previous body;"[316] and yet it states that "even if the most sinful among you worship me with a focused heart, he will also be considered righteous."[317] It seems, then, that whatever the world's scriptures mean by the phrase "the forgiveness of sins," those who truly understand the law do not see it as conflicting with the unbreakable chain of cause and effect.

If we examine even the crudest idea of the forgiveness of sins prevalent in our own day, we find that the believer in it does not mean that the forgiven sinner is to escape from the consequences of his sin in this world; the drunkard, whose sins are forgiven on his repentance, is still seen to suffer from shaken nerves, impaired[Pg 307] digestion, and the lack of confidence shown towards him by his fellow-men. The statements made as to forgiveness, when they are examined, are ultimately found to refer to the relations between the repentant sinner and God, and to the post-mortem penalties attached to unforgiven sin in the creed of the speaker, and not to any escape from the mundane consequences of sin. The loss of belief in reincarnation, and of a sane view as to the continuity of life, whether it were spent in this or in the next two worlds,[318] brought with it various incongruities and indefensible assertions, among them the blasphemous and terrible idea of the eternal torture of the human soul for sins committed during the brief span of one life spent on earth. In order to escape from this nightmare, theologians posited a forgiveness which should release the sinner from this dread imprisonment in an eternal hell. It did not, and was never supposed to, set him free in this world from the natural consequences of his ill-doings, nor—except in modern Protestant communities—was[Pg 308] it held to deliver him from prolonged purgatorial sufferings, the direct results of sin, after the death of the physical body. The law had its course, both in this world and in purgatory, and in each world sorrow followed on the heels of sin, even as the wheels follow the ox. It was but eternal torture—which existed only in the clouded imagination of the believer—that was escaped by the forgiveness of sins; and we may perhaps go so far as to suggest that the dogmatist, having postulated an eternal hell as the monstrous result of transient errors, felt compelled to provide a way of escape from an incredible and unjust fate, and therefore further postulated an incredible and unjust forgiveness. Schemes that are elaborated by human speculation, without regard to the facts of life, are apt to land the speculator in thought-morasses, whence he can only extricate himself by blundering through the mire in an opposite direction. A superfluous eternal hell was balanced by a superfluous forgiveness, and thus the uneven scales of justice were again rendered level. Leaving these aberrations of[Pg 309] the unenlightened, let us return into the realm of fact and right reason.

If we look at even the simplest idea of sin forgiveness common today, we see that the believer in it doesn’t assume that the forgiven sinner escapes the consequences of their sin in this life; the drunkard, whose sins are forgiven when they repent, still suffers from damaged nerves, poor digestion, and a lack of trust from others. When we closely examine statements about forgiveness, we find they mainly refer to the relationship between the repentant sinner and God, as well as the consequences after death for unforgiven sins according to the speaker's beliefs, rather than an escape from the worldly repercussions of sin. The loss of belief in reincarnation and a reasonable view of life's continuity, whether in this world or the next, brought various inconsistencies and unsubstantiated claims, including the offensive and distressing notion of eternal torture for the human soul due to sins committed during a brief life on earth. To escape this nightmare, theologians proposed a forgiveness that would free the sinner from this terrible fate of eternal hell. It didn't, and was never meant to, free them from the natural consequences of their actions in this world, nor—except in modern Protestant groups—was it believed to deliver them from prolonged suffering in purgatory after the body dies. The law functioned similarly in this world and purgatory, and in both realms, sorrow followed closely behind sin, just as wheels follow the ox. The only thing forgiveness truly escaped was the eternal torture that existed only in the troubled mind of the believer; and we might even suggest that the dogmatist, who posited an eternal hell as a monstrous outcome of temporary errors, felt the need to offer a way out from such a cruel and unjust fate, thus further proposing an equally unbelievable and unjust forgiveness. Theories created by human imagination, ignoring the realities of life, often trap the thinker in confusion, from which they can only break free by stumbling through a contradiction. An unnecessary eternal hell was countered by an unnecessary forgiveness, balancing the uneven scales of justice. Leaving behind these misconceptions of the unenlightened, let’s return to the realm of fact and logical reasoning.

When a man has committed an evil action he has attached himself to a sorrow, for sorrow is ever the plant that springs from the seed of sin. It may be said, even more accurately, that sin and sorrow are but the two sides of one act, not two separate events. As every object has two sides, one of which is behind, out of sight, when the other is in front, in sight, so every act has two sides, which cannot both be seen at once in the physical world. In other worlds, good and happiness, evil and sorrow, are seen as the two sides of the same thing. This is what is called karma—a convenient and now widely-used term, originally Samskrit, expressing this connection or identity, literally meaning "action"—and the suffering is therefore called the karmic result of the wrong. The result, the "other side," may not follow immediately, may not even accrue during the present incarnation, but sooner or later it will appear and clasp the sinner with its arms of pain. Now a result in the physical world, an effect experienced[Pg 310] through our physical consciousness, is the final outcome of a cause set going in the past; it is the ripened fruit; in it a particular force becomes manifest and exhausts itself. That force has been working outwards, and its effects are already over in the mind ere it appears in the body. Its bodily manifestation, its appearance, in the physical world, is the sign of the completion of its course.[319] If at such a moment the sinner, having exhausted the karma of his sin, comes into contact with a Sage who can see the past and the present, the invisible and the visible, such a Sage may discern the ending of the particular karma, and, the sentence being completed, may declare the captive free. Such an instance seems to be given in the story of the man sick of the palsy, already alluded to, a case typical of many. A physical ailment is the last expression of a past ill-doing; the mental and moral outworking[Pg 311] is completed, and the sufferer is brought—by the agency of some Angel, as an administrator of the law—into the presence of One able to relieve physical disease by the exertion of a higher energy. First, the Initiate declares that the man's sins are forgiven, and then justifies his insight by the authoritative word, "Arise, take up thy bed, and go unto thine house." Had no such enlightened One been there, the disease would have passed away under the restoring touch of nature, under a force applied by the invisible angelic Intelligences, who carry out in this world the workings of karmic law; when a greater One is acting, this force is of more swiftly compelling power, and the physical vibrations are at once attuned to the harmony that is health. All such forgiveness of sins may be termed declaratory; the karma is exhausted, and a "knower of karma" declares the fact. The assurance brings a relief to the mind that is akin to the relief experienced by a prisoner when the order for his release is given, that order being as much a part of the law as the original sentence; but[Pg 312] the relief of the man who thus learns of the exhaustion of an evil karma is keener, because he cannot himself tell the term of its action.

When a person commits a wrong act, they tie themselves to a regret, because regret is always the outcome that grows from the seed of wrongdoing. In truth, it could be said that wrongdoing and regret are just two aspects of the same action, not two distinct events. Just as every object has two sides, one hidden and one visible, every action has two aspects that can't both be observed at the same time in the physical world. In other realities, good and joy, evil and regret, are understood as the two aspects of the same phenomenon. This concept is known as karma—a practical and widely-used term that originates from Sanskrit, expressing this relationship or unity, literally meaning "action"—and the suffering is therefore referred to as the karmic outcome of the wrong. The outcome, the "other side," might not present itself immediately, and it may not even manifest during the current lifetime, but eventually, it will show up and embrace the wrongdoer with its pain. In the physical world, an outcome or effect that we experience through our physical awareness is the final result of a cause initiated in the past; it is the mature fruit of that cause; in it, a particular force becomes evident and drains itself. That force has been influencing outward, and its impacts are already resolved in the mind before it surfaces in the body. Its physical manifestation in the physical world indicates the completion of its journey. If at such a moment the wrongdoer, having run out of the karma from their wrongdoing, encounters a Sage who can perceive both the past and the present, the unseen and the seen, that Sage may recognize the conclusion of the specific karma, and, with the sentence fulfilled, may declare the individual free. An example of this can be found in the story of the man paralyzed, previously mentioned, a case typical of many. A physical illness is the final manifestation of past misdeeds; the mental and moral repercussions are settled, and the sufferer is brought—through the agency of some Angel, as an enforcer of the law—to the presence of One who can heal physical ailments using a higher energy. First, the Initiate declares that the man's sins are forgiven, and then supports this insight with the authoritative command, "Get up, take your bed, and go home." Had there been no enlightened being present, the illness would have healed itself through nature's restoring touch, assisted by the invisible angelic Intelligences that implement the workings of karmic law; however, when a more powerful being intervenes, this force is significantly more effective, and the physical vibrations instantly align to the harmony of health. All such forgiveness of sins can be described as declarative; the karma has been resolved, and a "knower of karma" confirms this fact. This assurance brings a relief to the mind similar to what a prisoner feels when the order for release is issued, that order being as much a part of the law as the original sentence; however, the relief for the person who learns about the exhaustion of a negative karma is even more profound because they cannot determine the duration of its effects.

It is noticeable that these declarations of forgiveness are constantly coupled with the statement that the sufferer showed "faith," and that without this nothing could be done; i.e., the real agent in the ending of this karma is the sinner himself. In the case of the "woman that was a sinner," the two declarations are coupled: "Thy sins are forgiven.... Thy faith hath saved thee; go in peace."[320] This "faith" is the up-welling in man of his own divine essence, seeking the divine ocean of like essence, and when this breaks through the lower nature that holds it in—as the water-spring breaks through the encumbering earth-clods—the power thus liberated works on the whole nature, bringing it into harmony with itself. The man only becomes conscious of this as the karmic crust of evil is broken up by its force, and that glad consciousness of a power within himself hitherto unknown,[Pg 313] asserting itself as soon as the evil karma is exhausted, is a large factor in the joy, relief, and new strength that follow on the feeling that sin is "forgiven," that its results are past.

It’s clear that these statements of forgiveness are always accompanied by the claim that the person suffering showed "faith," and that without this, nothing could be achieved; i.e., the real force behind resolving this karma is the sinner themself. In the case of the "woman who was a sinner," the two statements are linked: "Your sins are forgiven.... Your faith has saved you; go in peace."[320] This "faith" is the emergence in a person of their own divine essence, reaching towards the divine source of similar essence. When this breaks through the lower nature that restricts it—just like a spring breaks through the heavy earth—the energy released works on the entire nature, aligning it with itself. A person only becomes aware of this as the karmic weight of evil is shattered by its force. That joyful awareness of a power within themselves that was previously unknown, asserting itself as soon as the evil karma is depleted, plays a significant role in the joy, relief, and newfound strength that comes with the feeling that sin is "forgiven" and its consequences are behind them.

And this brings us to the heart of the subject—the changes that go on in a man's inner nature, unrecognised by that part of his consciousness which works within the limits of his brain, until they suddenly assert themselves within those limits, coming apparently from nowhere, bursting forth "from the blue," pouring from an unknown source. What wonder that a man, bewildered by their downrush—knowing nothing of the mysteries of his own nature, nothing of "the inner God" that is verily himself—imagines that to be from without which is really from within, and, unconscious of his own Divinity, thinks only of Divinities in the world external to himself. And this misconception is the more easy, because the final touch, the vibration that breaks the imprisoning shell, is often the answer from the Divinity within another man, or within some superhuman being, responding to[Pg 314] the insistent cry from the imprisoned Divinity within himself; he oft-times recognises the brotherly aid, while not recognising that he himself, the cry from his inner nature, called it forth. As an explanation from a wiser than ourselves may make an intellectual difficulty clear to our mind, though it is our own mind that, thus aided, grasps the solution; as an encouraging word from one purer than ourselves may nerve us to a moral effort that we should have thought beyond our power, though it is our own strength that makes it; so may a loftier Spirit than our own, one more conscious of its Divinity, aid us to put forth our own divine energy, though it is that very putting forth that lifts us to a higher plane. We are all bound by ties of brotherly help to those above us as to those below us, and why should we, who so constantly find ourselves able to help in their development souls less advanced than ourselves, hesitate to admit that we can receive similar help from Those far above us, and that our progress may be rendered much swifter by Their aid?[Pg 315]

And this brings us to the core of the topic—the changes that happen in a person's inner self, unnoticed by the part of their mind that operates within the limits of their brain, until they suddenly emerge within those limits, seemingly from nowhere, bursting forth "out of the blue," coming from an unknown source. It's no surprise that a person, confused by this overwhelming influx—knowing nothing about the mysteries of their own nature, nothing about "the inner God" that is truly themselves—mistakes what is actually from within for something external, and, unaware of their own Divinity, only thinks of Divine beings in the world outside themselves. This misunderstanding is even easier because the final trigger, the force that breaks through the confining barrier, is often the response from the Divinity within another person, or a superhuman being, answering the urgent call from the imprisoned Divinity within them; they often recognize the supportive help but do not see that they themselves, the plea from their inner nature, summoned it. Just as an explanation from someone wiser may clarify a challenging intellectual issue for us, though it's our own mind that, aided, arrives at the solution; and just as an encouraging word from someone purer may inspire us to make a moral effort we thought was beyond our ability, even though it's our own strength that enables it; similarly, a higher Spirit than our own, one more aware of its Divinity, can help us unleash our own divine energy, even though that very unleashing is what elevates us to a higher level. We are all connected by bonds of mutual assistance to those above us just as to those below us, so why should we, who often find ourselves capable of helping others who are less developed than we are, hesitate to accept that we can also receive similar help from Those far above us, and that Their support may significantly speed up our progress?

Now among the changes that go on in a man's inner nature, unknown to his lower consciousness, are those that have to do with the putting forth of his will. The Ego, glancing backward over his past, balancing up its results, suffering under its mistakes, determines on a change of attitude, on a change of activity. While his lower vehicle is still, under his former impulses, plunging along lines of action that bring it into sharp collisions with the law, the Ego determines on an opposite course of conduct. Hitherto he has turned his face longingly to the animal, the pleasures of the lower world have held him fast enchained. Now he turns his face to the true goal of evolution, and determines to work for loftier joys. He sees that the whole world is evolving, and that if he sets himself against that mighty current it clashes him aside, bruising him sorely in the process; he sees that if he sets himself with it, it will bear him onwards on its bosom and land him in the desired haven.

Now, among the changes happening in a person's inner nature, not known to his lower awareness, are those related to the exercise of his will. The self, looking back at its past, weighing the outcomes, suffering from its mistakes, decides to change its attitude and actions. While his lower self is still, driven by previous impulses, rushing along paths that lead to conflicts with the law, the self chooses a different way to act. Until now, he has longed for the animalistic, and the pleasures of the lower world have kept him trapped. Now he turns his attention to the true goal of growth and decides to strive for higher joys. He realizes that the whole world is evolving, and if he resists that powerful current, it will push him aside, injuring him in the process; he understands that if he goes along with it, it will carry him forward and bring him to the desired destination.

He then resolves to change his life, he turns determinedly on his steps, he faces[Pg 316] the other way. The first result of the effort to turn his lower nature into the changed course, is much distress and disturbance. The habits formed under the impacts of the old views resist stubbornly the impulses flowing from the new, and a bitter conflict arises. Gradually the consciousness working in the brain accepts the decision made on higher planes, and then "becomes conscious of sin" by this very recognition of the law. The sense of error deepens, remorse preys on the mind; spasmodic efforts are made towards improvement, and, frustrated by old habits, repeatedly fail, till the man, overwhelmed by grief for the past, despair of the present, is plunged into hopeless gloom. At last, the ever-increasing suffering wrings from the Ego a cry for help, answered from the inner depths of his own nature, from the God within as well as around him, the Life of his life. He turns from the lower nature that is thwarting him to the higher which is his innermost being, from the separated self that tortures him to the One Self that is the Heart of all.

He then decides to change his life, turning firmly on his steps, facing[Pg 316] in the opposite direction. The first result of trying to shift his lower instincts into a new direction is a lot of distress and turmoil. The habits formed by his old views push back stubbornly against the impulses from the new outlook, leading to a bitter struggle. Gradually, the awareness within his mind accepts the decision made on a higher level, and then he "becomes aware of wrongdoing" through this very acknowledgment of the law. The feeling of error deepens, and remorse eats away at his mind; he makes sporadic efforts to improve, but old habits repeatedly undermine him, causing failure until he, overwhelmed by grief for the past and despair about the present, sinks into hopeless gloom. Eventually, the increasing pain forces a cry for help from his inner self, which is answered by the depths of his own nature, from the God within and around him, the essence of his life. He turns away from the lower nature that is holding him back to the higher self that is his true being, moving from the fragmented self that torments him to the One Self that is the Heart of all.

But this change of front means that he[Pg 317] turns his face from the darkness, that he turns his face to the light. The light was always there, but his back was towards it; now he sees the sun, and its radiance cheers his eyes, and overfloods his being with delight. His heart was closed; it is now flung open, and the ocean of life flows in, in full tide, suffusing him with joy. Wave after wave of new life uplifts him, and the gladness of the dawn surrounds him. He sees his past as past, because his will is set to follow a higher path, and he recks little of the suffering that the past may bequeath to him, since he knows he will not hand on such bitter legacy from his present. This sense of peace, of joy, of freedom, is the feeling spoken of as the result of the forgiveness of sins. The obstacles set up by the lower nature between the God within and the God without are swept away, and that nature scarce recognises that the change is in itself and not in the Oversoul. As a child, having thrust away the mother's guiding hand and hidden its face against the wall, may fancy itself alone and forgotten, until, turning with a cry, it finds[Pg 318] around it the protecting mother-arms that were never but a handsbreadth away; so does man in his wilfulness push away the shielding arms of the divine Mother of the worlds, only to find, when he turns back his face, that he has never been outside their protecting shelter, and that wherever he may wander that guarding love is round him still.

But this change means he turns away from the darkness and faces the light. The light was always there, but he was turned away from it; now he sees the sun, and its brightness lifts his spirits and fills him with joy. His heart was closed; now it’s wide open, and the ocean of life surges in, overflowing him with happiness. Wave after wave of new life lifts him up, and the joy of a new day surrounds him. He sees his past as just that—past—because he is determined to follow a higher path, and he cares little about the pain that the past might try to bring him since he knows he won’t pass on such a bitter legacy from his present. This feeling of peace, joy, and freedom is what people often refer to as the result of forgiveness. The barriers set up by our lower nature between the God within us and the God around us are removed, and that lower nature hardly realizes that the change is within itself and not in the Higher Power. Just like a child who pushes away their mother’s guiding hand and hides their face against the wall may think they’re alone and forgotten until they turn around and find their mother's loving arms right there, man, in his stubbornness, may push away the protective arms of the divine Mother of the world, only to discover when he turns back that he was never outside their protective embrace, and that no matter where he goes, that loving protection is always there.

The key to this change in the man, that brings about "forgiveness," is given in the verse of the Bhagavad-Gîtâ already partly quoted: "Even if the most sinful worship me, with undivided heart, he too must be accounted righteous, for he hath rightly resolved." On that right resolution follows the inevitable result: "Speedily he becometh dutiful and goeth to peace."[321] The essence of sin lies in setting the will of the part against the will of the whole, the human against the Divine. When this is changed, when the Ego puts his separate will into union with the will that works for evolution, then, in the world where to will is to do, in the world where effects are seen as present in causes, the man[Pg 319] is "accounted righteous;" the effects on the lower planes must inevitably follow; "speedily he becometh dutiful" in action, having already become dutiful in will. Here we judge by actions, the dead leaves of the past; there they judge by wills, the germinating seeds of the future. Hence the Christ ever says to men in the lower world: "Judge not."[322]

The key to the change in the man that brings about "forgiveness" is found in the verse from the Bhagavad-Gîtâ that has been partially quoted: "Even if the most sinful worship me with an undivided heart, he too must be considered righteous, for he has rightly resolved." Following that right resolution, the inevitable outcome is: "Speedily he becomes dutiful and goes to peace."[321] The essence of sin lies in opposing the individual will against the collective will, the human against the Divine. When this changes, and the Ego aligns its individual will with the will that works for evolution, then, in the world where willing is doing, where effects are seen as present in causes, the man[Pg 319] is "considered righteous;" the effects on the lower levels must inevitably follow; "speedily he becomes dutiful" in action, having already been dutiful in will. Here we judge by actions, the dead remnants of the past; there they judge by wills, the budding seeds of the future. Thus, Christ always tells people in the lower world: "Judge not."[322]

Even after the new direction has been definitely followed, and has become the normal habit of the life, there come times of failure, alluded to in the Pistis Sophia, when Jesus is asked whether a man may be again admitted to the Mysteries, after he has fallen away, if he again repents. The answer of Jesus is in the affirmative, but he states that a time comes when re-admission is beyond the power of any save of the highest Mystery, who pardons ever. "Amen, amen, I say unto you, whosoever shall receive the mysteries of the first mystery, and then shall turn back and transgress twelve times [even], and then should again repent twelve times, offering prayer in the mystery of the first[Pg 320] mystery, he shall be forgiven. But if he should transgress after twelve times, should he turn back and transgress, it shall not be remitted unto him for ever, so that he may turn again unto his mystery, whatever it be. For him there is no means of repentance unless he have received the mysteries of that ineffable, which hath compassion at all times and remitteth sins for ever and ever."[323] These restorations after failure, in which "sin is remitted," meet us in human life, especially in the higher phases of evolution. A man is offered an opportunity, which, taken, would open up to him new possibilities of growth. He fails to grasp it, and falls away from the position he had gained that made the further opportunity possible. For him, for the time, further progress is blocked; he must turn all his efforts wearily to retread the ground he had already trodden, and to regain and make sure his footing on the place from which he had slipped. Only when this is accomplished will he hear the gentle Voice that tells him that the past is out-worn, the weakness[Pg 321] turned to strength, and that the gateway is again open for his passage. Here again the "forgiveness" is but the declaration by a proper authority of the true state of affairs, the opening of the gate to the competent, its closure to the incompetent. Where there had been failure, with its accompanying suffering, this declaration would be felt as a "baptism for the remission of sins," re-admitting the aspirant to a privilege lost by his own act; this would certainly give rise to feelings of joy and peace, to a relief from the burden of sorrow, to a feeling that the clog of the past had at last fallen from the feet.

Even after the new direction has been fully embraced and has become a regular part of life, there are still moments of failure. This is mentioned in the Pistis Sophia, where Jesus is asked if someone can be readmitted to the Mysteries after straying away and then repenting again. Jesus answers affirmatively, but he points out that there comes a time when only the highest Mystery can grant re-admission and offers forgiveness always. "Amen, amen, I say to you, whoever receives the mysteries of the first mystery, then turns back and sins twelve times, and then repents twelve times, praying in the mystery of the first mystery, will be forgiven. But if he sins after those twelve times and then tries to repent again, he will never be forgiven, so he may return to his mystery, whatever it may be. For him, there is no chance for repentance unless he has received the mysteries of that ineffable one, who has compassion at all times and forgives sins forever." These restorations after failure, where "sin is forgiven," occur in human life, particularly in the higher stages of evolution. A person is given an opportunity that, if taken, would lead to new growth possibilities. He misses it and falls back from the position he had reached, which allowed for further opportunities. For him, progress is temporarily hindered; he must exhaustively work to regain his footing on the ground he has already covered. Only when this is done will he hear the gentle Voice informing him that the past is over, that his weakness has turned into strength, and that the pathway is open for him again. Here, "forgiveness" is simply the acknowledgment by an appropriate authority of the true situation, reopening the gate for the capable while keeping it closed for the incapable. Where there was failure, along with its suffering, this declaration feels like a "baptism for the remission of sins," allowing the seeker to regain a privilege lost through his own actions; this would surely bring feelings of joy and peace, a relief from the burden of sorrow, and a sense that the weight of the past has finally been lifted.

Remains one truth that should never be forgotten: that we are living in an ocean of light, of love, of bliss, that surrounds us at all times, the Life of God. As the sun floods the earth with his radiance so does that Life enlighten all, only that Sun of the world never sets to any part of it. We shut this light out of our consciousness by our selfishness, our heartlessness, our impurity, our intolerance, but it shines on us ever the same, bathing us on every side, pressing against our self-built walls[Pg 322] with gentle, strong persistence. When the soul throws down these excluding walls, the light flows in, and the soul finds itself flooded with sunshine, breathing the blissful air of heaven. "For the Son of man is in heaven," though he know it not, and its breezes fan his brow if he bares it to their breaths. God ever respects man's individuality, and will not enter his consciousness until that consciousness opens to give welcome; "Behold I stand at the door and knock"[324] is the attitude of every spiritual Intelligence towards the evolving human soul; not in lack of sympathy is rooted that waiting for the open door, but in deepest wisdom.

There’s one truth that should never be forgotten: we are surrounded by an ocean of light, love, and bliss, the Life of God, at all times. Just as the sun brightens the earth with its rays, that Life illuminates everyone; the Sun of the world never sets on any part of it. We block this light from our awareness through our selfishness, heartlessness, impurity, and intolerance, but it continues to shine on us, gently and persistently pressing against the walls we've built up. When the soul tears down these barriers, the light pours in, and the soul becomes flooded with sunshine, inhaling the blissful air of heaven. "For the Son of man is in heaven," even if he doesn’t realize it, and its breezes refresh him if he exposes himself to their touch. God always respects individual human beings and won’t enter their awareness until they choose to welcome Him; "Behold I stand at the door and knock" is the approach of every spiritual Intelligence towards the evolving human soul; this waiting for an open door isn’t due to a lack of sympathy, but instead comes from profound wisdom.

Man is not to be compelled; he is to be free. He is not a slave, but a God in the making, and the growth cannot be forced, but must be willed from within. Only when the will consents, as Giordano Bruno teaches, will God influence man, though He be "everywhere present, and ready to come to the aid of whosoever turns to Him through the act of the intelligence, and who unreservedly presents himself[Pg 323] with the affection of the will."[325] "The divine potency which is all in all does not proffer or withhold, except through assimilation or rejection by oneself."[326] "It is taken in quickly, as the solar light, without hesitation, and makes itself present to whoever turns himself to it and opens himself to it ... the windows are opened, but the sun enters in a moment, so does it happen similarly in this case."[327]

Man should not be forced; he should be free. He isn't a slave, but a God in progress, and growth can't be pushed but must come from within. Only when the will agrees, as Giordano Bruno teaches, will God affect man, even though He is "everywhere present and ready to help anyone who turns to Him through the act of intelligence and who wholeheartedly presents himself with the affection of the will."[325] "The divine power that encompasses everything does not give or take away, except through our own acceptance or rejection."[326] "It is taken in quickly, like sunlight, without hesitation, and makes itself known to anyone who turns towards it and opens up to it... the windows are opened, and the sun enters in an instant; it happens the same way here."[327]

The sense of "forgiveness," then, is the feeling which fills the heart with joy when the will is tuned to harmony with the Divine, when, the soul having opened its windows, the sunshine of love and light and bliss pours in, when the part feels its oneness with the whole, and the One Life thrills each vein. This is the noble truth that gives vitality to even the crudest presentation of the "forgiveness of sins," and that makes it often, despite its intellectual incompleteness, an inspirer to pure and spiritual living. And this is the truth, as seen in the Lesser Mysteries.

The concept of "forgiveness" is the feeling that fills the heart with joy when our will aligns in harmony with the Divine. It's like opening the windows of our soul to let in the sunshine of love, light, and happiness, allowing us to feel our connection to the whole and experiencing the thrill of the One Life in every part of us. This noble truth brings life even to the simplest ideas of "forgiveness of sins" and often serves as inspiration for pure and spiritual living, even if it might not be fully understood intellectually. This is the truth revealed in the Lesser Mysteries.


Chapter 12.

SACRAMENTS.

In all religions there exist certain ceremonials, or rites, which are regarded as of vital importance by the believers in the religion, and which are held to confer certain benefits on those taking part in them. The word Sacrament, or some equivalent term, has been applied to these ceremonials, and they all have the same character. Little exact exposition has been given as to their nature and meaning, but this is another of the subjects explained of old in the Lesser Mysteries.

In every religion, there are specific ceremonies or rituals that believers consider essential, and they are thought to bring certain benefits to those who participate. The term Sacrament, or something similar, is used for these ceremonies, and they all share the same purpose. There hasn't been much clear explanation about their nature and meaning, but this is another topic that was discussed long ago in the Lesser Mysteries.

The peculiar characteristic of a Sacrament resides in two of its properties. First, there is the exoteric ceremony, which is a pictorial allegory, a representation of something by actions and materials—not[Pg 325] a verbal allegory, a teaching given in words, conveying a truth; but an acted representation, certain definite material things used in a particular way. The object in choosing these materials, and aimed at in the ceremonies by which their manipulation is accompanied, is to represent, as in a picture, some truth which it is desired to impress upon the minds of the people present. That is the first and obvious property of a Sacrament, differentiating it from other forms of worship and meditation. It appeals to those who without this imagery would fail to catch a subtle truth, and shows to them in a vivid and graphic form the truth which otherwise would escape them. Every Sacrament, when it is studied, should be taken first from this standpoint, that it is a pictorial allegory; the essential things to be studied will therefore be: the material objects which enter into the allegory, the method in which they are employed, and the meaning which the whole is intended to convey.

The unique feature of a Sacrament lies in two of its properties. First, there's the outward ceremony, which is a visual allegory—a representation of something through actions and materials—not a verbal allegory or a teaching delivered in words that conveys a truth, but rather an acted portrayal, using specific material things in a certain way. The purpose of choosing these materials, along with the ceremonies that accompany their use, is to depict, like in a picture, some truth that needs to be impressed on the minds of those present. This is the first and most clear characteristic of a Sacrament, distinguishing it from other forms of worship and meditation. It appeals to those who, without this imagery, would miss a subtle truth, and presents it to them in a lively and striking way that they might otherwise overlook. Every Sacrament, when studied, should initially be approached from the perspective that it is a visual allegory; the key aspects to examine will thus be: the material objects involved in the allegory, how they are used, and the meaning that the whole is meant to convey.

The second characteristic property of a Sacrament belongs to the facts of the[Pg 326] invisible worlds, and is studied by occult science. The person who officiates in the Sacrament should possess this knowledge, as much, though not all, of the operative power of the Sacrament depends on the knowledge of the officiator. A Sacrament links the material world with the subtle and invisible regions to which that world is related; it is a link between the visible and the invisible. And it is not only a link between this world and other worlds, but it is also a method by which the energies of the invisible world are transmuted into action in the physical; an actual method of changing energies of one kind into energies of another, as literally as in the galvanic cell chemical energies are changed into electrical. The essence of all energies is one and the same, whether in the visible or invisible worlds; but the energies differ according to the grades of matter through which they manifest. A Sacrament serves as a kind of crucible in which spiritual alchemy takes place. An energy placed in this crucible and subjected to certain manipulations comes forth different in expression.[Pg 327] Thus an energy of a subtle kind, belonging to one of the higher regions of the universe, may be brought into direct relation with people living in the physical world, and may be made to affect them in the physical world as well as in its own realm; the Sacrament forms the last bridge from the invisible to the visible, and enables the energies to be directly applied to those who fulfil the necessary conditions and who take part in the Sacrament.

The second essential aspect of a Sacrament relates to the realities of the[Pg 326] invisible worlds, which is explored by occult science. The person conducting the Sacrament needs to have this knowledge since much, though not all, of the Sacrament's effectiveness relies on the officiant's understanding. A Sacrament connects the physical world with the subtle and unseen areas it corresponds to; it acts as a bridge between the visible and the invisible. It not only connects this world to others but also serves as a method for transforming energies from the invisible realm into actions in the physical world; it’s a true way of changing one type of energy into another, similar to how chemical energy is converted into electrical energy in a galvanic cell. The essence of all energies remains the same, whether in the visible or the invisible realms; however, the energies vary based on the types of matter through which they express themselves. A Sacrament functions as a kind of crucible where spiritual alchemy occurs. Energy placed in this crucible and subjected to specific processes emerges with a different expression.[Pg 327] This means that an energy of a subtle nature, from one of the higher realms of the universe, can be directly connected to people in the physical world, affecting them both in the physical realm and in its own domain; the Sacrament provides the final link from the invisible to the visible, enabling the energies to be directly utilized by those who meet the necessary conditions and participate in the Sacrament.

The Sacraments of the Christian Church lost much of their dignity and of the recognition of their occult power among those who separated from the Roman Catholic Church at the time of the "Reformation." The previous separation between the East and the West, leaving the Greek Orthodox Church on the one side and the Roman Church on the other, in no way affected belief in the Sacraments. They remained in both great communities as the recognised links between the seen and the unseen, and sanctified the life of the believer from cradle to grave. The Seven Sacraments of Christianity cover the whole of life, from[Pg 328] the welcome of Baptism to the farewell of Extreme Unction. They were established by Occultists, by men who knew the invisible worlds; and the materials used, the words spoken, the signs made, were all deliberately chosen and arranged with a view to bringing about certain results.

The Sacraments of the Christian Church lost much of their dignity and recognition of their hidden power among those who broke away from the Roman Catholic Church during the "Reformation." The earlier split between the East and the West, which left the Greek Orthodox Church on one side and the Roman Church on the other, did not affect the belief in the Sacraments. They continued to be seen in both major communities as the recognized connections between the visible and the invisible, sanctifying a believer's life from cradle to grave. The Seven Sacraments of Christianity encompass all of life, from the welcoming of Baptism to the farewell of Extreme Unction. They were established by practitioners with knowledge of the unseen realms; the materials used, the words spoken, and the signs made were all intentionally chosen and arranged to achieve specific outcomes.

At the time of the Reformation, the seceding Churches, which threw off the yoke of Rome, were not led by Occultists, but by ordinary men of the world, some good and some bad, but all profoundly ignorant of the facts of the invisible worlds, and conscious only of the outer shell of Christianity, its literal dogmas and exoteric worship. The consequence of this was that the Sacraments lost their supreme place in Christian worship, and in most Protestant communities were reduced to two, Baptism and the Eucharist. The sacramental nature of the others was not explicitly denied in the most important of the seceding Churches, but the two were set apart from the five, as of universal obligation, of which every member of the Church must partake in order to be recognised as a full member.[Pg 329]

At the time of the Reformation, the breakaway Churches that rejected the authority of Rome were led by ordinary people, some of whom were good and some not so good, but they were all largely unaware of the realities of the spiritual realms and only focused on the surface level of Christianity—its literal doctrines and outward rituals. As a result, the Sacraments lost their central role in Christian worship, and in most Protestant groups, they were reduced to just two: Baptism and the Eucharist. The sacramental nature of the other Sacraments wasn't explicitly denied by the main breakaway Churches, but Baptism and the Eucharist were distinguished from the other five as essential for universal practice, meaning that every member of the Church had to participate in them to be recognized as a full member.[Pg 329]

The general definition of a Sacrament is given quite accurately, save for the superfluous words, "ordained by Christ Himself," in the Catechism of the Church of England, and even these words might be retained if the mystic meaning be given to the word "Christ." A Sacrament is there said to be: "An outward and visible sign of an inward and spiritual grace given unto us, ordained by Christ Himself, as a means whereby we receive the same and a pledge to assure us thereof."

The general definition of a Sacrament is described pretty accurately, except for the extra words, "ordained by Christ Himself," in the Catechism of the Church of England. Even those words could stay if you interpret "Christ" in a mystical way. A Sacrament is defined there as: "An outward and visible sign of an inward and spiritual grace given to us, ordained by Christ Himself, as a means by which we receive it and a promise to assure us of it."

In this definition we find laid down the two distinguishing characteristics of a Sacrament as given above. The "outward and visible sign" is the pictorial allegory, and the phrase, the "means whereby we receive the" "inward and spiritual grace" covers the second property. This last phrase should be carefully noted by those members of Protestant Churches who regard Sacraments as mere external forms and outer ceremonies. For it distinctly alleges that the Sacrament is really a means whereby the grace is conveyed, and thus implies that without it the grace does not pass in the same fashion from the[Pg 330] spiritual to the physical world. It is the distinct recognition of a Sacrament in its second aspect, as a means whereby spiritual powers are brought into activity on earth.

In this definition, we find the two key characteristics of a Sacrament mentioned above. The "outward and visible sign" serves as a pictorial representation, and the phrase "means whereby we receive the" "inward and spiritual grace" refers to the second aspect. This last phrase should be carefully considered by members of Protestant Churches who see Sacraments as just external symbols and rituals. It clearly states that the Sacrament is actually a way that grace is conveyed, implying that without it, grace doesn’t transition from the[Pg 330] spiritual to the physical world in the same way. It represents a clear acknowledgment of a Sacrament in its second aspect, as a means through which spiritual powers are activated on Earth.

In order to understand a Sacrament, it is necessary that we should definitely recognise the existence of an occult, or hidden, side of Nature; this is spoken of as the life-side of Nature, the consciousness-side, more accurately the mind in Nature. Underlying all sacramental action there is the belief that the invisible world exercises a potent influence over the visible, and to understand a Sacrament we must understand something of the invisible Intelligences who administer Nature. We have seen in studying the doctrine of the Trinity that Spirit is manifested as the triple Self, and that as the Field for His manifestation there is Matter, the form-side of Nature, often regarded, and rightly, as Nature herself. We have to study both these aspects, the side of life and that of form, in order to understand a Sacrament.

To understand a Sacrament, we need to acknowledge the existence of a hidden side of Nature; this is referred to as the life side of Nature, the consciousness side, more accurately identified as the mind in Nature. Beneath all sacramental actions lies the belief that the invisible world has a powerful influence over the visible one, and to grasp a Sacrament, we must learn about the unseen Intelligences that govern Nature. In our exploration of the doctrine of the Trinity, we have seen that Spirit is expressed as the triple Self, and that Matter serves as the Field for this expression, often regarded, and rightly so, as Nature itself. We must examine both these aspects, the life side and the form side, to fully understand a Sacrament.

Stretching between the Trinity and humanity are many grades and hierarchies[Pg 331] of invisible beings; the highest of these are the seven Spirits of God, the seven Fires, or Flames, that are before the throne of God.[328] Each of these stands at the head of a vast host of Intelligences, all of whom share His nature and act under His direction; these are themselves graded, and are the Thrones, Powers, Princes, Dominations, Archangels, Angels, of whom mention is found in the writings of the Christian Fathers, who were versed in the Mysteries. Thus there are seven great hosts of these Beings, and they represent in their intelligence the divine Mind in Nature. They are found in all regions, and they ensoul the energies of Nature. From the standpoint of occultism there is no dead force and no dead matter. Force and matter alike are living and active, and an energy or a group of energies is the veil of an Intelligence, of a Consciousness, who has that energy as his outer expression, and the matter in which that energy moves yields a form which he guides or ensouls. Unless a man can thus[Pg 332] look at Nature all esoteric teaching must remain for him a sealed book. Without these angelic Lives, these countless invisible Intelligences, these Consciousnesses which ensoul the force and matter[329] which is Nature, Nature herself would not only remain unintelligible, but she would be out of relation alike to the divine Life that moves within and around her, and to the human lives that are developing in her midst. These innumerable Angels link the worlds together; they are themselves evolving while helping the evolution of beings lower than themselves, and a new light is shed on evolution when we see that men form grades in these hierarchies of intelligent beings. These angels are the "sons of God" of an earlier birth than ours, who "shouted for joy"[330] when the foundations of the earth were laid amid the choiring of the Morning Stars.[Pg 333]

Stretching between the Trinity and humanity are many levels and hierarchies[Pg 331] of invisible beings; the highest of these are the seven Spirits of God, the seven Fires, or Flames, that sit before the throne of God.[328] Each of these leads a large group of Intelligences, all of whom share His nature and act under His guidance; these are further categorized into Thrones, Powers, Princes, Dominations, Archangels, and Angels, as mentioned in the writings of the Christian Fathers, who understood the Mysteries. Thus, there are seven major groups of these Beings, and they represent in their intelligence the divine Mind in Nature. They exist in all realms, and they imbue the energies of Nature with life. From an occult perspective, there is no dead force and no dead matter. Both force and matter are alive and active, and any energy or group of energies is the manifestation of an Intelligence, a Consciousness, that expresses itself through that energy, while the matter through which that energy moves takes on a form that this Intelligence guides or enlivens. Unless a person can view Nature in this way[Pg 332], all esoteric teachings will remain a mystery to them. Without these angelic Beings, these countless invisible Intelligences, these Consciousnesses that enliven the force and matter[329] that is Nature, Nature itself would not only be unintelligible, but would also be disconnected from the divine Life that moves within and around it, and from the human lives that are evolving within it. These countless Angels connect the worlds; they themselves are evolving while aiding the evolution of beings beneath them, and a new understanding of evolution emerges when we realize that humans form levels within these hierarchies of intelligent beings. These angels are the "sons of God" from an earlier existence than ours, who "shouted for joy"[330] when the foundations of the earth were established amid the music of the Morning Stars.[Pg 333]

Others beings are below us in evolution—animals, plants, minerals, and elemental lives—as the Angels are above us; and as we thus study, a conception dawns upon us of a vast Wheel of Life, of numberless existences, inter-related and necessary each to each, man as a living Intelligence, as a self-conscious being, having his own place in this Wheel. The Wheel is ever turning by the divine Will, and the living Intelligences who form it learn to co-operate with that Will, and if in the action of those Intelligences there is any break or gap due to neglect or opposition, then the Wheel drags, turning slowly, and the chariot of the evolution of the worlds goes but heavily upon its way.

Others beings are below us in evolution—animals, plants, minerals, and elemental lives—just as Angels are above us; and as we study this, we start to realize a vast Wheel of Life, filled with countless existences, each interrelated and necessary to one another, with humans as living Intelligences, self-aware beings that have their own place in this Wheel. The Wheel is always turning by divine Will, and the living Intelligences that make it up learn to cooperate with that Will. If there's any break or gap in their actions due to neglect or opposition, the Wheel slows down, dragging along, and the progress of the worlds' evolution becomes very sluggish.

These numberless Lives, above and below man, come into touch with human consciousness in very definite ways, and among these ways are sounds and colours. Each sound has a form in the invisible world, and combinations of sounds create complicated shapes.[331] In the subtle matter[Pg 334] of those worlds all sounds are accompanied by colours, so that they give rise to many-hued shapes, in many cases exceedingly beautiful. The vibrations set up in the visible world when a note is sounded set up vibrations in the worlds invisible, each one with its own specific character, and capable of producing certain effects. In communicating with the sub-human Intelligences connected with the lower invisible world and with the physical, and in controlling and directing these, sounds must be used fitted to bring about the desired results, as language made up of definite sounds is used here. And in communicating with the higher Intelligences certain sounds are useful, to create a harmonious atmosphere, suitable for their activities, and to make our own subtle bodies receptive of their influences.

These countless lives, both above and below humans, interact with human consciousness in very specific ways, including through sounds and colors. Each sound has a form in the invisible world, and combinations of sounds create complex shapes.[331] In the subtle matter[Pg 334] of those worlds, all sounds are accompanied by colors, resulting in many-colored shapes, often remarkably beautiful. The vibrations created in the visible world when a note is played also generate vibrations in the invisible worlds, each with its own unique character and capable of producing specific effects. When communicating with the sub-human intelligences connected to the lower invisible world and the physical realm, and when controlling and directing these, specific sounds must be used to achieve the desired outcomes, similar to how a language made up of distinct sounds is used here. In communicating with higher intelligences, certain sounds are beneficial in creating a harmonious environment suitable for their activities and making our own subtle bodies open to their influences.

This effect on the subtle bodies is a most important part of the occult use of sounds. These bodies, like the physical, are in constant vibratory motion, the vibrations changing with every thought or desire. These changing irregular vibrations offer an obstacle to any fresh vibration[Pg 335] coming from outside, and, in order to render the bodies susceptible to the higher influences, sounds are used which reduce the irregular vibrations to a steady rhythm, like in its nature to the rhythm of the Intelligence sought to be reached. The object of all often-repeated sentences is to effect this, as a musician sounds the same note over and over again, until all the instruments are in tune. The subtle bodies must be tuned to the note of the Being sought, if his influence is to find free way through the nature of the worshipper, and this was ever done of old by the use of sounds. Hence, music has ever formed an integral part of worship, and certain definite cadences have been preserved with care, handed on from age to age.

This effect on the subtle bodies is a crucial aspect of the occult use of sounds. These bodies, just like the physical one, are always in a state of vibratory motion, with their vibrations shifting with every thought or desire. These fluctuating irregular vibrations create a barrier to any new vibration coming from outside. To make the bodies more receptive to higher influences, specific sounds are used to transform the irregular vibrations into a steady rhythm, which is similar to the rhythm of the Intelligence being sought. The aim of frequently repeated phrases is to achieve this, much like a musician plays the same note repeatedly until all the instruments are in tune. The subtle bodies need to be in harmony with the note of the Being sought for his influence to flow freely through the worshipper’s nature, and this has always been achieved through the use of sounds. Therefore, music has always been a vital part of worship, and certain specific cadences have been carefully preserved and passed down through the ages.

In every religion there exist sounds of a peculiar character, called "Words of Power," consisting of sentences in a particular language chanted in a particular way; each religion possesses a stock of such sentences, special successions of sounds, now very generally called "mantras," that being the name given to[Pg 336] them in the East, where the science of mantras has been much studied and elaborated. It is not necessary that a mantra—a succession of sounds arranged in a particular manner to bring about a definite result—should be in any one particular language. Any language can be used for the purpose, though some are more suitable than others, provided that the person who makes the mantra possesses the requisite occult knowledge. There are hundreds of mantras in the Samskrit tongue, made by Occultists of the past, who were familiar with the laws of the invisible worlds. These have been handed down from generation to generation, definite words in a definite order chanted in a definite way. The effect of the chanting is to create vibrations, hence forms, in the physical and super-physical worlds, and according to the knowledge and purity of the singer will be the worlds his song is able to affect If his knowledge be wide and deep, if his will be strong and his heart pure, there is scarcely any limit to the powers he may exercise in using some of these ancient mantras.[Pg 337]

In every religion, there are unique sounds known as "Words of Power," which consist of sentences in a specific language chanted in a certain way. Each religion has its own collection of these sentences, special sequences of sounds that are generally referred to as "mantras." This term comes from the East, where the study and refinement of mantras have been extensive. A mantra—an arrangement of sounds designed to achieve a specific result—doesn't have to be in any one particular language. Any language can be used for this purpose, although some are more appropriate than others, as long as the person creating the mantra has the necessary occult knowledge. There are hundreds of mantras in the Sanskrit language, developed by past occultists who understood the laws of the unseen worlds. These have been passed down through generations—specific words arranged in a particular order and chanted in a certain manner. The chanting creates vibrations, which then form influences in both the physical and non-physical realms. The impact of the chant depends on the knowledge and purity of the singer; if their understanding is vast and profound, if their will is strong, and their heart is pure, there's hardly any limit to the powers they can harness using these ancient mantras.

As said, it is not necessary that any one particular language should be used. They may be in Samskrit, or in any one of the languages of the world, in which men of knowledge have put them together.

As mentioned, it isn't required that any specific language be used. They can be in Sanskrit, or in any of the world's languages, where knowledgeable people have compiled them.

This is the reason why, in the Roman Catholic Church, the Latin language is always used in important acts of worship. It is not used as a dead language here, a tongue "not understanded of the people," but as a living force in the invisible worlds. It is not used to hide knowledge from the people, but in order that certain vibrations may be set up in the invisible worlds which cannot be set up in the ordinary languages of Europe, unless a great Occultist should compose in them the necessary successions of sounds. To translate a mantra is to change it from a "Word of Power" into an ordinary sentence; the sounds being changed, other sound-forms are created.

This is why the Roman Catholic Church always uses Latin in important worship services. It's not used as a dead language, something "not understood by the people"; instead, it's a living force in the unseen worlds. It's not meant to keep knowledge from the people, but to create specific vibrations in the invisible realms that ordinary European languages can't produce unless a skilled Occultist crafts the right sequences of sounds. Translating a mantra shifts it from a "Word of Power" to a regular sentence; changing the sounds generates different sound-forms.

Some of the arrangements of Latin words, with the music wedded to them in Christian worship, cause the most marked effects in the supra-physical worlds, and any one who is at all sensitive[Pg 338] will be conscious of peculiar effects caused by the chanting of some of the most sacred sentences, especially in the Mass. Vibratory effects may be felt by any one who will sit quiet and receptive as some of these sentences are uttered by priest or choristers. And at the same time effects are caused in the higher worlds directly affecting the subtle bodies of the worshippers in the way above described, and also appealing to the Intelligences in those worlds with a meaning as definite as the words addressed by one person to another on the physical plane, whether as prayer or, in some cases, as command. The sounds, causing active flashing forms, rise through the worlds, affecting the consciousness of the Intelligences residing in them, and bringing some of them to render the definite services required by those who are taking part in the church office.

Some of the ways Latin words are arranged, along with the music that goes with them in Christian worship, create significant effects in the spiritual realms. Anyone who is even a bit sensitive[Pg 338] will notice unique effects triggered by the chanting of some of the most sacred phrases, especially during the Mass. Anyone who sits quietly and is open can feel vibrational effects when these phrases are spoken by the priest or choristers. At the same time, these phrases have effects in higher realms that directly influence the subtle bodies of the worshippers as mentioned earlier, and also communicate with the Intelligences in those realms with a meaning as clear as the way one person talks to another in the physical world, whether as prayer or, in some instances, as a command. The sounds create dynamic, flashing forms that rise through the realms, influencing the consciousness of the Intelligences living there and prompting some of them to perform the specific services needed by those participating in the church service.

Such mantras form an essential part of every Sacrament.

Such mantras are a key part of every Sacrament.

The next essential part of the Sacrament, in its outward and visible form, are certain gestures. These are called[Pg 339] Signs, or Seals, or Sigils—the three words meaning the same thing in a Sacrament. Each sign has its own particular meaning, and marks the direction imposed on the invisible forces with which the celebrant is dealing, whether those forces be his own or poured through him. In any case, they are needed to bring about the desired result, and they are an essential portion of the sacramental rite. Such a sign is called a "Sign of Power," as the mantra is a "Word of Power."

The next crucial element of the Sacrament, in its outward and visible form, consists of specific gestures. These are known as[Pg 339] Signs, Seals, or Sigils—the three terms all refer to the same idea in a Sacrament. Each sign has its own unique meaning and indicates the direction intended for the invisible forces that the celebrant is engaging, whether those forces come from within him or are channeled through him. In any case, these signs are necessary to achieve the desired outcome, and they are a vital part of the sacramental rite. Such a sign is referred to as a "Sign of Power," just as the mantra is called a "Word of Power."

It is interesting to read in occult works of the past references to these facts, true then as now, true now as then. In the Egyptian Book of the Dead is described the post-mortem journey of the Soul, and we read how he is stopped and challenged at various stages of that journey. He is stopped and challenged by the Guardians of the Gate of each successive world, and the Soul cannot pass through the Gate and go on his way unless he knows two things: he must pronounce a word, the Word of Power: he must make a sign, the Sign of Power. When that Word is spoken, when that Sign is given, the bars[Pg 340] of the Gate fall down, and the Guardians stand aside to let the Soul pass through. A similar account is given in the great mystic Christian Gospel, the Pistis Sophia, before mentioned.[332] Here the passage through the worlds is not of a Soul set free from the body by death, but of one who has voluntarily left it in the course of Initiation. There are great Powers, the Powers of Nature, that bar his way, and till the Initiate gives the Word and the Sign, they will not allow him to pass through the portals of their realms. This double knowledge, then, was necessary—to speak the Word of Power, to make the Sign of Power. Without these progress was blocked, and without these a Sacrament is no Sacrament.

It's fascinating to read in occult writings from the past about these truths, which are just as valid now as they were then. In the Egyptian Book of the Dead, the post-mortem journey of the Soul is detailed, describing how he faces obstacles and challenges at different points along the way. He is stopped and questioned by the Guardians of the Gate of each new realm, and the Soul can't move forward unless he knows two things: he must say a specific word, the Word of Power, and he must make a specific sign, the Sign of Power. Once the Word is spoken and the Sign is made, the bars[Pg 340] of the Gate fall away, and the Guardians step aside to allow the Soul to pass. A similar description is found in the important mystic Christian Gospel, the Pistis Sophia, previously mentioned.[332] Here, the journey through the realms is not about a Soul escaping the body through death but about one who has willingly left it during Initiation. There are significant Powers—the Powers of Nature—that block his path, and until the Initiate speaks the Word and performs the Sign, they won't let him enter their domains. Thus, this dual knowledge was essential—to utter the Word of Power and to perform the Sign of Power. Without these, progress is halted, and a Sacrament lacks meaning.

Further, in all Sacraments some physical material is used, or should be used.[333] This is ever a symbol of that which is to be gained by the Sacrament, and points to the nature of the "inward and spiritual[Pg 341] grace" received through it. This is also the material means of conveying the grace, not symbolically, but actually, and a subtle change in this material adapts it for high ends.

Furthermore, in all Sacraments, some physical material is used or should be used.[333] This always symbolizes what is to be gained through the Sacrament and highlights the nature of the "inward and spiritual[Pg 341] grace" received through it. This also serves as the actual means of conveying grace, not just symbolically, but in reality, and a slight alteration in this material prepares it for significant purposes.

Now a physical object consists of the solid, liquid, and gaseous particles into which a chemist would resolve it by analysis, and further of ether, which interpenetrates the grosser stuffs. In this ether play the magnetic energies. It is further connected with counterparts of subtle matter, in which play energies subtler than the magnetic, but like them in nature and more powerful.

Now a physical object is made up of solid, liquid, and gas particles that a chemist would analyze, as well as ether, which fills the spaces between these more tangible materials. In this ether, magnetic energies are at work. It is also linked to counterparts of finer matter, where energies even more subtle than magnetic ones operate, similar in nature but even more powerful.

When such an object is magnetised a change is effected in the ethereal portion, the wave-motions are altered and systematised, and made to follow the wave-motions of the ether of the magnetiser; it thus comes to share his nature, and the denser particles of the object, played on by the ether, slowly change their rates of vibration. If the magnetiser has the power of affecting the subtler counterparts also he makes them similarly vibrate in assonance with his own.[Pg 342]

When an object is magnetized, a change happens in the ethereal part, the wave movements are changed and organized, and made to align with the wave motions of the ether from the magnetizer; it thus starts to share his characteristics, and the denser particles of the object, influenced by the ether, gradually change their vibration rates. If the magnetizer can affect the subtler counterparts as well, he makes them vibrate in harmony with his own.[Pg 342]

This is the secret of magnetic cures: the irregular vibrations of the diseased person are so worked on as to accord with the regular vibrations of the healthy operator, as definitely as an irregularly swinging object may be made to swing regularly by repeated and timed blows. A doctor will magnetise water and cure his patient therewith. He will magnetise a cloth, and the cloth, laid on the seat of pain, will heal. He will use a powerful magnet, or a current from a galvanic cell, and restore energy to a nerve. In all cases the ether is thrown into motion, and by this the denser physical particles are affected.

This is the secret behind magnetic healing: the irregular vibrations of a sick person are influenced to match the regular vibrations of a healthy practitioner, just like an irregularly swinging object can be made to swing steadily through repeated and timed pushes. A doctor will magnetize water and use it to heal their patient. They will magnetize a cloth, which, when placed on the painful area, will help with healing. They might use a strong magnet or a current from a galvanic cell to restore energy to a nerve. In all these cases, the ether is set in motion, affecting the denser physical particles.

A similar result accrues when the materials used in a Sacrament are acted on by the Word of Power and the Sign of Power. Magnetic changes are caused in the ether of the physical substance, and the subtle counterparts are affected according to the knowledge, purity, and devotion of the celebrant who magnetises—or, in the religious term, consecrates—it. Further, the Word and the Sign of Power summon to the celebration the[Pg 343] Angels specially concerned with the materials used and the nature of the act performed, and they lend their powerful aid, pouring their own magnetic energies into the subtle counterparts, and even into the physical ether, thus reinforcing the energies of the celebrant. No one who knows anything of the powers of magnetism can doubt the possibility of the changes in material objects thus indicated. And if a man of science, who may have no faith in the unseen, has the power to so impregnate water with his own vital energy that it cures a physical disease, why should power of a loftier, though similar, nature be denied to those of saintly life, of noble character, of knowledge of the invisible? Those who are able to sense the higher forms of magnetism know very well that consecrated objects vary much in their power, and that the magnetic difference is due to the varying knowledge, purity, and spirituality of the priest who consecrates them. Some deny all vital magnetism, and would reject alike the holy water of religion and the magnetised water of[Pg 344] medical science. They are consistent, but ignorant. But those who admit the utility of the one, and laugh at the other, show themselves to be not wise but prejudiced, not learned but one-sided, and prove that their want of belief in religion biases their intelligence, predisposing them to reject from the hand of religion that which they accept from the hand of science. A little will be added to this with regard to "sacred objects" generally in Chapter XIV.

A similar outcome happens when the materials used in a Sacrament are influenced by the Word of Power and the Sign of Power. Magnetic changes occur in the ether of the physical substance, and the subtle counterparts are affected based on the knowledge, purity, and devotion of the celebrant who magnetizes—or, in religious terms, consecrates—it. Additionally, the Word and Sign of Power call forth the[Pg 343] Angels specifically connected to the materials used and the nature of the act performed, and they offer their powerful assistance, infusing their own magnetic energies into the subtle counterparts and even into the physical ether, thereby enhancing the energies of the celebrant. Anyone familiar with the powers of magnetism cannot doubt the potential for the changes in material objects described here. If a scientist, who may lack faith in the unseen, can charge water with their own vital energy to heal a physical ailment, why should a higher, albeit similar, power be denied to those with a saintly life, noble character, or knowledge of the invisible? Those who can perceive the higher forms of magnetism understand that consecrated objects significantly differ in their power, and that this magnetic variation is due to the differing knowledge, purity, and spirituality of the priest who consecrates them. Some deny all forms of vital magnetism and would dismiss both the holy water of religion and the magnetized water of[Pg 344] medical science. They are consistent but uninformed. However, those who acknowledge the usefulness of one while ridiculing the other demonstrate not wisdom but bias, not knowledge but narrow-mindedness, and reveal that their disbelief in religion clouds their judgment, leading them to dismiss what they accept from science when presented by religion. More will be discussed about "sacred objects" in Chapter XIV.

We thus see that the outer part of the Sacrament is of very great importance. Real changes are made in the materials used. They are made the vehicles of energies higher than those which naturally belong to them; persons approaching them, touching them, will have their own etheric and subtle bodies affected by their potent magnetism, and will be brought into a condition very receptive of higher influences, being tuned into accord with the lofty Beings connected with the Word and the Sign used in consecration; Beings belonging to the invisible world will be present during the sacramental rite, pouring[Pg 345] out their benign and gracious influences; and thus all who are worthy participants in the ceremony—sufficiently pure and devoted to be tuned by the vibrations caused—will find their emotions purified and stimulated, their spirituality quickened, and their hearts filled with peace, by coming into such close touch with the unseen realities.

We can see that the outward aspect of the Sacrament is very significant. Real changes occur in the elements used. They become channels for energies that are greater than those that naturally belong to them; individuals who approach or touch them will have their own energy fields and subtle bodies impacted by their strong magnetism. They will be put into a state that is very open to higher influences, aligning themselves with the exalted Beings associated with the Word and the Sign used in the consecration. Beings from the invisible world will be present during the sacramental ceremony, pouring out their kind and positive influences. Thus, all who are worthy participants in the ceremony—pure enough and devoted to resonate with the vibrations created—will find their emotions purified and energized, their spirituality awakened, and their hearts filled with peace by coming into close connection with the unseen realities.


Chapter 13.

SACRAMENTS (continued).

We have now to apply these general principles to concrete examples, and to see how they explain and justify the sacramental rites found in all religions.

We now need to apply these general principles to specific examples and see how they explain and justify the sacramental rituals found in all religions.

It will be sufficient if we take as examples three out of the Seven Sacraments used in the Church Catholic. Two are recognised as obligatory by all Christians, although extreme Protestants deprive them of their sacramental character, giving them a declaratory and remembrance value only instead of a sacramental; yet even among them the heart of true devotion wins something of the sacramental blessing the head denies. The third is not recognised as even nominally a Sacrament by Protestant Churches, though it shows the essential signs of a Sacrament,[Pg 347] as given in the definition in the Catechism of the Church of England already quoted.[334] The first is that of Baptism; the second that of the Eucharist; the third that of Marriage. The putting of Marriage out of the rank of a Sacrament has much degraded its lofty ideal, and has led to much of that loosening of its tie that thinking men deplore.

It will be enough if we look at three out of the Seven Sacraments used in the Catholic Church. Two of them are recognized as mandatory by all Christians, although some extreme Protestants strip them of their sacramental nature, viewing them only as symbols and acts of remembrance instead of sacraments. However, even among them, genuine devotion can still receive some of the sacramental blessing that their beliefs reject. The third sacrament isn’t acknowledged at all by Protestant churches, even nominally, yet it clearly displays the essential signs of a Sacrament, as defined in the Catechism of the Church of England mentioned earlier. The first is Baptism; the second is the Eucharist; the third is Marriage. Removing Marriage from the status of a Sacrament has greatly diminished its noble ideal and has contributed to the weakening of its bonds, which is something that thoughtful individuals regret.

The Sacrament of Baptism is found in all religions, not only at the entrance into earth-life, but more generally as a ceremony of purification. The ceremony which admits the new-born—or adult—incomer into a religion has a sprinkling with water as an essential part of the rite, and this was as universal in ancient days as it is now. The Rev. Dr. Giles remarks: "The idea of using water as emblematic of spiritual washing is too obvious to allow surprise at the antiquity of this rite. Dr. Hyde, in his treatise on the Religion of the Ancient Persians, xxxiv. 406, tells us that it prevailed among that people. 'They do not use circumcision for their children, but only baptism, or washing for[Pg 348] the purification of the soul. They bring the child to the priest into the church, and place him in front of the sun and fire, which ceremony being completed, they look upon him as more sacred than before. Lord says that they bring the water for this purpose in bark of the Holm-tree; that tree is in truth the Haum of the Magi, of which we spoke before on another occasion. Sometimes also it is otherwise done by immersing him in a large vessel of water, as Tavernier tells us. After such washing, or baptism, the priest imposes on the child the name given by the parents.'"[335] A few weeks after the birth of a Hindu child a ceremony is performed, a part of which consists in sprinkling the child with water—such sprinkling entering into all Hindu worship. Williamson gives authorities for the practise of Baptism in Egypt, Persia, Thibet, Mongolia, Mexico, Peru, Greece, Rome, Scandinavia, and among the Druids.[336] Some of the prayers quoted are very fine: "I pray that this celestial water,[Pg 349] blue and light blue, may enter into thy body and there live. I pray that it may destroy in thee, and put away from thee, all the things evil and adverse that were given to thee before the beginning of the world." "O child! receive the water of the Lord of the world who is our life: it is to wash and to purify; may these drops remove the sin which was given to thee before the creation of the world, since all of us are under its power."

The Sacrament of Baptism is present in all religions, not just at the beginning of life but more broadly as a ceremony of purification. The ritual that welcomes the newborn—or adult—into a faith involves a sprinkling of water as a key component, and this has been a common practice since ancient times. The Rev. Dr. Giles notes: "The idea of using water as a symbol of spiritual cleansing is so obvious that it shouldn't surprise us how long this rite has been around. Dr. Hyde, in his work on the Religion of the Ancient Persians, xxxiv. 406, tells us that it was practiced by that civilization. 'They do not perform circumcision on their children, but only baptism or washing for the purification of the soul. They bring the child to the priest in the church and place him in front of the sun and fire; after this ceremony, they consider him more sacred than before. Lord says they bring the water for this purpose in the bark of the Holm tree; this tree is indeed the Haum of the Magi, which we mentioned earlier. Sometimes, they also do it differently by immersing him in a large container of water, as Tavernier tells us. After this washing or baptism, the priest gives the child the name chosen by the parents.'"[335] A few weeks after the birth of a Hindu child, a ceremony is held that includes sprinkling the child with water—this sprinkling is a part of all Hindu worship. Williamson provides evidence of the practice of Baptism in Egypt, Persia, Tibet, Mongolia, Mexico, Peru, Greece, Rome, Scandinavia, and among the Druids.[336] Some of the prayers mentioned are quite beautiful: "I pray that this celestial water, blue and light blue, may enter your body and reside there. I pray that it may eradicate within you and remove all the evil and negative things that were given to you before the beginning of the world." "O child! Receive the water from the Lord of the world who is our life: it is for washing and purifying; may these drops cleanse you of the sin that was bestowed upon you before the creation of the world, for all of us are under its influence."

Tertullian mentions the very general use of Baptism among non-Christian nations in a passage already quoted,[337] and others of the Fathers refer to it.

Tertullian talks about the widespread practice of Baptism among non-Christian nations in a passage already quoted,[337] and other Church Fathers also mention it.

In most religious communities a minor form of Baptism accompanies all religious ceremonies, water being used as a symbol of purification, and the idea being that no man should enter upon worship until he has purified his heart and conscience, the outer washing symbolising the inner lustration. In the Greek and Roman Churches a small receptacle for holy water is placed near every door, and every incoming worshipper touches it,[Pg 350] making with it on himself the sign of the cross ere he goes onward towards the altar. On this Robert Taylor remarks: "The baptismal fonts in our Protestant churches, and we need hardly say more especially the little cisterns at the entrance of our Catholic chapels, are not imitations, but an unbroken and never interrupted continuation of the same aqua minaria, or amula, which the learned Montfaucon, in his Antiquities, shows to have been vases of holy water, which were placed by the heathens at the entrance of their temples, to sprinkle themselves with upon entering those sacred edifices."[338]

In most religious communities, a simple form of Baptism is part of all religious ceremonies, using water as a symbol of purification. The idea is that no one should participate in worship until they have cleansed their heart and conscience, with the outer washing representing the inner cleansing. In the Greek and Roman Churches, a small container for holy water is placed by every door, and every person entering touches it, making the sign of the cross on themselves before moving on to the altar. Robert Taylor comments on this: "The baptismal fonts in our Protestant churches, and especially the small basins at the entrances of our Catholic chapels, are not imitations, but a direct and continuous link to the same aqua minaria or amula, which the scholar Montfaucon, in his Antiquities, indicates were vessels of holy water placed by the pagans at their temple entrances for self-sprinkling before entering those sacred spaces."[Pg 350]

Whether in the Baptism of initial reception into the Church, or in these minor lustrations, water is the material agent employed, the great cleansing fluid in Nature, and therefore the best symbol for purification. Over this water a mantra is pronounced, in the English ritual represented by the prayer, "Sanctify this water to the mystical washing away of sin," concluding with the formula, "In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and[Pg 351] of the Holy Ghost. Amen." This is the Word of Power, and it is accompanied by the Sign of Power, the Sign of the Cross made over the surface of the water.

Whether in the baptism for someone entering the Church or in these smaller rituals, water is the material element used, the great cleansing fluid in nature, and therefore the best symbol for purification. Over this water, a mantra is spoken, in the English ritual represented by the prayer, "Sanctify this water to the mystical washing away of sin," concluding with the phrase, "In the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen." This is the Word of Power, and it is accompanied by the Sign of Power, the Sign of the Cross made over the surface of the water.

The Word and the Sign give to the water, as before explained, a property it previously had not, and it is rightly named "holy water." The dark powers will not approach it; sprinkled on the body it gives a sense of peace, and conveys new spiritual life. When a child is baptised, the spiritual energy given to the water by the Word and the Sign reinforces the spiritual life in the child, and then the Word of Power is again spoken, this time over the child, and the Sign is traced on his forehead, and in his subtle bodies the vibrations are felt, and the summons to guard the life thus sanctified goes forth through the invisible world; for this Sign is at once purifying and protective—purifying by the life that is poured forth through it, protective by the vibrations it sets up in the subtle bodies. Those vibrations form a guardian wall against the attacks of hostile influences in the invisible worlds, and every time that holy water is touched, the Word pronounced,[Pg 352] and the Sign made, the energy is renewed, the vibrations are reinforced, both being recognised as potent in the invisible worlds, and bringing aid to the operator.

The Word and the Sign give the water, as previously explained, a property it didn’t have before, and it’s correctly called "holy water." Dark powers won’t come near it; when sprinkled on the body, it brings a sense of peace and imparts new spiritual life. When a child is baptized, the spiritual energy bestowed upon the water by the Word and the Sign strengthens the child's spiritual life, and then the Word of Power is spoken again, this time over the child, and the Sign is traced on their forehead. The vibrations are felt in their subtle bodies, and the call to protect the life that has been sanctified resonates through the invisible world; for this Sign is both purifying and protective—purifying by the life that flows through it, and protective through the vibrations it creates in the subtle bodies. Those vibrations form a protective barrier against the attacks of negative influences in the invisible realms, and every time holy water is touched, the Word is pronounced, and the Sign is made, the energy is renewed, and the vibrations are amplified, both recognized as powerful in the invisible worlds, bringing assistance to the one performing the act.

In the early Church, Baptism was preceded by a very careful preparation, those admitted to the Church being mostly converts from surrounding faiths. A convert passed through three definite stages of instruction, remaining in each grade till he had mastered its teachings, and he was then admitted to the Church by Baptism. Only after that was he taught the Creed, which was not committed to writing, nor ever repeated in the presence of an unbeliever; it thus served as a sign of recognition, and a proof of the position of the man who was able to recite it, showing that he was a baptised member of the Church. How truly in those days the grace conveyed by Baptism was believed in is shown by the custom of death-bed Baptism that grew up. Believing in the reality of Baptism, men and women of the world, unwilling to resign its pleasures or to keep their lives pure[Pg 353] from stain, would put off the rite of Baptism until Death's hand was upon them, so that they might benefit by the sacramental grace, and pass through Death's portal pure and clean, full of spiritual energy. Against that abuse some of the great Fathers of the Church struggled, and struggled effectively. There is a quaint story told by one of them, I think by S. Athanasius, who was a man of caustic wit, not averse to the use of humour in the attempt to make his hearers understand at times the folly or perversity of their behaviour. He told his congregation that he had had a vision, and had gone up to the gateway of heaven, where S. Peter stood as Warder. No pleased smile had he for the visitant, but a frown of stern displeasure. "Athanasius," said he, "why are you continually sending me these empty bags, carefully sealed up, with nothing inside?" It was one of the piercing sayings we meet with in Christian antiquity, when these things were real to Christian men, and not mere forms, as they too often are to-day.

In the early Church, Baptism came after thorough preparation, with most new members being converts from other faiths. A convert went through three specific stages of instruction, staying in each stage until they had fully understood its teachings, after which they were baptized into the Church. Only then were they taught the Creed, which was never written down or recited in front of non-believers; it served as a way of recognition and a proof of the individual's status, showing that they were a baptized member of the Church. The strong belief in the grace granted by Baptism is highlighted by the practice of baptizing on one’s deathbed. Many people, reluctant to give up worldly pleasures or to live purely, delayed Baptism until they were close to death, hoping to gain the sacramental grace and to pass through death clean and spiritually energized. Some great Church Fathers fought against this misuse, and they were quite effective. There’s a memorable story from one of them, possibly S. Athanasius, known for his sharp wit, who often used humor to help his audience grasp the foolishness or wrongness of their actions. He told his congregation about a vision he had where he approached the gate of heaven, where S. Peter was the gatekeeper. Peter didn’t greet him with a smile but with a serious frown. “Athanasius,” he said, “why do you keep sending me these empty bags, carefully sealed, with nothing inside?” This striking remark reflects the real sentiments of early Christians, a time when these beliefs were tangible and not just empty rituals, as they frequently are today.

The custom of Infant Baptism gradually[Pg 354] grew up in the Church, and hence the instruction which in the early days preceded Baptism came to be the preparation for Confirmation, when the awakened mind and intelligence take up and re-affirm the baptismal promises. The reception of the infant into the Church is seen to be rightly done, when man's life is recognised as being lived in the three worlds, and when the Spirit and Soul who have come to inhabit the new-born body are known to be not unconscious and unintelligent, but conscious, intelligent, and potent in the invisible worlds. It is right and just that the "Hidden Man of the heart"[339] should be welcomed to the new stage of his pilgrimage, and that the most helpful influences should be brought to bear upon the vehicle in which he is to dwell, and which he has to mould to his service. If the eyes of men were opened, as were of old those of the servant of Elisha, they would still see the horses and chariots of fire gathered round the mountain where is the prophet of the Lord.[340]

The practice of Infant Baptism gradually[Pg 354] became established in the Church, and so the teachings that initially preceded Baptism evolved into the preparation for Confirmation, when the awakened mind and understanding embrace and reaffirm the baptismal promises. The welcoming of the infant into the Church is rightly acknowledged when we recognize that human life is lived across three realms, and when the Spirit and Soul inhabiting the newborn body are understood to be conscious, intelligent, and powerful in the unseen realms. It is appropriate and fair that the "Hidden Man of the heart"[339] should be embraced as he moves into this new phase of his journey, and that the most supportive influences be offered to the vessel he is to inhabit and shape for his service. If people's eyes were opened, as the servant of Elisha's once were, they would still see horses and chariots of fire surrounding the mountain where the prophet of the Lord resides.[340]

We come to the second of the Sacraments[Pg 355] selected for study, that of the Sacrifice of the Eucharist, a symbol of the eternal Sacrifice already explained, the daily sacrifice of the Church Catholic throughout the world imaging that eternal Sacrifice by which the worlds were made, and by which they are evermore sustained. It is to be daily offered, as its archetype is perpetually existent, and men in that act take part in the working of the Law of Sacrifice, identify themselves with it, recognise its binding nature, and voluntarily associate themselves with it in its working in the worlds; in such identification, to partake of the material part of the Sacrament is necessary, if the identification is to be complete, but many of the benefits may be shared, and the influence going forth to the worlds may be increased, by devout worshippers, who associate themselves mentally, but not physically, with the act.

We now turn to the second of the Sacraments[Pg 355], the Sacrifice of the Eucharist, which symbolizes the eternal Sacrifice we've already discussed. This is the daily sacrifice made by the Catholic Church around the world, reflecting that eternal Sacrifice through which the worlds were created and are continually sustained. It should be offered daily, as its ultimate example is always present. In this act, people participate in the process of Sacrifice, align themselves with it, acknowledge its significance, and willingly connect with its influence across the worlds. To fully identify with this, it is essential to partake in the physical elements of the Sacrament. However, many of its benefits can still be gained, and the impact on the world can be amplified by devoted worshippers who engage with the act mentally, even if they do not participate physically.

This great function of Christian worship loses its force and meaning when it is regarded as nothing more than a mere commemoration of a past sacrifice, as a pictorial allegory without a deep ensouling[Pg 356] truth, as a breaking of bread and a pouring out of wine without a sharing in the eternal Sacrifice. So to see it is to make it a mere shell, a dead picture instead of a living reality. "The cup of blessing which we bless, is it not the communion [the communication of, the sharing in] of the blood of Christ?" asks the apostle. "The bread which we break, is it not the communion of the body of Christ?"[341] And he goes on to point out that all who eat of a sacrifice become partakers of a common nature, and are joined into a single body, which is united to, shares the nature of, that Being who is, present in the sacrifice. A fact of the invisible world is here concerned, and he speaks with the authority of knowledge. Invisible Beings pour of their essence into the materials used in any sacramental rite, and those who partake of those materials—which become assimilated in the body and enter into its ingredients—are thereby united to those whose essence is in it, and they all share a common nature. This is true when we take even ordinary food[Pg 357] from the hand of another—part of his nature, his vital magnetism, mingles with our own; how much more true then when the food has been solemnly and purposely impregnated with higher magnetisms, which affect the subtle bodies as well as the physical. If we would understand the meaning and use of the Eucharist we must realise these facts of the invisible worlds, and we must see in it a link between the earthly and the heavenly, as well as an act of the universal worship, a co-operation, an association, with the Law of Sacrifice, else it loses the greater part of its significance.

This important aspect of Christian worship loses its impact and meaning when it's seen as just a simple remembrance of a past sacrifice or a symbolic story without any deeper truth. When it's just about breaking bread and pouring wine without connecting to the eternal Sacrifice, it becomes nothing more than an empty shell, a dead image instead of a vibrant reality. "Isn't the cup of blessing that we give thanks for a sharing in the blood of Christ?" the apostle asks. "Isn't the bread we break a sharing in the body of Christ?" He points out that everyone who shares in a sacrifice becomes part of a common nature and is brought together into one body that unites with and shares the essence of that Being who is present in the sacrifice. This involves a fact from the unseen world, and he speaks with authoritative knowledge. Invisible beings infuse their essence into the materials used in any sacramental rite, and those who consume these materials—integrating them into their bodies—become united with the essence contained in them, sharing a common nature. This is true even when we eat ordinary food from others—part of their essence and vital energy blends with our own; how much truer is it when the food has been intentionally infused with higher energies that impact both our subtle and physical bodies? To truly grasp the meaning and purpose of the Eucharist, we need to understand these realities of the invisible realm and recognize it as a connection between the earthly and the heavenly, as well as an act of universal worship, a collaboration, and a partnership with the Law of Sacrifice; otherwise, it loses much of its significance.

The employment of bread and wine as the materials for this Sacrament—like the use of water in the Sacrament of Baptism—is of very ancient and general usage. The Persians offered bread and wine to Mithra, and similar offerings were made in Tibet and Tartary. Jeremiah speaks of the cakes and the drink offered to the Queen of Heaven by the Jews in Egypt, they taking part in the Egyptian worship.[342] In Genesis we read that Melchisedek, the[Pg 358] King-Initiate, used bread and wine in the blessing of Abraham.[343] In the various Greek Mysteries bread and wine were used, and Williamson mentions their use also among the Mexicans, Peruvians, and Druids.[344]

The use of bread and wine for this Sacrament—similar to how water is used in the Sacrament of Baptism—has a long and widespread history. The Persians presented bread and wine to Mithra, and similar offerings were made in Tibet and Tartary. Jeremiah mentions the cakes and drink offered to the Queen of Heaven by the Jews in Egypt, as they participated in Egyptian worship.[342] In Genesis, we read that Melchisedek, the[Pg 358] King-Initiate, used bread and wine to bless Abraham.[343] In the various Greek Mysteries, bread and wine were also utilized, and Williamson notes their use among the Mexicans, Peruvians, and Druids.[344]

The bread stands as the general symbol for the food that builds up the body, and the wine as symbol of the blood, regarded as the life-fluid, "for the life of the flesh is in the blood."[345] Hence members of a family are said to share the same blood, and to be of the blood of a person is to be of his kin. Hence, also, the old ceremonies of the "blood-covenant"; when a stranger was made one of a family or of a tribe, some drops of blood from a member were transfused into his veins, or he drank them—usually mingled with water—and was thenceforth considered as being a born member of the family or tribe, as being of its blood. Similarly, in the Eucharist, the worshippers partake of the bread, symbolising the body, the nature, of the Christ, and of the wine symbolising the blood, the[Pg 359] life of the Christ, and become of His kin, one with Him.

The bread symbolizes the food that nourishes the body, while wine symbolizes blood, seen as the essence of life, "for the life of the flesh is in the blood."[345] This is why family members are said to share the same blood, and being of someone's blood means being part of their family. This also relates to the ancient rituals of the "blood covenant"; when a stranger was accepted into a family or tribe, some blood from a member was mixed with theirs or ingested—often diluted with water—making them a recognized member of that family or tribe, part of its lineage. In the same way, during the Eucharist, worshippers consume the bread, symbolizing Christ's body, and the wine, representing His blood, thus becoming connected to Him, one with Him.

The Word of Power is the formula "This is My Body," "This is My Blood." This it is which works the change which we shall consider in a moment, and transforms the materials into vehicles of spiritual energies. The Sign of Power is the hand extended over the bread and the wine, and the Sign of the Cross should be made upon them, though this is not always done among Protestants. These are the outer essentials of the Sacrament of the Eucharist.

The Word of Power is the phrase "This is My Body," "This is My Blood." It's this that brings about the change we'll discuss shortly, transforming the elements into carriers of spiritual energy. The Sign of Power is the hand held over the bread and wine, and the Sign of the Cross should be made on them, although this is not always practiced among Protestants. These are the key external elements of the Sacrament of the Eucharist.

It is important to understand the change which takes place in this Sacrament, for it is more than the magnetisation previously explained, though this also is wrought. We have here a special instance of a general law.

It’s important to grasp the transformation that occurs in this Sacrament, as it’s more than just the magnetization mentioned earlier, although that is also involved. We have a specific case of a broader principle here.

By the occultist, a visible thing is regarded as the last, the physical, expression of an invisible truth. Everything is the physical expression of a thought. An object is but an idea externalised and densified. All the objects in the world are Divine ideas expressed[Pg 360] in physical matter. That being so, the reality of the object does not lie in the outer form but in the inner life, in the idea that has shaped and moulded the matter into an expression of itself. In the higher worlds, the matter being very subtle and plastic, shapes itself very swiftly to the idea, and changes form as the thought changes. As matter becomes denser, heavier, it changes form less readily, more slowly, until, in the physical world, the changes are at their slowest in consequence of the resistance of the dense matter of which the physical world is composed. Let sufficient time be given, however, and even this heavy matter changes under the pressure of the ensouling idea, as may be seen by the graving on the face of the expressions of habitual thoughts and emotions.

By the occultist, a visible thing is seen as the final, physical representation of an invisible truth. Everything is the physical manifestation of a thought. An object is simply an idea made external and solid. All the objects in the world are Divine ideas expressed in physical matter. With that in mind, the reality of an object isn't found in its outer appearance but in its inner essence, in the idea that has shaped and formed the matter into an expression of itself. In the higher realms, where matter is much subtler and more fluid, it quickly adapts to the idea and changes form as thoughts shift. As matter becomes denser and heavier, it changes form less easily and more slowly, until, in the physical world, the changes happen at their slowest due to the resistance of the dense matter that makes up the physical world. Given enough time, though, even this heavy matter transforms under the influence of the animating idea, as can be observed in the imprints left by recurring thoughts and emotions on one's expressions.

This is the truth which underlies what is called the doctrine of Transubstantiation, so extraordinarily misunderstood by the ordinary Protestant. But such is the fate of occult truths when they are presented to the ignorant. The "substance" that is changed is the idea which[Pg 361] makes a thing to be what it is; "bread" is not mere flour and water; the idea which governs the mixing, the manipulation, of the flour and water, that is the "substance" which makes it "bread," and the flour and the water are what are technically called the "accidents," the arrangements of matter that give form to the idea. With a different idea, or substance, flour and water would take a different form, as indeed they do when assimilated by the body. So also chemists have discovered that the same kind and the same number of chemical atoms may be arranged in different ways and thus become entirely different things in their properties, though the materials are unchanged; such "isomeric compounds" are among the most interesting of modern chemical discoveries; the arrangement of similar atoms under different ideas gives different bodies.

This is the truth behind what’s known as the doctrine of Transubstantiation, which is often greatly misunderstood by the average Protestant. But that’s what happens to hidden truths when they’re presented to those who don’t know. The "substance" that changes is the concept that defines what something is; "bread" isn't just flour and water; it's the idea that governs the mixing and manipulation of the flour and water that is the "substance" that makes it "bread." The flour and water are what we technically call the "accidents," which are the arrangements of matter that give shape to the idea. With a different idea or substance, flour and water would take on a different form, just as they do when absorbed by the body. Similarly, chemists have found that the same type and number of chemical atoms can be arranged in different ways, turning them into completely different substances with distinct properties, even though the materials remain the same; such "isomeric compounds" are among the most fascinating modern chemical discoveries. The arrangement of similar atoms under different concepts results in different substances.

What, then, is this change of substance in the materials used in the Eucharist? The idea that makes the object has been changed; in their normal condition bread and wine are food-stuffs, expressive of the[Pg 362] divine ideas of nutritive objects, objects fitted for the building up of bodies. The new idea is that of the Christ nature and life, fitted for the building up of the spiritual nature and life of man. That is the change of substance; the object remains unchanged in its "accidents," its physical material, but the subtle matter connected with it has changed under the pressure of the changed idea, and new properties are imparted by this change. They affect the subtle bodies of the participants, and attune them to the nature and life of the Christ. On the "worthiness" of the participant depends the extent to which he can be thus attuned.

What, then, is this change of substance in the materials used in the Eucharist? The concept that defines the object has been altered; in their normal state, bread and wine are food items, representing the divine ideas of nourishing things, objects meant for building up physical bodies. The new concept is that of the nature and life of Christ, suitable for developing the spiritual nature and life of a person. That is the change of substance; the object itself stays the same in its "accidents," its physical properties, but the underlying essence associated with it has shifted due to the new concept, and new characteristics are added by this change. These affect the subtle bodies of the participants and align them with the nature and life of Christ. The "worthiness" of the participant determines how well they can be aligned in this way.

The unworthy participant, subjected to the same process, is injuriously affected by it, for his nature, resisting the pressure, is bruised and rent by the forces to which it is unable to respond, as an object may be broken into pieces by vibrations which it is unable to reproduce.

The unworthy participant, going through the same process, is negatively impacted by it because their nature, resisting the pressure, is bruised and torn by the forces they can't respond to, just like an object can be shattered into pieces by vibrations it can't replicate.

The worthy partaker, then, becomes one with the Sacrifice, with the Christ, and so becomes at one with also, united to,[Pg 363] the divine Life, which is the Father of the Christ. Inasmuch as the act of Sacrifice on the side of form is the yielding up of the life it separates from others to be part of the common Life, the offering of the separated channel to be a channel of the one Life, so by that surrender the sacrificer becomes one with God. It is the giving itself of the lower to be a part of the higher, the yielding of the body as an instrument of the separated will to be an instrument of the divine Will, the presenting of men's "bodies as a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God."[346] Thus it has been truly taught in the Church that those who rightly take part in the Eucharist enjoy a partaking of the Christ-life poured out for men. The transmuting of the lower into the higher is the object of this, as of all, Sacraments. The changing of the lower force by its union with the loftier is what is sought by those who participate in it; and those who know the inner truth, and realise the fact of the higher life, may in any religion, by means of its sacraments, come into fuller, completer touch with the[Pg 364] divine Life that upholds the worlds, if they bring to the rite the receptive nature, the act of faith, the opened heart, which are necessary for the possibilities of the Sacrament to be realised.

The deserving participant, then, becomes one with the Sacrifice, with Christ, and is therefore united with the divine Life, which is the Father of Christ. Since the act of Sacrifice, in terms of its form, involves giving up a life that separates itself from others to become part of the common Life, the offering of an individual channel to be a conduit for the one Life, this surrender allows the sacrificer to become one with God. It's about giving the lower self to be part of something higher, offering the body as a tool of the separated will to serve as a tool of the divine Will, presenting people's "bodies as a living sacrifice, holy and pleasing to God." Thus, the Church has truly taught that those who partake properly in the Eucharist experience a sharing in the Christ-life given for humanity. The transformation of the lower into the higher is the purpose of this and all Sacraments. The goal for those who participate is to change the lower energy through its union with the higher energy; and those who understand the deeper truth and recognize the existence of higher life can, in any faith, through its sacraments, connect more fully and completely with the divine Life that sustains the universe, provided they approach the rite with a receptive spirit, an act of faith, and an open heart, which are essential for realizing the possibilities of the Sacrament.

The Sacrament of Marriage shows out the marks of a Sacrament as clearly and as definitely as do Baptism and the Eucharist. Both the outer sign and the inward grace are there. The material is the Ring—the circle which is the symbol of the everlasting. The Word of Power is the ancient formula, "In the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost." The Sign of Power is the joining of hands, symbolising the joining of the lives. These make up the outer essentials of the Sacrament.

The Sacrament of Marriage displays the characteristics of a Sacrament as clearly and definitively as Baptism and the Eucharist. Both the visible sign and the inner grace are present. The material sign is the Ring—a circle that symbolizes eternity. The Word of Power is the traditional formula, "In the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit." The Sign of Power is the joining of hands, symbolizing the merging of lives. Together, these elements make up the essential aspects of the Sacrament.

The inner grace is the union of mind with mind, of heart with heart, which makes possible the realisation of the unity of spirit, without which Marriage is no Marriage, but a mere temporary conjunction of bodies. The giving and receiving of the ring, the pronouncing of the formula, the joining of hands, these form the pictorial allegory; if the inner[Pg 365] grace be not received, if the participants do not open themselves to it by their wish for the union of their whole natures, the Sacrament for them loses its beneficent properties, and becomes a mere form.

The inner grace is the connection of minds and hearts, which makes it possible to realize the unity of spirit. Without this, marriage isn’t truly marriage; it’s just a temporary union of bodies. The giving and receiving of the ring, the reciting of the vows, and the joining of hands all serve as a visual representation. If the inner[Pg 365] grace isn’t accepted, and if the participants don’t open themselves to it by genuinely wanting to unite their whole selves, then the sacrament loses its positive impact and just becomes a ritual.

But Marriage has a yet deeper meaning; religions with one voice have proclaimed it to be the image on earth of the union between the earthly and the heavenly, the union between God and man. And even then its significance is not exhausted, for it is the image of the relation between Spirit and Matter, between the Trinity and the Universe. So deep, so far-reaching, is the meaning of the joining of man and woman in Marriage.

But marriage has an even deeper meaning; religions everywhere have declared it to be the representation on earth of the union between the earthly and the heavenly, the union between God and humanity. And even then, its significance isn't fully captured, for it symbolizes the relationship between Spirit and Matter, between the Trinity and the Universe. The meaning of the joining of man and woman in marriage is so profound and expansive.

Herein the man stands as representing the Spirit, the Trinity of Life, and the woman as representing the Matter, the Trinity of formative material. One gives life, the other receives and nourishes it. They are complementary to each other, two inseparable halves of one whole, neither existing apart from the other. As Spirit implies Matter and Matter Spirit, so husband implies wife and wife husband. As the abstract Existence manifests in[Pg 366] two aspects, as a duality of Spirit and Matter, neither independent of the other, but each coming into manifestation with the other, so is humanity manifested in two aspects—husband and wife, neither able to exist apart, and appearing together. They are not twain but one, a dual-faced unity. God and the Universe are imaged in Marriage; thus closely linked are husband and wife.

Here, the man represents the Spirit, the Trinity of Life, and the woman represents Matter, the Trinity of formative material. One gives life, while the other receives and nurtures it. They complement each other, two inseparable halves of a whole, with neither able to exist without the other. Just as Spirit implies Matter and Matter implies Spirit, husband implies wife and wife implies husband. As the abstract Existence shows up in two aspects—a duality of Spirit and Matter—neither is independent of the other; each comes into existence alongside the other. Similarly, humanity is manifested in two aspects—husband and wife—who cannot exist apart and appear together. They are not two but one, a dual-faced unity. God and the Universe are reflected in Marriage; thus, husband and wife are closely linked.

It is said above that Marriage is also an image of the union between God and man, between the universal and the individualised Spirits. This symbolism is used in all the great scriptures of the world—Hindu, Hebrew, Christian. And it has been extended by taking the individualised Spirit as a Nation or a Church, a collection of such Spirits knit into a unity. So Isaiah declared to Israel: "Thy Maker is thine Husband; the Lord of hosts is His name.... As the bridegroom rejoiceth over the bride, so shall thy God rejoice over thee."[347] So S. Paul wrote that the mystery of Marriage represented Christ and the Church.[348][Pg 367]

It’s stated earlier that marriage is a symbol of the connection between God and humanity, between the universal Spirit and individual Spirits. This symbolism appears in all the major scriptures of the world—Hindu, Hebrew, Christian. It has also been expanded to view the individual Spirit as a Nation or a Church, a group of these Spirits brought together in unity. For example, Isaiah said to Israel: "Your Maker is your Husband; the Lord of hosts is His name.... As the bridegroom delights in the bride, so your God will delight in you."[347] Similarly, S. Paul wrote that the mystery of marriage symbolizes Christ and the Church.[348][Pg 367]

If we think of Spirit and Matter as latent, unmanifested, then we see no production; manifested together, there is evolution. And so when the halves of humanity are not manifested as husband and wife, there is no production of fresh life. Moreover, they should be united in order that there may be a growth of life in each, a swifter evolution, a more rapid progress, by the half that each can give to each, each supplying what the other lacks. The twain should be blended into one, setting forth the spiritual possibilities of man. And they show forth also the perfect Man, in whose nature Spirit and Matter are both completely developed and perfectly balanced, the divine Man who unites in his own person husband and wife, the male and female elements in nature, as "God and Man are one Christ."[349]

If we think of Spirit and Matter as hidden and not yet expressed, then we see no creation; when they come together, there is evolution. So, when the two halves of humanity aren’t expressed as husband and wife, there’s no generation of new life. Additionally, they should be united so that there can be growth in each, a faster evolution, and quicker progress, with each partner providing what the other lacks. They should blend into one, highlighting the spiritual potential of humanity. They also represent the perfect Man, in whom Spirit and Matter are fully developed and balanced, the divine Man who embodies both husband and wife, the male and female aspects of nature, as "God and Man are one Christ."[349]

Those who thus study the Sacrament of Marriage will understand why religions have ever regarded Marriage as indissoluble, and have thought it better that a few ill-matched pairs should suffer for a few[Pg 368] years than that the ideal of true Marriage should be permanently lowered for all. A nation must choose whether it will adopt as its national ideal a spiritual or an earthly bond in Marriage, the seeking in it of a spiritual unity, or the regarding it as merely a physical union. The one is the religious idea of Marriage as a Sacrament; the other the materialistic idea of it as an ordinary terminable contract. The student of the Lesser Mysteries must ever see in it a sacramental rite.

Those who study the Sacrament of Marriage will understand why religions have always viewed Marriage as unbreakable, believing that it's better for a few mismatched couples to endure suffering for a while than to permanently lower the standard of true Marriage for everyone. A nation must decide whether it will embrace a spiritual or a worldly concept of Marriage, aiming for a spiritual unity or merely seeing it as a physical connection. The former is the religious perspective of Marriage as a Sacrament; the latter is the materialistic view of it as an ordinary, temporary contract. Those studying the Lesser Mysteries must always see it as a sacred ritual.


Chapter 14.

REVELATION.

All the religions known to us are the custodians of Sacred Books, and appeal to these books for the settlement of disputed questions. They always contain the teachings given by the founder of the religion, or by later teachers regarded as possessing super-human knowledge. Even when a religion gives birth to many discordant sects, each sect will cling to the Sacred Canon, and will put upon its word the interpretation which best fits in with its own peculiar doctrines. However widely may be separated in belief the extreme Roman Catholic and the extreme Protestant, they both appeal to the same Bible. However far apart may be the philosophic Vedântin and the most illiterate Vallabhâchârya, they both regard the same Vedas as supreme. However bitterly opposed to each other may be the Shias[Pg 370] and the Sunnis, they both regard as sacred the same Kurân. Controversies and quarrels may arise as to the meaning of texts, but the Book itself, in every case, is looked on with the utmost reverence. And rightly so; for all such books contain fragments of The Revelation, selected by One of the great Ones who hold it in trust; such a fragment is embodied in what down here we call a Revelation, or a Scripture, and some part of the world rejoices in it as in a treasure of vast value. The fragment is chosen according to the needs of the time, the capacity of the people to whom it is given, the type of the race whom it is intended to instruct. It is generally given in a peculiar form, in which the outer history, or story, or song, or psalm, or prophecy, appears to the superficial or ignorant reader to be the whole book; but in these deeper meanings lie concealed, sometimes in numbers, sometimes in words constructed on a hidden plan—a cypher, in fact—sometimes in symbols, recognisable by the instructed, sometimes in allegories written as histories, and in many other ways. These Books, indeed,[Pg 371] have something of a sacramental character about them, an outer form and an inner life, an outer symbol and an inner truth. Those only can explain the hidden meaning who have been trained by those instructed in it; hence the dictum of S. Peter that "no prophecy of the Scripture is of any private interpretation."[350] The elaborate explanations of texts of the Bible, with which the volumes of patristic literature abound, seem fanciful and overstrained to the prosaic modern mind. The play upon numbers, upon letters, the apparently fantastic interpretations of paragraphs that, on the face of them, are ordinary historical statements of a simple character, exasperate the modern reader, who demands to have his facts presented clearly and coherently, and above all, requires what he feels to be solid ground under his feet. He declines absolutely to follow the light-footed mystic over what seem to him to be quaking morasses, in a wild chase after dancing will-o'-the-wisps, which appear and disappear with bewildering and irrational[Pg 372] caprice. Yet the men who wrote these exasperating treatises were men of brilliant intellect and calm judgment, the master-builders of the Church. And to those who read them aright they are still full of hints and suggestions, and indicate many an obscure pathway that leads to the goal of knowledge, and that might otherwise be missed.

All the religions we know are the guardians of Sacred Books and turn to these texts to resolve disputed issues. These books usually contain the teachings of the religion's founder or later teachers who are viewed as having extraordinary knowledge. Even when a religion spawns various conflicting sects, each group will cling to the Sacred Canon and interpret its words in a way that aligns with its own unique beliefs. No matter how different the far-right Roman Catholic and the far-right Protestant may be, they both refer to the same Bible. Similarly, regardless of the distance in beliefs between the philosophical Vedântin and the most uneducated Vallabhâchârya, they both see the same Vedas as paramount. Despite the bitter opposition between Shias[Pg 370] and Sunnis, they still venerate the same Kurân. Disagreements and disputes may arise over the meanings of texts, but the Book itself is always regarded with the utmost respect. And rightly so, because all these books contain fragments of The Revelation, chosen by one of the great Ones who holds it in trust; such a fragment is what we refer to as a Revelation or Scripture, and some parts of the world treasure it as a valuable asset. The fragment is selected based on the needs of the time, the understanding of its people, and the type of race it aims to teach. It is often presented in a specific form, where the outer history, story, song, psalm, or prophecy may appear to a casual or uninformed reader to be the whole book; yet, deeper meanings are concealed within it, sometimes as numbers, sometimes in words structured in a hidden scheme—a cipher, in fact—sometimes in symbols recognizable by the knowledgeable, sometimes in allegories written as histories, and through many other methods. These Books indeed,[Pg 371] possess a sacramental quality, with an outer form and an inner life, an outer symbol and an inner truth. Only those trained by knowledgeable sources can explain the hidden meaning; hence St. Peter's statement that "no prophecy of the Scripture is of any private interpretation."[350] The in-depth interpretations of biblical texts found in the volumes of patristic literature may seem fanciful and exaggerated to the practical modern mind. The focus on numbers and letters, and seemingly bizarre interpretations of passages that appear to be straightforward historical accounts, frustrate the modern reader, who wants facts to be presented clearly and coherently, and who especially needs to feel solid ground beneath him. He absolutely refuses to follow the light-footed mystic over what he perceives to be unstable marshes, on a wild chase for fleeting illusions that come and go with bewildering and irrational unpredictability. Yet, the people who authored these frustrating treatises were individuals of sharp intellect and sound judgment, the master builders of the Church. For those who read them correctly, they still offer numerous hints and suggestions, indicating many obscure paths that lead to knowledge which might otherwise be overlooked.

We have already seen that Origen, one of the sanest of men, and versed in occult knowledge, teaches that the Scriptures are three-fold, consisting of Body, Soul, and Spirit.[351] He says that the Body of the Scriptures is made up of the outer words of the histories and the stories, and he does not hesitate to say that these are not literally true, but are only stories for the instruction of the ignorant. He even goes so far as to remark that statements are made in those stories that are obviously untrue, in order that the glaring contradictions that lie on the surface may stir people up to inquire as to the real meaning of these impossible relations. He says that so long as men are ignorant, the Body[Pg 373] is enough for them; it conveys teaching, it gives instruction, and they do not see the self-contradictions and impossibilities involved in the literal statements, and therefore are not disturbed by them. As the mind grows, as the intellect develops, these contradictions and impossibilities strike the attention, and bewilder the student; then he is stirred up to seek for a deeper meaning, and he begins to find the Soul of the Scriptures. That Soul is the reward of the intelligent seeker, and he escapes from the bonds of the letter that killeth.[352] The Spirit of the Scriptures may only be seen by the spiritually enlightened man; only those in whom the Spirit is evolved can understand the spiritual meaning: "the things of God knoweth no man but the Spirit of God ... which things also we speak, not in the words which man's wisdom teacheth, but which the Holy Ghost teacheth."[353]

We’ve already noted that Origen, one of the wisest individuals and knowledgeable about esoteric topics, teaches that the Scriptures are three-fold: Body, Soul, and Spirit.[351] He explains that the Body of the Scriptures consists of the outer words of the histories and stories, and he asserts that these aren’t literally true; rather, they are meant to instruct the uninformed. He goes further to point out that some statements in these stories are clearly not true, so that the obvious contradictions can prompt people to seek out the true meaning behind these impossible narratives. He says that as long as people remain ignorant, the Body[Pg 373] is sufficient for them; it teaches lessons and provides instruction, and they don’t notice the self-contradictions and impossibilities in the literal statements, so they aren’t bothered by them. As the mind matures and intellect grows, these contradictions and impossibilities catch attention and confuse the learner; then they are motivated to search for a deeper meaning, leading them to discover the Soul of the Scriptures. This Soul is the reward for the discerning seeker, helping them break free from the constraints of the letter that kills.[352] The Spirit of the Scriptures can only be perceived by the spiritually enlightened; only those in whom the Spirit has evolved can grasp the spiritual meaning: "the things of God knoweth no man but the Spirit of God ... which things also we speak, not in the words which man's wisdom teacheth, but which the Holy Ghost teacheth."[353]

The reason for this method of Revelation is not far to seek; it is the only way in which one teaching can be made[Pg 374] available for minds at different stages of evolution, and thus train not only those to whom it is immediately given, but also those who, later in time, shall have progressed beyond those to whom the Revelation was first made. Man is progressive; the outer meaning given long ago to unevolved men must needs be very limited, and unless something deeper and fuller than this outer meaning were hidden within it, the value of the Scripture would perish when a few millennia had passed away. Whereas by this method of successive meanings it is given a perennial value, and evolved men may find in it hidden treasures, until the day when, possessing the whole, they no longer need the part.

The reason for this method of Revelation is not hard to identify; it's the only way to make one teaching accessible to people at different stages of development. This approach trains not only those who receive it initially but also those who will advance beyond them later on. Humanity is always evolving; the basic meaning given long ago to less developed individuals has to be quite limited, and if there wasn't something deeper and richer hidden within it, the Scriptures would lose their significance after a few millennia. However, with this method of layered meanings, it maintains ongoing relevance, allowing more advanced individuals to uncover hidden treasures until the day they possess the entirety and no longer need just a part.

The world-Bibles, then, are fragments—fragments of Revelation, and therefore are rightly described as Revelation.

The world-Bibles, then, are pieces—pieces of Revelation, and so they are accurately called Revelation.

The next deeper sense of the word describes the mass of teaching held by the great Brotherhood of spiritual Teachers in trust for men; this teaching is embodied in books, written in symbols, and in these is contained an account of kosmic laws, of[Pg 375] the principles on which the kosmos is founded, of the methods by which it is evolved, of all the beings that compose it, of its past, its present, its future; this is The Revelation. This is the priceless treasure which the Guardians of humanity hold in charge, and from which they select, from time to time, fragments to form the Bibles of the world.

The next deeper meaning of the word refers to the collection of teachings held by the great Brotherhood of spiritual Teachers for humanity; these teachings are found in books, written in symbols, and contain an account of cosmic laws, of[Pg 375] the principles on which the universe is built, the methods through which it evolves, all the beings that make it up, and its past, present, and future; this is The Revelation. This is the invaluable treasure that the Guardians of humanity protect, from which they sometimes choose fragments to create the Bibles of the world.

Thirdly, the Revelation, highest, fullest, best, is the Self-unveiling of Deity in the kosmos, the revealing of attribute after attribute, power after power, beauty after beauty, in all the various forms which in their totality compose the universe. He shows His splendour in the sun, His infinity in the star-flecked fields of space, His strength in mountains, His purity in snow-clad peaks and translucent air, His energy in rolling ocean-billows, His beauty in tumbling mountain-torrent, in smooth, clear lake, in cool, deep forest and in sunlit plain, His fearlessness in the hero, His patience in the saint, His tenderness in mother-love, His protecting care in father and in king, His wisdom in the philosopher, His knowledge in the scientist,[Pg 376] His healing power in the physician, His justice in the judge, His wealth in the merchant, His teaching power in the priest, His industry in the artisan. He whispers to us in the breeze, He smiles on us in the sunshine, He chides us in disease, He stimulates us, now by success and now by failure. Everywhere and in everything He gives us glimpses of Himself to lure us on to love Him, and He hides Himself that we may learn to stand alone. To know Him everywhere is the true Wisdom; to love Him everywhere is the true Desire; to serve Him everywhere is the true Action. This Self-revealing of God is the highest Revelation; all others are subsidiary and partial.

Thirdly, the Revelation, the highest, fullest, and best, is the Self-revealing of God in the universe, showing attribute after attribute, power after power, beauty after beauty, in all the different forms that together make up the cosmos. He displays His splendor in the sun, His infinity in the starry expanses of space, His strength in mountains, His purity in snow-covered peaks and clear air, His energy in crashing ocean waves, His beauty in rushing mountain streams, in serene, clear lakes, in cool, deep forests, and in sunlit plains, His fearlessness in heroes, His patience in saints, His tenderness in a mother's love, His protective care in fathers and kings, His wisdom in philosophers, His knowledge in scientists, His healing power in doctors, His justice in judges, His wealth in merchants, His teaching power in priests, and His industriousness in artisans. He speaks to us in the breeze, smiles at us in the sunshine, admonishes us during illness, and motivates us through both success and failure. Everywhere and in everything, He gives us glimpses of Himself to draw us to love Him, while also hiding Himself so that we can learn to be independent. To know Him everywhere is true Wisdom; to love Him everywhere is true Desire; to serve Him everywhere is true Action. This Self-revealing of God is the highest Revelation; all others are partial and secondary.

The inspired man is the man to whom some of this Revelation has come by the direct action of the universal Spirit on the separated Spirit that is His offspring, who has felt the illuminating influence of Spirit on Spirit. No man knows the truth so that he can never lose it, no man knows the truth so that he can never doubt it, until the Revelation has come to him as though he stood alone on earth, until[Pg 377] the Divine without has spoken to the Divine within, in the temple of the human heart, and the man thus knows by himself and not by another.

The inspired person is someone who has received part of this Revelation through the direct influence of the universal Spirit on the individual Spirit that is its creation, who has experienced the enlightening effect of Spirit on Spirit. No one truly knows the truth to the point where they can never lose it, and no one knows the truth to the point where they can never doubt it, until the Revelation has reached them as if they were the only person on earth, until the Divine outside has communicated with the Divine inside, in the sanctuary of the human heart, and the person thus knows for themselves, not through someone else.

In a lesser degree a man is inspired when one greater than he stimulates within him powers which as yet are normally inactive, or even takes possession of him, temporarily using his body as a vehicle. Such an illuminated man, at the time of his inspiration, can speak that which is beyond his knowledge, and utter truths till then unguessed. Truths are sometimes thus poured out through a human channel for the helping of the world, and some One greater than the speaker sends down his life into the human vehicle, and they rush forth from human lips; then a great teacher speaks yet more greatly than he knows, the Angel of the Lord having touched his lips with fire.[354] Such are the Prophets of the race, who at some periods have spoken with overwhelming conviction, with clear insight, with complete understanding of the spiritual needs of man.[Pg 378] Then the words live with a life immortal, and the speaker is truly a messenger from God. The man who has thus known can never again quite lose the memory of the knowledge, and he carries within his heart a certainty which can never quite disappear. The light may vanish and the darkness come down upon him; the gleam from heaven may fade and clouds may surround him; threat, question, challenge, may assail him; but within his heart there nestles the Secret of Peace—he knows, or knows that he has known.

A man is somewhat inspired when someone greater than he awakens within him dormant abilities or even momentarily takes over his body, using it as a vessel. In that moment of inspiration, such an enlightened person can express ideas beyond their understanding and reveal truths that were previously unknown. These truths can flow through a human channel to help the world, with a greater presence imparting its essence into the individual, causing profound expressions to emerge from human lips. A great teacher then communicates more powerfully than he realizes, touched by the divine. Such are the Prophets of our humanity, who at times have spoken with compelling conviction, clear insight, and a deep understanding of humanity's spiritual needs. Then, their words possess an everlasting vitality, and the speaker becomes a true messenger of God. Once someone has experienced this knowledge, they can never fully forget it, carrying a certainty in their heart that never completely fades. The light may disappear and darkness may envelop them; the heavenly glimmer may dim, and clouds may surround them; challenges and doubts may attack; but deep within their heart lies the Secret of Peace—they know, or know that they have known.

That remembrance of true inspiration, that reality of the hidden life, has been put into beautiful and true words by Frederick Myers, in his well-known poem, S. Paul. The apostle is speaking of his own experience, and is trying to give articulate expression to that which he remembers; he is figured as unable to thoroughly reproduce his knowledge, although he knows and his certainty does not waver:

That memory of true inspiration, that reality of the hidden life, has been captured in beautiful and genuine words by Frederick Myers in his famous poem, S. Paul. The apostle shares his own experience and is trying to express what he remembers; he is portrayed as unable to fully convey his understanding, even though he knows and his certainty remains unwavering:

So, even I, yearning for His inspiring,
I, who have spoken with Him, forget again;
Yes, many days filled with tears and longing,
Offer God your patience and your suffering.
[Pg 379]
Then through the ongoing issue of my confession,
Then, through the pain and intensity of my prayer,
Startled by the shock of His possession, leaps.
It excites me and moves me, and the Lord is present.

Look, if someone were to write on your rafter
Mene and Mene in the waves of fire,
Do you think you could remember anything after that?
Should we completely trace the couplet back to its original form?

Look, if some unusual understandable thunder
Sang to the earth the secret of a star,
You should rarely catch it, both for fear and for amazement,
Here's what we know of the story so far!

I barely catch the words of His revelation,
I can barely hear Him and only understand a little.
Only the power inside me is ringing out.
Lives on my lips and calls to my hand.

Whoever has experienced the Spirit of the Highest
Cannot confuse, doubt, or deny Him;
Yes, with one voice, O world, even if you deny it,
Stand on that side, because I’m on this one.

Instead, the world will question when she comes back.
It pours in the rain and rushes from the ground;
Instead of him in whom the great idea is conceived
Awakens in his spirit to grow closer to God.

No, even if you were to strip him of his glory,
Blind, tormented, driven crazy, and alone,
Even on the cross, he would stick to his story,
Yes, and in Hell would whisper, "I have known."

Those who have in any sense realised that God is around them, in them, and in everything, will be able to understand how a place or an object may become "sacred" by a slight objectivisation of this perennial universal Presence, so that those become able to sense Him who do not normally feel His omnipresence. This is generally effected by some highly advanced man, in whom the inner Divinity is largely unfolded, and whose subtle bodies are therefore responsive to the subtler vibrations of consciousness. Through such a man, or by such a man, spiritual energies may be poured forth, and these will unite themselves with his pure vital magnetism. He can then pour them forth on any object, and its ether and bodies of subtler matter will become attuned to his vibrations, as before explained, and further, the Divinity within it can more easily manifest. Such an object becomes "magnetised," and, if this be strongly done, the object will itself become a magnetic centre, capable in turn of magnetising those who approach it. Thus a body electrified by an electric[Pg 381] machine will affect other bodies near which it may be placed.

Those who have realized in any way that God is present around them, within them, and in everything will understand how a place or object can become "sacred" by slightly focusing on this timeless universal Presence, enabling those who typically don't sense His omnipresence to feel Him. This is usually done by a highly advanced person, in whom the inner Divinity is largely developed, and whose subtle bodies are attuned to the finer vibrations of consciousness. Through such a person, spiritual energies can be released, which will merge with their pure vital magnetism. They can then direct these energies onto any object, causing its ether and subtler material bodies to resonate with their vibrations, as previously explained, and furthermore, the Divinity within it can manifest more easily. Such an object becomes "magnetized," and if this is done strongly, the object will itself become a magnetic center, capable of attracting those who come near it. Similarly, a body charged by an electric machine will affect other nearby bodies.

An object thus rendered "sacred" is a very useful adjunct to prayer and meditation. The subtle bodies of the worshipper are attuned to its high vibrations, and he finds himself quieted, soothed, pacified, without effort on his own part. He is thrown into a condition in which prayer and meditation are easy and fruitful instead of difficult and barren, and an irksome exercise becomes insensibly delightful. If the object be a representation of some sacred Person—a Crucifix, a Madonna and Child, an Angel, a Saint—there is a yet further gain. The Being represented, if his magnetism has been thrown into the image by the appropriate Word and Sign of Power, can re-inforce that magnetism with a very slight expenditure of spiritual energy, and may thus influence the devotee, or even show himself through the image, when otherwise he would not have done so. For in the spiritual world economy of forces is observed, and a small amount of energy will be expended where a larger would be withheld.[Pg 382]

An object considered "sacred" is a very helpful addition to prayer and meditation. The worshipper’s subtle bodies resonate with its high vibrations, and they find themselves calmed, comforted, and at peace without any effort. They enter a state where prayer and meditation become easy and rewarding rather than challenging and unproductive, turning a tedious task into an effortlessly enjoyable experience. If the object represents a sacred figure—a Crucifix, Madonna and Child, an Angel, or a Saint—there's an even greater benefit. The being represented, if its energy has been infused into the image by the right Word and Sign of Power, can amplify that energy with minimal spiritual effort, potentially influencing the devotee or even revealing itself through the image when it otherwise wouldn’t have. In the spiritual world, energy is used efficiently, and a small amount will be used where a larger amount might be reserved.[Pg 382]

An application of these same occult laws may be made to explain the use of all consecrated objects—relics, amulets, &c. They are all magnetised objects, more or less powerful, or useless, according to the knowledge, purity, and spirituality of the person who magnetises them.

An application of these same occult laws can be used to explain the purpose of all consecrated objects—relics, amulets, etc. They are all magnetized objects, varying in power or usefulness, depending on the knowledge, purity, and spirituality of the person who magnetizes them.

Places may similarly be made sacred, by the living in them of saints, whose pure magnetism, radiating from them, attunes the whole atmosphere to peace-giving vibrations. Sometimes holy men, or Beings from the higher worlds, will directly magnetise a certain place, as in the case mentioned in the Fourth Gospel, where an Angel came at a certain season and touched the water, giving it healing qualities.[355] In such places even careless worldly men will sometimes feel the blessed influence, and will be temporarily softened and inclined toward higher things. The divine Life in each man is ever trying to subdue the form, and mould it into an expression of itself; and it is easy to see how that Life will be aided by the form being thrown into vibrations[Pg 383] sympathetic with those of a more highly evolved Being, its own efforts being reinforced by a stronger power. The outer recognition of this effect is a sense of quiet, calm, and peace; the mind loses its restlessness, the heart its anxiety. Any one who observes himself will find that some places are more conducive to calm, to meditation, to religious thought, to worship, than others. In a room, a building, where there has been a great deal of worldly thought, of frivolous conversation, of mere rush of ordinary worldly life, it is far harder to quiet the mind and to concentrate the thought, than in a place where religious thought has been carried on year after year, century after century; there the mind becomes calm and tranquillised insensibly, and that which would have demanded serious effort in the first place is done without effort in the second.

Places can also be made sacred by the presence of saints, whose pure energy radiates from them and creates a peaceful atmosphere. Sometimes holy individuals or beings from higher realms will directly charge a specific location, like in the Fourth Gospel, where an angel came at a certain time and stirred the water, giving it healing powers.[355] In such locations, even those who are normally indifferent may feel this blessed influence and become temporarily more open to higher ideals. The divine essence within each person is always trying to tame the physical self and shape it into a reflection of that essence; it’s easy to see how this essence is supported when surrounded by energies that resonate with more evolved beings, its efforts strengthened by a greater power. The outward sign of this effect is a sense of tranquility, calm, and peace; the restlessness of the mind fades, and anxiety leaves the heart. Anyone who reflects on their experiences will find that some places are more conducive to calm, meditation, religious contemplation, and worship than others. In a room or building filled with worldly chatter, trivial conversations, and the chaotic rush of everyday life, it is much harder to quiet the mind and focus thought than in a setting where religious reflection has been practiced over the years or even centuries; there, the mind naturally becomes calm and relaxed, and what would have required significant effort elsewhere is achieved effortlessly.

This is the rationale of places of pilgrimage, of temporary retreats into seclusion; the man turns inward to seek the God within him, and is aided by the atmosphere created by thousands of others, who before[Pg 384] him have sought the same in the same place. For in such a place there is not only the magnetisation produced by a single saint, or by the visit of some great Being of the invisible world; each person, who visits the spot with a heart full of reverence and devotion, and is attuned to its vibrations, reinforces those vibrations with his own life, and leaves the spot better than it was when he came to it. Magnetic energy slowly disperses, and a sacred object or place becomes gradually demagnetised if put aside or deserted. It becomes more magnetised as it is used or frequented. But the presence of the ignorant scoffer injures such objects and places, by setting up antagonistic vibrations which weaken those already existing there. As a wave of sound may be met by another which extinguishes it, and the result is silence, so do the vibrations of the scoffing thought weaken or extinguish the vibrations of the reverent and loving one. The effect produced will, of course, vary with the relative strengths of the vibrations, but the mischievous one cannot be without result,[Pg 385] for the laws of vibration are the same in the higher worlds as in the physical, and thought vibrations are the expression of real energies.

This explains the purpose of pilgrimage sites and brief retreats into solitude; people look inward to find the God within themselves, supported by the atmosphere created by thousands of others who have sought the same in the same place before them. In such locations, there’s not just the energy from a single saint or the visit of some great Being from the invisible realm; each visitor who comes with a heart full of respect and devotion and is in tune with its energy enhances those vibrations with their own presence, leaving the location more energized than when they arrived. Magnetic energy gradually dissipates, and a sacred object or place becomes less charged if it is neglected or abandoned. It becomes more charged with use or frequent visits. However, the presence of an ignorant skeptic damages such places by introducing opposing vibrations that weaken the existing ones. Just as one sound wave can cancel out another, resulting in silence, so too do the vibrations of cynical thoughts undermine or extinguish the vibrations of love and reverence. The impact will vary depending on the relative strengths of the vibrations, but the disruptive energy will always have an effect, as the laws of vibration are consistent in both higher realms and the physical world, and thought vibrations are a manifestation of real energies.

The reason and the effect of the consecration of churches, chapels, cemeteries, will now be apparent. The act of consecration is not the mere public setting aside of a place for a particular purpose; it is the magnetisation of the place for the benefit of all those who frequent it. For the visible and the invisible worlds are inter-related, interwoven, each with each, and those can best serve the visible by whom the energies of the invisible can be wielded.

The reason and the effect of the consecration of churches, chapels, and cemeteries will now be clear. The act of consecration isn't just publicly designating a place for a specific purpose; it’s about enhancing the place for the benefit of everyone who visits. The visible and invisible worlds are connected and intertwined, and those who can effectively utilize the energies of the invisible can best serve the visible.


AFTERWORD.

We have reached the end of a small book on a great subject, and have only lifted a corner of the Veil that hides the Virgin of Eternal Truth from the careless eyes of men. The hem of her garment only has been seen, heavy with gold, richly dight with pearls. Yet even this, as it waves slowly, breathes out celestial fragrances—the sandal and rose-attar of fairer worlds than ours. What should be the unimaginable glory, if the Veil were lifted, and we saw the splendour of the Face of the divine Mother, and in Her arms the Child who is the very Truth? Before that Child the Seraphim ever veil their faces; who then of mortal birth may look on Him and live?

We’ve reached the end of a small book on a big topic and have only unveiled a tiny part of the Veil that conceals the Virgin of Eternal Truth from the indifferent eyes of people. We've only caught a glimpse of the hem of her garment, heavy with gold and adorned with pearls. Yet even this, as it sways gently, releases heavenly scents—the sandalwood and rose oil of more beautiful worlds than ours. Just imagine the incredible glory if the Veil were lifted, and we could see the radiance of the divine Mother’s Face, holding in her arms the Child who embodies Truth itself. Before that Child, the Seraphim always cover their faces; so who among mere mortals can look upon Him and survive?

Yet since in man abides His very Self, who shall forbid him to pass within the Veil, and to see with "open face the[Pg 387] glory of the Lord"? From the Cave to highest Heaven; such was the pathway of the Word made Flesh, and known as the Way of the Cross. Those who share the manhood share also the Divinity, and may tread where He has trodden. "What Thou art, That am I."

Yet since in humanity resides its true Self, who can stop someone from crossing the Veil and seeing with "open face the[Pg 387] glory of the Lord"? From the Cave to the highest Heaven; that was the journey of the Word made Flesh, known as the Way of the Cross. Those who share in humanity also share in Divinity and can walk where He has walked. "What You are, I am too."

Peace to all beings


INDEX.


Acts of the Apostles referred to; 281

À Kempis, Thomas; 115

Afterword; 376

Allegory; 66

Allegories, Old Testament; 121

All-wide Consciousness; 281 et seq.

Ammonius Saccas; 28

Animal Symbols of Zodiac; 165

Anselm and Redemption; 195

Answers to Prayer; 277
"        Subjective Prayer; 290

Apollonius of Tyana; 31

Apostolic Fathers; 70

Appearances of Divine Beings; 93

Aquinas, Thomas; 112

Arians of the Fourth Century, quoted; 103

Aristotle, Effect on Mediæval Christianity; 112

Ascension, The; 231, 250
"      and Solar Myth; 231
"      of the Christ; 249

Asiatic Researches, quoted; 258

Aspects of the One; 262

Athanasius, Story of; 353

Athanasian Creed, quoted; 263, 367

Atlantis, Continent of; 18

At-one-ment; 209

Atonement as one of Lesser Mysteries; 200
"    Early Church on the; 195
"    Calvinistic View of; 197
"    Edwards on the; 197
"    Flavel on the; 196
"    Luther's Views on the; 196
"    Dr. McLeod Campbell on the; 199
"    F. D. Maurice on the; 199
"    Vicarious and Substitutionary; 196
[Pg 389]
Atonement—Views of Dwight, Jeune, Jenkyn, Liddon, Owen,
Stroud, and Thomson; 198
"    Truth underlying the Doctrine of; 199
"    Pamphlet on, quoted; 198
"    Nineteenth Century quoted on; 205

Augöeides; 27


Barnabas; 71

Baptism, A Mantram in; 350
"    A Minor Form of; 349
"    Belief in Death-bed; 352
"    Infant; 353
"    In the Early Church; 352
"    In Other Religions; 348
"    of Initiate; 53
"    of Holy Ghost and Fire; 188
"    of Jesus; 133
"    of the Christ; 186
"    Tertullian on; 349

Beatific Vision, The; 95, 295

Bernard of Clairvaux; 112

Bel-fires; 164

Bhagavad Gîtâ referred to; 50, 202, 270, 306, 318

Bible Account of Creation; 179

Birth, Second; 247

Blavatsky, H. P., referred to; 127

Blood of Christ symbolised in Eucharist; 359

Böhme, Jacob; 115

Body, Causal; 239, 247
"  Desire, Changes in;  244
"  Meaning of a; 234
"  Mental; 236
"    "    Building of; 245
"  Natural or Physical; 236
"  Natural, of St. Paul; 237
"  of Bliss; 240
"  of Desire; 236
"  Physical, Changes in; 243
"  Resurrection; 240
[Pg 390]
Body, Spiritual; 239

Book of Job, quoted; 268, 332
of the Dead, referred to; 339
of Wisdom, quoted; 266

Bread, General Symbol in Sacraments; 358

Brihadâranyakopaniṣhat, quoted; 50, 202

Brotherhood of Great Teachers; 9

Bruno, Giordano, referred to; 5, 113, 115, 225, 322

Buddha, Birth Story of; 164

Buddhist Trinity; 258


Calvinistic Doctrine; 197

Cardinal Nicolas of Cusa; 115

Cathari, The, referred to; 113

Cave of Initiation; 186

Celsus—Controversy with Origen; 88

Chhânaogyopanishat, quoted; 253

Chrêstos and Christos; 174

Christ as Hierophant of Mysteries; 231
"  Baptism of; 186
"  Crucifixion of; 183
"  Disciples of; 223
"  in the Spiritual Body; 137
"  Life of the; 217
"  of the Mysteries; 191
"  The; 132, 134
"  the Crucified; 182
"  the Historical; 120, 140
"  the Kosmic; 179
"  the Mystic; 170
"  the Mythic; 145
"  Sufferings of the; 223

Christian Creed, referred to; 180, 181
"                quoted; 206, 207, 229

Christian Disciples—their work; 223

Christian Records, quoted; 348

Christian Symbols, &c., not unique; 148

Christianity has the Gnosis; 36

Christmas Day; 159, 161
[Pg 391]
Christmas Festival, rightly regarded; 164

Clarke's Ante-Nicene Library, quoted; viii., 21, 58, 71, 72, 73, 74,
77, 78, 80 et seq., 87, 88, 90 et seq., 103, 150, 151, 266

Classes of Prayers; 283

Clement of Alexandria, quoted; viii., 20
"  "    referred to; 73
"  "    on the Gnosis; 83, 84
"  "    on Scripture Allegories; 83
"  "    on Symbols; 80
"  "    and Catechetical School; 73
"  "    a Pupil of Pantænus; 73

Colossians, Epistle to, referred to; 58, 65, 81, 177

Comparative Mythologists; 7
"  "  Theory of; 8
"  Religionists; 7, 8
"  Mythology; 147

Consecrated Objects; 382

Consecration of Churches, Cemeteries, &c.; 385

Constant, Alphonse Louis; 118

Conversion, Phenomenon of; 313 et seq.

Corinthians, Epistles to, quoted; ix., x., 6, 32, 55, 64, 67, 124,
175, 177, 232, 239, 240, 241, 251, 253, 270, 356, 373

Creed, taught after Baptism in Early Church; 352

Cruden's Concordance, quoted; 33

Cur Deus Homo of Anselm; 195


Dangers to Christianity; 125

Dark Powers in Nature; 186, 187

Dean Milman, quoted; 255 et seq.

Death of Solar Heroes; 166

De Principiis of Origen; 101, 102

Deuteronomy, quoted; 96, 253

Diegesis of R. Taylor, quoted; 350

Die Deutsche Theologie; 114

Dionysius the Areopagite; 110

Disappearance of the Mysteries; 184

Disciples, The; 136
"  Work of the; 223
"  Writings of the; 140
[Pg 392]
Divine Beings, Appearance in Mysteries; 93

"Divine Grace," What it is; 224
"  Ideation; 359
"  Illumination; 377
"  Incarnations; 273, 274

Duality of Manifested Existence; 235
"  of Second Person of Trinity; 265


Easter Festival; 159

Eckhart, Teachings of; 113

Edwards on the Atonement; 197

Egypt and the Mysteries; 131

Encyclopædia Britannica, referred to; 22, 23, 117
"  "  quoted; 110 et seq.

Ephesians, Epistle to, quoted; 57, 65, 67, 366

Epistle of James, quoted; 276
of Peter, quoted; 64, 121, 194, 354, 371

Esoteric Christianity, Popular Denial of; 2
"  Teaching in Early Church; 2

Essentials of Religion; 4

Eucharist, Bread and Wine of; 357
"  Change of Substance in; 361
"  connected with Law of Sacrifice; 357
"  Meaning and Use of;  357
"  Sacrifice of; 355
"  Unworthy Participants in; 362

Exodus, Book of, quoted; 91

Exstasy; 295


Faith Needed for Forgiveness; 312

Fathers, The Christian, on Scriptures; 371

Festivals; 147

Fish Symbol in Religions; 166

Flavel on Atonement; 196

Fludd, Robert; 116

Forgiveness of Sins; 301
"  in Lesser Mysteries; 323
"  in most Religions; 303
"  ultimately refers to Post-Mortem Penalties; 307

Fourth Manifestation Feminine; 261
"  Person; 263
[Pg 393]
Free-thinking in Christianity; 123

Friends of God in the Oberland; 114

Friends, Society of; 117

Future of Christianity; 41


Galatians, Epistle to, quoted; 64, 65, 66, 124

Genesis, quoted; 18, 180, 268, 269, 271, 279, 358

Germain, Comte de S.; 117

Gestures in Sacraments; 338

Gibbon's Decline and Fall of R. Empire, quoted; 162

Giles, Rev. Dr., quoted; 347

Gnosis, The; viii., 9, 108
"      " in Christianity;  36

Gnostic, The, of S. Clement; 84 et seq.

Gnostics and their Remains, quoted; 162

Gods in the Mysteries; 25

Grades of Hierarchies; 331

Grand Lodge of Central Asia; 31

Greek Cross, The; 267

Guyon, Mme. de; 116


Haug, Dr., Essay on Parsis, cited; 202

Hebrews, Epistle to, quoted; 53, 67, 81, 91, 175, 176, 205,
216, 222, 223, 247, 270, 274, 280

Hebrew Trinity; 254

Hell-fire Dogma, The; 48

Heroic Enthusiasts, The, quoted; 323

Hidden God, The; 207
"  Meanings in Jewish and Christian Scriptures; 100
"  Side of Christianity; 36
"  Teaching in all Religions; 20

Hierarchies of Divine Beings; 331
"  of Superhuman Beings; 23

Hindu, Trinity, The; 257

History versus Myth; 153

Holy Spirit as Creator; 269

Holy Water; 343, 349, 351

Human Evolution repeats Kosmic Process; 271

Huxley, T. H., quoted; 282

Hyde, Dr., quoted; 347

Hymn to Demeter; 22
[Pg 394]

Iamblichus, On the Mysteries, quoted; 22, 23, 24, 25, 27, 29,
296 et seq.

Iamblichus, Life of Pythagoras, referred to; 28

Ignatius; 71

Incarnation of Logos; 179

Initiation and Rebirth; 51, 53
"  Cave of;  186
"  Ceremonies of; 247 et seq.
"  Conditions of; 173
"  Mount of;  91

Inspiration, True; 378

Intelligences in Invisible Worlds; 279

Inviolability of Law; 305

Invisible Helpers; 280

Invisible Worlds interpenetrate the Visible; 279

Irenæus, Against Heresies, referred to; 105

Isaiah, quoted; 210, 295, 366, 377

Isomeric Compounds; 361


Jeremiah, Book of, quoted; 262, 357

Jesus at Mount Serbal; 130
"  Baptism of;  133
"  Date and Place of Birth; 130
"  His Work in Christendom;  143
"  in Egypt; 130
"  Inner Instructions of; 137
"  Master of the West; 147
"  Sacrifice of; 133
"  the Divine Teacher; 183
"  the Healer and Teacher; 127
"  training in Essene Community; 130
"  the Master; 142

Judges, Book of, quoted; 97

Juliana Mother; 117

Justin Martyr; 148
"  "  quoted; 149 et seq.


Kabbala, Five Books of, referred to; 34

Karma; 288, 309

Kathopanishat, quoted; 32, 33, 49

Key to Theosophy, quoted; 294
[Pg 395]
Kingdom of Heaven—real meaning; 52

Kings, Book of, quoted; 33, 354

Kosmic Christ, The; 179
"  Process of becoming; 268
"  Sacrifice; 183


Lang, Andrew, referred to; 11, 12

Language of Symbols; 153

Latin Cross, Origin of; 206
"  Use of, in Roman Church; 337

Law of Sacrifice; 201
"  "  in Hinduism;  202
"  "  in Nature of Logos;  204
"  "  in Zoroastrianism;  202
"  "  or Manifestation; 203

Law, William; 117

Left-hand Path; 17

Lent; 167

Levi Eliphas; 118

Leviticus, quoted; 358

Light on the Path, quoted; 220

"Little Child"; 65

Logos, Birth of the; 205
"  and Sacrifice; 204
"  Life of, in every form; 208
"  Meaning of the Term; 172
"  of Plato; 182
"  Perpetual Sacrifice of; 209

Loss of Mystic Teaching in Christianity; 37

Luke, Gospel of, quoted; 45, 48, 175, 176, 264, 289, 302, 312

Luther on the Atonement; 196


Madonnas; 160

Magnetic Cures, Secret of; 342
"  Change in Sacramental Substance; 342
"  Energies in Ether;  341

Magnetisation of Substances; 341

Making of Religion, The, referred to; 11

Man as Microcosm; 271
"  and Woman Complementary; 365
"  develops Second Aspect; 272
[Pg 396]
Man's Manifold Nature; 234

Mandakopanishat, quoted; 202

"Mantras"; 335
"  essential in Sacraments; 338
"  in rite of Baptism; 350
"  in Sanskrit;  336
"  spoilt by translation; 337

Mark, Gospel of, quoted; vii., 45, 47

Martin, St.; 117

Marriage, Deeper meaning of; 365
"  in Lesser Mysteries; 368
"  Mystery of; 366
"  Sacrament of;  364
"  type of union between God and Man; 366

Mary, the World Mother; 206

Master, Jesus, the; 142

Matthew, Gospel of, quoted; vii., 45, 46, 49, 52, 53, 54, 92, 134,
176, 177, 186, 210, 216, 240, 271, 274, 281, 306, 319

Maurice, cited; 254

Mead, G. R. S., quoted; 26, 28, 29, 30, 31, 114

Mediator, Nature of; 274

Meditation—What it is; 293
"  Growth by; 299

Men at different levels; 3

Miguel de Molinos; 116

Ministry of Angels, The; 287, 289

Miracles; 145

Mithras, Birth of; 161

Modern Spirit antagonistic to Prayer; 276

More, Henry; 116

Mother Juliana of Norwich; 117

Mount Serbal; 130

Mount of Initiation; 91, 188

Müller, George, Case of; 284 et seq.

Music in Worship; 335, 337

Myers (F.), St. Paul; 378

Mystery Gods; 25
"  of Christ;  57

Mysteries, Christian, Symbolism of; 247
[Pg 397]
Mysteries and Yoga; 31
"  Christ as Hierophant of; 231
"  Disappearance of the; 184
"  Eliphas Levi on the; 118
"  established by Christ; 142
"  Greater, The; ix., 1, 22, 27, 63
"  in the Gospels; 45
"  in Egypt; 131
"  in relation to Myth; 157
"  Lesser; ix., 1, 22
"  "  and Prayer; 280
"  "  as to Bodies; 237
"  "  Teaching of; 251
"  Names in Christianity; 47
"  of Bacchus; 21, 27
"  of Chaldæa, Egypt, Eleusis, Mithras, Orpheus, Samothrace,
Scythia; 21
"  of God; 57
"  of Jesus; 1, 42, 94
"  of the Early Church; 69 et seq.
"  of Magic, quoted; 157
"  praised by Learned Greeks; 21
"  Pseudo, and Sun-God Story; 167
"  source of Mystic Learning; 108
"  The; 171, 178
"  taught, Post-mortem Existence; 21
"  The True; 179
"  The Christ of the; 184
"  Theory of the; 22
"  withdrawn; 108

Mystic Christ, The; 170
"  "  Twofold; 178
"  Vesture, The; 138

Mythic Christ, The; 145

Myth, Meaning of; 152, 153
"  Solar; 156

Mythology Comparative; 147


Natural and Spiritual Bodies; 232
"  Body—of St. Paul; 237
[Pg 398]
Natural Body, The; 235 et seq.

Need for Graded Religion; 14

Neoplatonists; 29, 112

Newman, Cardinal, quoted; 103 et seq.
"  Recognises a Secret Tradition; 104

New Testament Proofs of Esotericism; 42 et seq.

Nicene Creed; 181

Nicolas of Basel; 114

Noachian Deluge; 19

Nous Demiurgos of Plato; 255

Numbers, Book of, quoted; 270


Object of all Religions; 3

Occult Experts; 127
"  Knowledge, Danger of; 16
"  Records; 18
"  "  and the Gospels; 129
"  side of Nature; 279
"  use of Sounds;  334

Old Testament Allegories; 121

One Existence, The; 253

One, The, Three aspects of; 262
"  "  Manifest; 261

Origen Against Celsus; 88 et seq.
"  "  ";  95
"  on the Need of Wisdom; 99
"  "  Mysteries;  89
"  "  Scriptures; 372
"  "  Tower of Babel; 97
"  referred to;  44
"  Shining Light of Learning; 87

Orpheus, Mead's, quoted; 28, 29, 30, 114

Owen on Atonement; 197


Pantænus; 73, 74

Paracelsus; 115

Paradise; 242

Path of Discipleship; 174

Philippians, Epistle to, quoted; 62

Physical Ailments final expression of Karma; 310
[Pg 399]
Physical Body, Changes in; 243
"  Material in Sacraments; 340

Pilgrimages, Rationale of; 382

Pistis Sophia, quoted; 46, 138, 139, 302 et seq.,
319 et seq., 340
"  "  referred to; 137

Plato's Cave; 153

Plato initiated in Egypt; 21

Platonists of Cambridge; 116

Plotinus, Dying Words of; 31
"  referred to; 23
"  Mead's, quoted; 31

Polycarp, Bishop of Smyrna; 70

Popular Christianity, Mistake of; vii.
"  Denial of Esoteric Christianity; 1

Porphyry, quoted; 27, 54

Prayer; 276
"  Answers to; 277
"  as Will; 285
"  Class B—general principle; 292
"  Failure of; 287
"  for Spiritual Enlightenment; 291
"  for the Student of Lesser Mysteries; 296
"  Highest form of; 293
"  Puzzling Facts as to; 277

Prayers classified; 278

Probationary Path, The; 247

"Proclaim upon the houses"—Mystical meaning; 79

Proclus, Teaching of; 26, 29, 51

Psalms, quoted; 5, 299

Pseudo-Mysteries and Sun-God Drama; 167

Pupils of the Apostles; 70

Purgatory; 242

Purification; 244

Pythagoras, referred to; 28
"  in India; 31

Pythagorean School, Discipline of; 29, 30


Qualifications of Disciple; 175

Quietists, The; 116


Regions of the Invisible Worlds; 239
[Pg 400]
Re-incarnation; 239

Religion, Need for graded; 14

Religion of Ancient Persians, quoted; 347

Religions, Common origin of; 7
"  Custodians of Sacred Books; 369
"  Essentials of; 4
"  fitted for Stages of Growth; 13
"  Object of all; 3
"  Source of all; 7

Religious Founders; 10
"  Scriptures; 10
"  Teachers; 9

Resurrection and Solar Myth; 231, 250
"  Body; 240
"  of the Christ; 249
"  of the Dead; 62
"  The—Part of Lesser Mysteries; 231

Revelation; 369
"  Fragments of in Sacred Books; 370
"  in Cypher; 370
"  of Deity in Kosmos; 375

Revelations, Book of, quoted; 50, 63, 66, 249, 263,
292, 322, 331

Revolt against Dogma; 38

Roman Empire dying; 107

Romans, Epistle to, quoted; 82, 363

Rosenkreutz Christian; 117

Ruling Angel of Jews; 96, 98

Ruysbroeck; 115


Sacrament, a kind of crucible; 326
"  a Pictorial Allegory; 325
"  Change in substance at; 343
"  link between Visible and Invisible; 326, 327
"  of Baptism; 347
"  of Eucharist; 347
"  of Marriage; 347, 364
"  of Penance; 340

Sacraments; 324
"  Angels connected with; 343
"  defined in Church Catechism; 329
[Pg 401]
Sacraments, Gestures used in; 338
"  in all Religions; 324
"  Lost at Reformation; 327
"  Mantrams in; 338
"  of Christian Church; 327
"  Peculiar Characteristics; 324
"  Seven, of Christianity; 327, 346
"  Signs, Seals, or Sigils in; 339
"  "Substance" and "Accidents" of; 361
"  Twofold Nature of; 324 et seq.
"  Two, In Protestant Communities; 328, 346

Sacred Places and Objects; 380

Sacred Quaternery, The; 261

Sacrifice as Joy; 210 et seq.
"  Law of; 201
"  "  Four Stages in; 212
"  Lessons in; 212 et seq.
"  of Jesus; 133

Saint Bonaventura; 112
"  Elizabeth; 113
"  Francois de Sales; 116
"  John of the Cross; 116
John's Gospel, quoted; x., 46, 52, 53, 54, 56, 103, 132, 133,
134, 137, 177, 180, 216, 240, 246, 250, 262, 270, 273, 292, 382
"  Paul, quoted; 55 et seq., 124, 184
"  Paul an Initiate; 61
"  "  and Mysteries; 57
"  "  and Timothy; 59, 69
"  "  on Allegory; 66
"  Peter, quoted; 194
"  Teresa; 116
"  Timothy, referred to; 59

Samuel, Book of, quoted; 33

Savage Deities; 11

Savages as Descendants of Civilisation; 12

Saviour, The True; 219 et seq.

Sayings of Jesus; 53, 54, 301

Scientific Analysis of Vehicles; 237
[Pg 402]
Search for God, The; 5

Secret Teachings of Jesus; 90
"  Tradition recognised by Newman; 104

Second Birth; 185, 247

Sepher Yetzirah, quoted; 34

Sharpe's Egyptian Mythology, quoted; 259

Shvetâshvataropanishat, quoted; 32

"Sign of Power"; 339

Society of Friends; 117

Solar Gods; 160
"  Myth, Root of; 178

Sopater, quoted; 21

Sophia—The Wisdom; 138

Soul—Dual; 233

Sound and Form in the Invisible Worlds; 333

Sound, Occult use of; 334

Source of Religions; 7

Spirit and Matter; 367

Spirit threefold; 233
"  manifested as triple Self; 330

Spiritual Body, Divisions of; 240 et seq.

"Star of Initiation"; 186

"Strait Gate" term of Initiation; 49, 50, 174, 177

Stromata or Miscellanies of S. Clement, quoted; 58, 74 et seq.,
78, 83, 84, 85, 87

Sufferings of the Christ; 223

Superintending Spirits; 98

Sun God Legend; 158
"  "  Symbol of Logos; 171
" Heroes; 165
" Myths, recurring; 169
" of Righteousness; 249
" Symbol of the Logos; 154
" Symbols; 155

Survival of Christianity?; 40

Symbol of Jesus; 165
"  of Trinity; 267

Symbols—animal, in Zodiac; 165
"  Language of; 153
[Pg 403]
Symbols of Logoi; 266 et seq.


Tatian and Theodotus, referred to; 73

Tauler, John; 114

Taylor, Robert, quoted; 350

Teachings common to all Religions; 146
"  in the hands of Spiritual Brotherhood; 374

Tertullian on Baptism; 151

The Christ; 132, 134

The Hidden Side of Religions; 1
"  of Christianity; 36

The Disciples; 136

The "Simple Gospel"; 39

The title of Lord; 96

The Testimony of the Scriptures; 36

The Tower of Babel; 97

The Thyrsus; 75

The True Exstasis; 108

The Trinity; 253
"  among the Hebrews; 254
"  Hindu; 257
"  in Buddhism; 258
"  in Chaldæa; 259
"  in China; 259
"  in Extinct Religions; 258
"  in Egypt; 259
"  in Man; 177, 233
"  in Manifestation; 254
"  in Zoroastrianism; 257

The Word of Wisdom, of Knowledge; 102

Theological Hell; 308

Theosophical Review, quoted; 228

Thessalonians, Epistle to, quoted; 233

Three Worlds, The; 241

Timothy, Epistle to, quoted; 59, 60, 61, 65, 134, 227

Tradition of Post-mortem Teaching of Jesus; 46

Transubstantiation—Truth Underlying; 360

Triangle as a Symbol of Trinity; 267

Trinity, A Second; 263
"  of Spirit; 233
[Pg 404]
Trinity in Christian agrees with other Faiths; 260

Triple Aspect of Matter; 264

Triplicity in Nature; 261

True Theosophy defined; x.

Two Schools of Christian Interpretation; 122

Two-fold Division of Man Insufficient; 232


Vaivasvata Manu; 19

Valentinus; 137

Vaughan, Thomas; 116

Vehicles of Consciousness, Need for Different; 238

Vibrations; 334

Vibratory Effects of Mass; 338

Virgin Matter; 264
"  "  and Third Person of Trinity; 265
"  "  and Second  "  " ; 265
"  Mother; 264

Virgin's Womb, Meaning of; 180

Virgo, Zodiacal Sign of; 158, 160

Virtues in the Mysteries; 27

Voice of the Silence, quoted; 249

Voice Figures—Mrs. Watts Hughes, referred to; 333


Williamson's Great Law, quoted; 161, 163 et seq.,
166, 167, 203, 255, 259, 348, 358.

Will as Prayer; 285

Words of Power; 335

Work of the Holy Spirit; 179, 268
"  Second Person; 179, 269
"  First Person; 270

Working of Logos in Matter; 182

Workers in Kosmos; 283
"  the Invisible Worlds; 152, 280

World Bibles, fragments of Revelation; 374

World Soul, The; 23

World Symbols; 266

Writings of the Disciples; 140


Zechariah, quoted; 268

Zodiac, The; 160

749__
" Nature of the; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_750__

" Spiritual; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_751__
" of Life; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_752__

" The Eternal; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_753__

" The Human; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_754__

" The Lower; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_755__

" The Higher; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_756__

" The Starry; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_757__

Soul and Body—Interrelationship; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_758__

Spiritual Growth; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_759__

Spirituality in the Gospels; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_760__

Temples of the Greater Mysteries; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_761__

Temple and Sacraments; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_762__

Testament; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_763__

Theology as a Science; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_764__

Theories about Evil; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_765__

Theosophy in Christianity; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_766__

Transcendence of the Divine; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_767__

Tritheism; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_768__

Universal Brotherhood; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_769__

Universalism; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_770__

Uses of Rituals; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_771__

Vicarious Suffering; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_772__

Virtues in Ancient Religions; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_773__

Vision of the Divine; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_774__

Wisdom from Different Traditions; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_775__

Works of the Church Fathers; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_776__

Zodiac and Astrology; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_777__

Zohar, referenced; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_778__

Zoroastrianism and Dualism; __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_779__


FOOTNOTES:

[1] S. Mark xvi. 15.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Mark 16:15.

[2] S. Matt vii. 6.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matthew 7:6.

[3] Clarke's Ante-Nicene Christian Library, Vol. IV. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. I., ch. xii.

[3] Clarke's Ante-Nicene Christian Library, Vol. IV. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. I., ch. xii.

[4] I. Cor. iii. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 3:16.

[5] Ibid., ii. 14, 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., ii. 14, 16.

[6] S. John, i. 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. John, 1:9.

[7] Psalms, xlii. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Psalms 42:1.

[8] 1 Cor. xv. 28.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 15:28.

[9] Ante-Nicene Library, Vol. XII. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. V., ch. xi.

[9] Ante-Nicene Library, Vol. XII. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. V., ch. xi.

[10] See Article on "Mysteries," Encyc. Britannica ninth edition.

[10] Check out the article on "Mysteries," Encyc. Britannica ninth edition.

[11] Psellus, quoted in Iamblichus on the Mysteries. T. Taylor, p. 343, note on p. 23, second edition.

[11] Psellus, referenced in Iamblichus on the Mysteries. T. Taylor, p. 343, note on p. 23, second edition.

[12] Iamblichus, as ante, p. 301.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Iamblichus, as before, p. 301.

[13] Ibid., p. 72.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, p. 72.

[14] The article on "Mysticism" in the Encyclopædia Britannica has the following on the teaching of Plotinus (204-206 A.D.): "The One [the Supreme God spoken of above] is exalted above the nous and the 'ideas'; it transcends existence altogether and is not cognisable by reason. Remaining itself in repose, it rays out, as it were, from its own fulness, an image of itself, which is called nous, and which constitutes the system of ideas of the intelligible world. The soul is in turn the image or product of the nous, and the soul by its motion begets corporeal matter. The soul thus faces two ways—towards the nous, from which it springs, and towards the material life, which is its own product. Ethical endeavour consists in the repudiation of the sensible; material existence is itself estrangement from God.... To reach the ultimate goal, thought itself must be left behind; for thought is a form of motion, and the desire of the soul is for the motionless rest which belongs to the One. The union with transcendent deity is not so much knowledge or vision as ecstasy, coalescence, contact." Neo-Platonism is thus "first of all a system of complete rationalism; it is assumed, in other words, that reason is capable of mapping out the whole system of things. But, inasmuch as a God is affirmed beyond reason, the mysticism becomes in a sense the necessary complement of the would-be all-embracing rationalism. The system culminates in a mystical act."

[14] The article on "Mysticism" in the Encyclopædia Britannica states the following about the teachings of Plotinus (204-206 CE): "The One [the Supreme God mentioned earlier] is above the nous and the 'ideas'; it goes beyond existence entirely and cannot be grasped by reason. Remaining in its own tranquility, it emanates, so to speak, from its own fullness, an image of itself known as nous, which makes up the system of ideas in the intelligible world. The soul is, in turn, the image or product of the nous, and through its movement, the soul generates physical matter. The soul looks in two directions—towards the nous, from which it originates, and towards the material life that it creates. The ethical pursuit involves rejecting the sensory; material existence is, in essence, a separation from God... To achieve the ultimate goal, even thought must be set aside; because thought is a form of movement, and the soul desires the stillness that belongs to the One. The union with the transcendent deity is more about ecstasy, merging, and contact than it is about knowledge or vision." Neo-Platonism is, therefore, "primarily a comprehensive rational system; it assumes that reason can outline the entire system of things. However, since a God is recognized beyond reason, mysticism becomes a necessary addition to the all-encompassing rationalism. The system culminates in a mystical act."

[15] Iamblichus, as ante, p. 73.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Iamblichus, as before, p. 73.

[16] Ibid, pp. 55, 56.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, pp. 55, 56.

[17] Ibid, pp. 118, 119.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid, pp. 118, 119.

[18] Ibid, p. 118, 119.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, p. 118, 119.

[19] Ibid, pp. 95, 100.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid, pp. 95, 100.

[20] Ibid, p. 101.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid, p. 101.

[21] Ibid, p. 330.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, p. 330.

[22] G. R. S. Mead. Plotinus, p. 42.

[22] G. R. S. Mead. Plotinus, p. 42.

[23] Iamblichus, p. 364, note on p. 134.

[23] Iamblichus, p. 364, note on p. 134.

[24] G. R. S. Mead. Orpheus, pp. 285, 286.

[24] G. R. S. Mead. Orpheus, pp. 285, 286.

[25] Iamblichus, p. 364, note on p. 134.

[25] Iamblichus, p. 364, note on p. 134.

[26] Iamblichus, p. 285, et seq.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Iamblichus, p. 285, et seq.

[27] G. R. S. Mead. Orpheus, p. 59.

[27] G. R. S. Mead. Orpheus, p. 59.

[28] Ibid, p. 30.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, p. 30.

[29] Ibid, pp. 263, 271.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, pp. 263, 271.

[30] G. R. S. Mead. Plotinus, p. 20.

[30] G. R. S. Mead. Plotinus, p. 20.

[31] Shvetâshvataropaniṣhat, vi., 22.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Shvetâshvataropaniṣhat, 6, 22.

[32] Kaṭhopaniṣṣhat, iii., 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Kaṭhopaniṣṣhat, III, 14.

[33] I. Cor. xiii. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Corinthians 13:1.

[34] Kaṭhopaniṣhat, vi. 17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Kaṭhopaniṣhad, vi. 17.

[35] Muṇdakopaniṣhat, II., ii. 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Muṇdakopaniṣhat, II., ii. 9.

[36] Ibid., III., i. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., III., i. 3.

[37] I Sam. xix. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Samuel 19:20.

[38] II. Kings ii. 2, 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Kings 2:2, 5.

[39] Under "School."

Under "School."

[40] Dr. Wynn Westcott. Sepher Yetzirah, p. 9.

[40] Dr. Wynn Westcott. Sepher Yetzirah, p. 9.

[41] S. Mark iv. 10, 11, 33, 34. See also S. Matt. xiii. 11, 34, 36, and S. Luke viii. 10.

[41] Mark 4:10, 11, 33, 34. Also see Matthew 13:11, 34, 36, and Luke 8:10.

[42] S. John xvi. 12.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. John 16:12.

[43] Acts i. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Acts 1:3.

[44] Loc. cit. Trans. by G. R. S. Mead. I. i. 1.

[44] Same source. Trans. by G. R. S. Mead. I. i. 1.

[45] S. Matt. vii. 6.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 7:6.

[46] As to the Greek woman: "It is not meet to take the children's bread, and to cast it unto the dogs."—S. Mark vii. 27.

[46] Regarding the Greek woman: "It’s not right to take the children’s bread and toss it to the dogs."—S. Mark vii. 27.

[47] S. Luke xiii. 23, 24.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Luke 13:23-24.

[48] S. Matt. vii. 13, 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 7:13, 14.

[49] Kaṭhopaniṣhat II. iv. 10, 11.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Kaṭhopaniṣhat II. iv. 10, 11.

[50] Brihadâraṇyakopaniṣhat. IV. iv. 7.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Brihadâraṇyakopaniṣhat. IV. 4. 7.

[51] Rev. vii. 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 7:9.

[52] Bahgavad Gîtâ, vii. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bhagavad Gita, vii. 3.

[53] Ante, p. 26.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Before, p. 26.

[54] It must be remembered that the Jews believed that all imperfect souls returned to live again on earth.

[54] It should be noted that the Jews believed that all imperfect souls would be reincarnated on earth.

[55] S. Matt. xix. 16-26.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 19:16-26.

[56] S. John xvii. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 17:3.

[57] Heb. ix. 23.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 9:23.

[58] S. John. iii. 3, 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. John. 3:3, 5.

[59] S. Matt. iii. 11.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 3:11.

[60] Ibid. xviii. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. 18. 3.

[61] S. John iii. 10.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 3:10.

[62] S. Matt. v. 48.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matt. 5:48.

[63] Ante, p.24

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Before, p.24

[64] Note how this chimes in with the promise of Jesus in S. John xvi. 12-14: "I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now. Howbeit when He, the Spirit of Truth, is come, He will guide you into all truth.... He will show you things to come.... He shall receive of mine, and shall show it unto you."

[64] Notice how this aligns with the promise of Jesus in John 16:12-14: "I still have many things to say to you, but you can't handle them right now. However, when He, the Spirit of Truth, comes, He will guide you into all truth... He will show you future things... He will take what is mine and make it known to you."

[65] Another technical name in the Mysteries.

[65] Another technical term in the Mysteries.

[66] Eph. iii. 3, 4, 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Eph. 3:3, 4, 9.

[67] Col i. 23, 25-28. But S. Clement, in his Stromata, translates "every man," as "the whole man." See Bk. V., ch. x.

[67] Col i. 23, 25-28. But St. Clement, in his Stromata, translates "every man" as "the whole man." See Bk. V., ch. x.

[68] Col. iv. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Col. 4:3.

[69] Ante-Nicene Library, Vol. XII. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. V. ch. x. Some additional sayings of the Apostles will be found in the quotations from Clement, showing what meaning they bore in the minds of those who succeeded the apostles, and were living in the same atmosphere of thought.

[69] Ante-Nicene Library, Vol. XII. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. V. ch. x. Some extra sayings of the Apostles can be found in Clement's quotes, showing what those who came after the apostles thought they meant, as they lived in the same intellectual environment.

[70] I. Tim. iii. 9, 16.

1 Timothy 3:9, 16.

[71] I. Tim. i. 18.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Tim. 1:18.

[72] Ibid., iv. 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid., IV, 14.

[73] Ibid., vi. 13.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., vi. 13.

[74] Ibid., 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., 20.

[75] II. Tim. i. 13, 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Tim. 1:13-14.

[76] Ibid., ii. 2.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid., vol. 2, p. 2.

[77] Phil. iii. 8, 10-12, 14, 15.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Phil. 3:8, 10-12, 14, 15.

[78] Rev. i. 18. "I am He that liveth, and was dead; and behold, I am alive for evermore. Amen."

[78] Rev. i. 18. "I am the one who lives and was once dead; and look, I am alive forever. Amen."

[79] II. Cor. v. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Corinthians 5:16.

[80] Gal. iii. 27.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gal. 3:27.

[81] Gal. iv. 19.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gal. 4:19.

[82] I. Cor. iv. 15.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 4:15.

[83] I. S. Pet. iii. 4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ I. S. Pet. 3:4.

[84] Eph. iv. 13.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Eph. 4:13.

[85] Col. i. 24.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Col. 1:24.

[86] II. Cor. iv. 10.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Corinthians 4:10.

[87] Gal. ii. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gal. 2:20.

[88] II. Tim. iv. 6, 8.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Timothy 4:6, 8.

[89] Rev. iii. 12.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 3:12.

[90] Gal. iv. 22-31.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gal. 4:22-31.

[91] I Cor. x. 1-4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Corinthians 10:1-4.

[92] Eph. v. 23-32.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Eph. 5:23-32.

[93] Vol. I. The Martyrdom of Ignatius, ch. iii. The translations used are those of Clarke's Ante-Nicene Library, a most useful compendium of Christian antiquity. The number of the volume which stands first in the references is the number of the volume in that Series.

[93] Vol. I. The Martyrdom of Ignatius, ch. iii. The translations used are from Clarke's Ante-Nicene Library, which is a very helpful collection of Christian history. The first number in the references refers to the volume number in that series.

[94] Ibid. The Epistle of Polycarp, ch. xii.

[94] Same source. The Letter of Polycarp, ch. 12.

[95] Ibid. The Epistle of Barnabas, ch. i.

[95] Ibid. The Epistle of Barnabas, ch. i.

[96] Ibid. ch. x.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. ch. x.

[97] Ibid. The Martyrdom of Ignatius, ch. i.

[97] Ibid. The Martyrdom of Ignatius, ch. i.

[98] Ibid. Epistle of Ignatius to the Ephesians, ch. iii.

[98] Ibid. Letter of Ignatius to the Ephesians, ch. iii.

[99] Ibid. ch. xii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xii.

[100] Ibid. to the Trallians, ch. v.

[100] Same source to the Trallians, ch. v.

[101] Ibid. to the Philadelphians, ch. ix.

[101] Same source, to the Philadelphians, ch. ix.

[102] Vol. IV. Clement of Alexandria Stromata, bk. I. ch. i.

[102] Vol. IV. Clement of Alexandria Stromata, bk. I. ch. i.

[103] Vol. IV. Stromata, bk. I. ch. xxviii.

[103] Vol. IV. Stromata, bk. I. ch. xxviii.

[104] It appears that even in those days there were some who objected to any truth being taught secretly!

[104] It seems that even back then, some people were against teaching any truth in secret!

[105] Ibid. bk. I, ch. i.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. I, ch. i.

[106] Ibid. bk. V., ch. iv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. V., ch. iv.

[107] Ibid. ch. v.-viii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. v.-viii.

[108] Ibid. ch. ix.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. ch. 9.

[109] Ibid. bk. V., ch. x.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. vol. V, ch. x.

[110] Loc. Cit. xv. 29.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Loc. Cit. xv. 29.

[111] Ibid. xvi. 25, 26; the version quoted differs in words, but not in meaning, from the English Authorised Version.

[111] Ibid. xvi. 25, 26; the version quoted varies in wording, but not in meaning, from the English Authorized Version.

[112] Stromata, bk. V., ch. x.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Stromata, Book V, Chapter X.

[113] Ibid. bk. VI., ch. vii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. vol. VI, ch. 7.

[114] Ibid. bk. VII., ch. xiv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. VII., ch. xiv.

[115] Ibid. bk. VI., ch. xv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. VI., ch. xv.

[116] Ibid. bk. VI. x.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. bk. 6. x.

[117] Ibid. bk. VI. vii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same Source. bk. VI. vii.

[118] Ibid. bk. I. ch. vi.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. I. ch. vi.

[119] Ibid. ch. ix.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. ch. 9.

[120] Ibid. bk. VI. ch. x.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. vol. VI, ch. x.

[121] Ibid. bk. I. ch. xiii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. I. ch. xiii.

[122] Vol XII. Stromata, bk. V. ch. iv.

[122] Vol XII. Stromata, bk. V. ch. iv.

[123] Ibid. bk. VI. ch. xv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. VI. ch. xv.

[124] Book I. of Against Celsus is found in Vol. X. of the Ante-Nicene Library. The remaining books are in Vol. XXIII.

[124] Book I of Against Celsus is located in Vol. X of the Ante-Nicene Library. The other books are in Vol. XXIII.

[125] Vol. X. Origen against Celsus, bk. I. ch. vii.

[125] Vol. X. Origen against Celsus, bk. I. ch. vii.

[126] Ibid.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source.

[127] Ex. xxv. 40, xxvi. 30, and compare with Heb. viii. 5, and ix. 25.

[127] Ex. xxv. 40, xxvi. 30, and compare with Heb. viii. 5, and ix. 25.

[128] Origen against Celsus, bk. IV. ch. xvi.

[128] Origen against Celsus, bk. IV. ch. xvi.

[129] Ibid. bk. III. ch. lix.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. bk. 3, ch. 59.

[130] Ibid. ch. lxi.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. lxi.

[131] Ibid. ch. lxii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. lxii.

[132] Ibid., ch. lx.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., ch. 60.

[133] Vol. XXIII. Origen against Celsus, bk. V. ch. xxv.

[133] Vol. XXIII. Origen against Celsus, bk. V. ch. xxv.

[134] Ibid. ch. xxviii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xxviii.

[135] Ibid. ch. xxix.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xxix.

[136] Ibid. ch. xx xi.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xx xi.

[137] Ibid. ch. xxxii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xxxii.

[138] Ibid. ch. xlv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xlv.

[139] Ibid. ch. xlvi.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xlvi.

[140] Ibid. chs. xlvii.-liv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. chapters 47-54.

[141] Ibid. ch. lxxiv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. lxxiv.

[142] Ibid. bk. IV., ch. xxxix.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. IV., ch. xxxix.

[143] Vol. X. Origen against Celsus, bk. I., ch. xvii, and others.

[143] Vol. X. Origen against Celsus, bk. I., ch. xvii, and others.

[144] Ibid. ch. xlii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ch. xlii.

[145] Vol. X. De Principiis, Preface, p. 8.

[145] Vol. X. On Principles, Preface, p. 8.

[146] Ibid. ch. i.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. ch. 1.

[147] S. John xiv. 18-20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. John 14:18-20.

[148] Loc. cit. ch. i. sec. III. p. 55.

[148] Loc. cit. ch. i. sec. III. p. 55.

[149] Ibid. ch. I. Sec. III. pp. 55, 56.

[149] Same source. ch. I. Sec. III. pp. 55, 56.

[150] Ibid. pp. 54, 55.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. pp. 54, 55.

[151] "Seems to have been" is a somewhat weak expression, after what is said by Clement and Origen, of which some specimens are given in the text.

[151] "Seems to have been" is a bit of a vague phrase, considering what Clement and Origen say, of which some examples are included in the text.

[152] Ibid., p. 62.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source, p. 62.

[153] Article on "Mysticism."—Encyc. Britan.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Article on "Mysticism."—Encyclopedia Britannica

[154] Article "Mysticism." Encyclopædia Britannica.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Article "Mysticism." Encyclopædia Britannica.

[155] Orpheus, pp. 53, 54.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Orpheus, pp. 53, 54.

[156] Obligation must be here acknowledged to the Article "Mysticism," in the Encyc. Brit., though that publication is by no means responsible for the opinions expressed.

[156] Acknowledgment of obligation is due to the article "Mysticism" in the Encyc. Brit., although that publication is not responsible for the opinions stated.

[157] The Mysteries of Magic. Trans. by A. E. Waite, pp. 58 and 60.

[157] The Mysteries of Magic. Trans. by A. E. Waite, pp. 58 and 60.

[158] II. S. Peter i. 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Peter 1:5.

[159] Gal. iv. 19.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gal. 4:19.

[160] II. Cor. v. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Cor. 5:16.

[161] S. John i. 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 1:14.

[162] S. John i. 32.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 1:32.

[163] S. Matt. iii. 17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 3:17.

[164] Ibid. iv. 17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. iv. 17.

[165] I. Tim. iii. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Tim. 3:16.

[166] S. John x. 34-36.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. John 10:34-36.

[167] S. John xiv. 18, 19.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 14:18-19.

[168] Valentinus. Trans. by G. R. S. Mead. Pistis Sophia, bk. i., I.

[168] Valentinus. Trans. by G. R. S. Mead. Pistis Sophia, bk. i., I.

[169] Ante, p. 72.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Before, p. 72.

[170] Ibid. 60.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. 60.

[171] Ibid. bk. ii., 218.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. bk. ii., 218.

[172] Ibid. 230.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. 230.

[173] Ibid. 357.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. 357.

[174] Ibid. 377.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. 377.

[175] Vol. II. Justin Martyr. First Apology, §§ liv., lxii., and lxvi.

[175] Vol. II. Justin Martyr. First Apology, §§ 54, 62, and 66.

[176] Vol. II. Justin Martyr. Second Apology, § xiii.

[176] Vol. II. Justin Martyr. Second Apology, § xiii.

[177] Vol. VII. Tertullian, On Baptism, ch. v.

[177] Vol. VII. Tertullian, On Baptism, ch. v.

[178] The student might read Plato's account of the "Cave" and its inhabitants, remembering that Plato was an Initiate. Republic, Bk. vii.

[178] The student might read Plato's description of the "Cave" and its inhabitants, keeping in mind that Plato was an Initiate. Republic, Bk. vii.

[179] Eliphas Lévi The Mysteries of Magic, p. 48.

[179] Eliphas Lévi The Mysteries of Magic, p. 48.

[180] Bonwick. Egyptian Belief, p. 157. Quoted in Williamson's Great Law, p. 26.

[180] Bonwick. Egyptian Belief, p. 157. Quoted in Williamson's Great Law, p. 26.

[181] The festival "Natalis Solis Invicti," the birthday of the Invincible Sun.

[181] The festival "Natalis Solis Invicti," the birthday of the Unconquered Sun.

[182] Williamson. The Great Law, pp. 40-42. Those who wish to study this matter as one of Comparative Religion cannot do better than read The Great Law, whose author is a profoundly religious man and a Christian.

[182] Williamson. The Great Law, pp. 40-42. Anyone interested in this topic from a Comparative Religion perspective should definitely read The Great Law, written by a deeply spiritual and devout Christian author.

[183] Ibid. pp. 36, 37.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. pp. 36, 37.

[184] The Great Law, p. 116.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Great Law, p. 116.

[185] Ibid. p. 58.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. p. 58.

[186] Ibid. p. 56.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. p. 56.

[187] Ibid. pp. 120-123.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid. pp. 120-123.

[188] See on this the opening of the Johannine Gospel, i. 1-5. The name Logos, ascribed to the manifested God, shaping matter—"all things were made by Him"—is Platonic, and is hence directly derived from the Mysteries; ages before Plato, Vâk, Voice, derived from the same source, was used among Hindus.

[188] Check out the beginning of the Johannine Gospel, i. 1-5. The term Logos, used to describe the manifested God who shapes matter—"all things were made by Him"—comes from Platonic philosophy and is directly linked to the Mysteries; long before Plato, Vâk, or Voice, was used in the same way among Hindus.

[189] See Ante, pp. 124.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, p. 124.

[190] See Ante, pp. 93-94.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, pp. 93-94.

[191] See Ante, p. 85.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, p. 85.

[192] II. Cor. iv. 18.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Corinthians 4:18.

[193] II. Cor. v. 7.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Cor. 5:7.

[194] Heb. v. 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 5:14.

[195] S. Luke xv. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Luke 15:16.

[196] Ibid. xiv. 26.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. xiv. 26.

[197] S. Matt. v. 28.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 5:28.

[198] Heb. xi. 27.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 11:27.

[199] S. Matt v. 45.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt 45.

[200] S. Luke ix. 49, 50.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Luke 9:49-50.

[201] S. Matt xvii. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matthew 17:20.

[202] II. Cor. vi. 8-10.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Corinthians 6:8-10.

[203] Col. iii. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Col. 3:1.

[204] S. Matt. v. 8, and S. John xvii. 21.

[204] S. Matt. 5:8, and S. John 17:21.

[205] Gen. i. 2.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Genesis 1:2.

[206] S. John i. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 1:3.

[207] The Christian Creed, p. 29. This is a most valuable and fascinating little book, on the mystical meaning of the creeds.

[207] The Christian Creed, p. 29. This is a really valuable and interesting little book about the deeper meaning of the creeds.

[208] Ibid. p. 42.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. p. 42.

[209] A name of the Holy Ghost.

[209] A name for the Holy Spirit.

[210] Ibid. p. 43.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ p. 43.

[211] Ante, p. 124.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Before, p. 124.

[212] S. Matt. xviii. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 18:3.

[213] 2 S. Peter iii. 15, 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Peter 3:15-16.

[214] A. Besant. Essay on the Atonement.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ A. Besant. Essay on the Atonement.

[215] Ibid.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid.

[216] Brihadâranyakopaniṣhat, I. i. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Brihadaranyaka Upanishad, I. i. 1.

[217] Bhagavad Gîtâ, iii. 10.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bhagavad Gita, iii. 10.

[218] Brihadâranyakopaniṣhat, I. ii. 7.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Brihadâranyakopaniṣhat, I. 2.7.

[219] Muṇḍakopaniṣhat, II. ii. 10.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Muṇḍakopaniṣhat, II. 2. 10.

[220] Haug. Essays on the Parsîs, pp. 12-14.

[220] Haug. Essays on the Parsîs, pp. 12-14.

[221] Rev. xiii. 8.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev 13:8.

[222] W. Williamson. The Great Law, p. 406.

[222] W. Williamson. The Great Law, p. 406.

[223] A. Besant. Nineteenth Century, June, 1895, "The Atonement."

[223] A. Besant. Nineteenth Century, June, 1895, "The Atonement."

[224] Heb. i. 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 1:5.

[225] Ibid., 2.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid., 2.

[226] C.W. Leadbeater. The Christian Creed, pp. 54-56.

[226] C.W. Leadbeater. The Christian Creed, pp. 54-56.

[227] Ibid. pp. 56, 57.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. pp. 56, 57.

[228] S. Matt. xxv. 21, 23, 31-45.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 25:21, 23, 31-45.

[229] Is. liii. 11.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Is. 53:11.

[230] S. Matt. xvi. 25.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matthew 16:25.

[231] S. John xii. 25.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 12:25.

[232] Heb. vii. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 7:16.

[233] Light on the Path, § 8.

[233] Light on the Path, § 8.

[234] Heb. vii. 25.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 7:25.

[235] Heb. v. 8, 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 5:8-9.

[236] I Tim. iii. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Tim. 3:16.

[237] Annie Besant. Theosophical Review, Dec., 1898, pp. 344, 345.

[237] Annie Besant. Theosophical Review, Dec. 1898, pp. 344, 345.

[238] C. W. Leadbeater. The Christian Creed, pp. 61, 62.

[238] C. W. Leadbeater. The Christian Creed, pp. 61, 62.

[239] I Cor. xv. 44.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 15:44.

[240] I Thess. v. 23.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Thess. 5:23.

[241] See Chapter IX., "The Trinity."

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Chapter 9, "The Trinity."

[242] See Ante, pp. 84, 99, 100.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, pp. 84, 99, 100.

[243] 2 Cor. xii. 2, 4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Cor. 12:2, 4.

[244] S. Matt. v. 48.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 5:48.

[245] S. John xvii. 22, 23.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 17:22, 23.

[246] 2 Cor. v. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Cor. 5:1.

[247] 1 Cor. xv. 28.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 15:28.

[248] This mistranslation was a very natural one, as the translation was made in the seventeenth century, and all idea of the pre-existence of the soul and of its evolution had long faded out of Christendom, save in the teachings of a few sects regarded as heretical and persecuted by the Roman Catholic Church.

[248] This mistranslation was quite common at the time since it was translated in the seventeenth century, and the concepts of the soul's pre-existence and evolution had largely disappeared from Christianity, except in the teachings of a few groups considered heretical and persecuted by the Roman Catholic Church.

[249] S. John iii. 13.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 3:13.

[250] Heb. v. 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 5:9.

[251] Rev. i. 18.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 1:18.

[252] H. P. Blavatsky. The Voice of the Silence, p. 90, 5th Edition.

[252] H. P. Blavatsky. The Voice of the Silence, p. 90, 5th Edition.

[253] S. John. xvii. 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 17:5.

[254] 1 Cor. xv. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 15:20.

[255] Chhândogyopaniṣhat, VI. ii., 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Chhândogyopaniṣhat, VI. 2, 1.

[256] Deut. vi. 4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Deut. 6:4.

[257] 1 Cor. viii. 6.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 8:6.

[258] An error: En, or Ain, Soph is not one of the Trinity, but the One Existence, manifested in the Three; nor is Kadmon, or Adam Kadmon, one Sephira, but their totality.

[258] A mistake: En, or Ain, Soph is not part of the Trinity, but the One Existence, expressed in the Three; nor is Kadmon, or Adam Kadmon, just one Sephira, but their entirety.

[259] Quoted in Williamson's The Great Law, pp. 201, 202.

[259] Cited in Williamson's The Great Law, pp. 201, 202.

[260] H. H. Milman. The History of Christianity, 1867, pp. 70-72.

[260] H. H. Milman. The History of Christianity, 1867, pp. 70-72.

[261] Asiatic Researches, i. 285.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Asiatic Researches, vol. 1, p. 285.

[262] S. Sharpe. Egyptian Mythology and Egyptian Christology, p. 14.

[262] S. Sharpe. Egyptian Mythology and Egyptian Christology, p. 14.

[263] See Williamson's The Great Law, p. 196.

[263] See Williamson's The Great Law, p. 196.

[264] Loc. Cit., pp. 208, 209.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same Source, pp. 208, 209.

[265] S. John i. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 1:3.

[266] Jer. li. 15.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Jer. 15.

[267] See Ante, pp. 179-180.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, pp. 179-180.

[268] Athanasian Creed.

Athanasian Creed.

[269] Rev. iv. 8.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 4:8.

[270] S. Luke. i. 38.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ St. Luke. 1:38.

[271] Ibid, 35.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Ibid, 35.

[272] Book of Wisdom, viii. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Wisdom Book, viii. 1.

[273] Vol. IV. Ante-Nicene Library. S. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. V., ch. ii.

[273] Vol. IV. Ante-Nicene Library. S. Clement of Alexandria. Stromata, bk. V., ch. ii.

[274] See Ante, p. 262.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, p. 262.

[275] See Ante, p. 207.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See *Ante*, p. 207.

[276] Gen. i. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gen. 1:1.

[277] Job xxxviii. 4; Zech. xii. 1; &c.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Job 38:4; Zechariah 12:1; etc.

[278] Gen. i. 2.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Genesis 1:2.

[279] Gen. i. 2.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gen. 1:2.

[280] See Ante, p. 262.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, p. 262.

[281] See Ante, p. 262.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Ante, p. 262.

[282] S. John i. 3.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 1:3.

[283] Bhagavad Gîtâ ix. 4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Bhagavad Gîtâ 9:4.

[284] 1 Cor. xv. 27, 28.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 15:27, 28.

[285] S. John xiv. 6. See also the further meaning of this text on p. 272.

[285] S. John 14:6. Also, check out the deeper meaning of this text on p. 272.

[286] Heb. xii. 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 12:9.

[287] Numb. xvi. 22.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Num. 16:22.

[288] Gen. i. 26.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gen. 1:26.

[289] S. Matt. v. 48.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 5:48.

[290] S. John xvii. 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 17:5.

[291] S. John v. 26.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 5:26.

[292] S. Matt. i. 22.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 1:22.

[293] Heb. ii. 18.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 2:18.

[294] Much of this chapter has already appeared in an earlier work by the author, entitled, Some Problems of Life.

[294] A lot of this chapter has already been published in a previous work by the author called Some Problems of Life.

[295] S. James i. 17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ James 1:17.

[296] Gen. xxviii. 12, 13.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Genesis 28:12, 13.

[297] See Chapter xii.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See Chapter 12.

[298] Heb. i. 14.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Heb. 1:14.

[299] S. Matt. x. 29.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matthew 10:29.

[300] Acts xvii. 28.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Acts 17:28.

[301] T. H. Huxley. Essays on some Controverted Questions, p. 36.

[301] T. H. Huxley. Essays on some Controverted Questions, p. 36.

[302] S. Luke xxii. 41, 43.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Luke 22:41, 43.

[303] S. John i. 11.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 1:11.

[304] Rev. iii. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 3:20.

[305] H. P. Blavatsky. Key to Theosophy, p. 10.

[305] H. P. Blavatsky. Key to Theosophy, p. 10.

[306] Is. xxxiii. 17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Is. 33:17.

[307] On the Mysteries, sec. v. ch. 26.

[307] On the Mysteries, sec. v. ch. 26.

[308] Ps. xl. 7, 8, Prayer Book version.

[308] Ps. 40:7, 8, Prayer Book version.

[309] S. Luke, v. 18-26.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Luke 5:18-26.

[310] Ibid. vii. 47.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. vii. 47.

[311] G. R. S. Mead, translated. Loc. cit., bk. ii., §§ 260, 261.

[311] G. R. S. Mead, translated. Loc. cit., bk. ii., §§ 260, 261.

[312] Ibid. §§ 299, 300.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. §§ 299, 300.

[313] S. Matt. xii. 36.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Matt. 12:36.

[314] Ibid. ix. 2.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ix. 2.

[315] Loc. cit. iii. 9.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. iii. 9.

[316] Ibid. vi. 43.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. vi. 43.

[317] Ibid. ix. 30.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source. ix. 30.

[318] See ante, Chap. VIII.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See above, Chap. VIII.

[319] This is the cause of the sweetness and patience often noticed in the sick who are of very pure nature. They have learned the lesson of suffering, and they do not make fresh evil karma by impatience under the result of past bad karma, then exhausting itself.

[319] This explains why many seriously ill people with a very pure nature often display sweetness and patience. They have grasped the lesson that suffering brings, and they avoid creating new negative karma through impatience while dealing with the consequences of their previous bad karma, which is now playing out.

[320] S. Luke, vii. 48, 50.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Luke 7:48, 50.

[321] Loc. cit., ix. 31.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Loc. cit., ix. 31.

[322] S. Matt. vii. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ S. Matt. 7:1.

[323] Loc. cit., bk. ii. § 305.

[323] Loc. cit., bk. ii. § 305.

[324] Rev. iii. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 3:20.

[325] G. Bruno, trans. by L. Williams. The Heroic Enthusiasts, vol. i., p. 133.

[325] G. Bruno, trans. by L. Williams. The Heroic Enthusiasts, vol. i., p. 133.

[326] Ibid., vol. ii., pp. 27, 28.

[326] Same source., vol. ii., pp. 27, 28.

[327] Ibid., pp. 102, 103.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Same source., pp. 102, 103.

[328] Rev. iv. 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rev. 4:5.

[329] The phrase "force and matter" is used as it is so well-known in science. But force is one of the properties of matter, the one mentioned as Motion. See Ante, p. 264.

[329] The term "force and matter" is used because it's widely recognized in science. However, force is one of the characteristics of matter, specifically referred to as Motion. See Ante, p. 264.

[330] Job xxxviii. 7.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Job 38:7.

[331] See on forms created by musical notes any scientific book on Sound, and also Mrs. Watts-Hughes' illustrated book on Voice Figures.

[331] Check out scientific books on Sound that explain forms created by musical notes, and also Mrs. Watts-Hughes' illustrated book on Voice Figures.

[332] See ante, p. 138 and p. 302.

[332] See before, p. 138 and p. 302.

[333] In the Sacrament of Penance the ashes are now usually omitted, except on special occasions, but none the less they form part of the rite.

[333] In the Sacrament of Penance, ashes are usually left out now, except for special occasions, but they still remain a part of the ritual.

[334] See ante p. 329.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See above p. 329.

[335] Christian Records, p. 129.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Christian Records, p. 129.

[336] The Great Law, pp. 161-166.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ The Great Law, pp. 161-166.

[337] See ante, p. 151.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ See p. 151.

[338] Diegesis, p. 219.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Diegesis, p. 219.

[339] 1 Pet. iii. 4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Pet. 3:4.

[340] 2 Kings vi. 17.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Kings 6:17.

[341] 1 Cor. x. 16.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 10:16.

[342] Jer. xliv.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Jer. 44.

[343] Gen. xiv. 18, 19.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Gen. 14:18-19.

[344] The Great Law, pp. 177-181, 185.

[344] The Great Law, pp. 177-181, 185.

[345] Lev. xvii. 11.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Lev. 17:11.

[346] Rom. xii. 1.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Rom. 12:1.

[347] Isaiah liv. 5; lxii. 5.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Isaiah 54:5; 62:5.

[348] Eph. v. 23-32.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Eph. 5:23-32.

[349] Athanasian Creed.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Athanasian Creed.

[350] 2 Pet. i. 20.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Pet. 1:20.

[351] 1 See ante, p. 102.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 See ante, p. 102.

[352] 2 Cor. iii. 6.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 2 Cor. 3:6.

[353] 1 Cor. ii. 11, 13.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1 Cor. 2:11, 13.

[354] Is. vi. 6, 7.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Isaiah 6:6-7.

[355] S. John v. 4.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ John 5:4.


WILLIAM BYLES & SONS, PRINTERS, BRADFORD.





        
        
    
Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!